Wilson, Evelyn Faye/ The Stella Maris of John of Garland. Edited by

Transcription

Wilson, Evelyn Faye/ The Stella Maris of John of Garland. Edited by
THE MEDIAEVAL ACADEMY OF AMERICA
PUBLICATION NO. 45
THE STELLA MARIS
OF JOHN OF GARLAND
THE STELLA MARIS
OF JOHN OF GARLAND
Edited, Together With a Study of Certain Collections
of Mary Legends Made in Northern France in the
Twelfth and Thirteenth Centuries
BY
EVELYN FAYE WILSON
Wellesley College
Published jointly with
WELLESLEY COLLEGE
by
THE MEDIAEVAL ACADEMY OF AMERICA
CAMBRIDGE, MASSACHUSETTS
1946
The publication of this book was made possible by grants of funds to the
Academy from the Carnegie Corporation of New York, the American
Council of Learned Societies, and Wellesley College
COPYRIGHT
BY
THE MEDIAEVAL ACADEMY OF AMERICA
1946
Printed in the U. S. A.
PRINTED AT THE HARVARD UNIVERSITY PRINTING OFFICE
CAMBRIDGE, MASSACHUSETTS
ABBREVIATIONS USED FOR COLLECTIONS
OF LEGENDS
LATIN
Arnold of Liege = Pietro Toldo, 'DalYAlphabetum narrationum,' Archiv filr
das Studium der neueren Sprachen und Literaturen, CXVII (1906), 68-85,
287-304; and cxvm (1907), 69-82, 329-351.
Bromyard = John Bromyard, Summa praedicantium. Venice, 1586.
Caesar of Heisterbach = Caesar of Heisterbach, Dialogus miraculorum, ed.
Joseph Strange (Cologne, 1851), 2 vols.; Die beiden ersten Bilcher der Libri
VIII miraculorum, ed. Alfons Hilka, Bonn, 1937. See below under Hilka.
Crane = Thomas Frederick Crane (ed.), 'Miracles of the Virgin,' Romanic Review,n (1911), 235-279.
Dexter = Elsie F. Dexter (ed.), Miracula sanctae virginis Mariae. Madison,
1927. University of Wisconsin Studies in Social Sciences and History, no. 12.
Etienne de Bourbon = Etienne de Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, Ugendes et
apologues, tires du recueil inedit, ed. Albert Lecoy de la Marche, Paris,
1877. Societe de I'histoire de France.
Gesta Romanorum = Hermann Oesterley (ed.), Gesta Romanorum. Berlin,
1872.
Gil de Zamora = Gil de Zamora, Liber Mariae, ed. Fidel Fita, 'Cincuenta
leyendas por Gil de Zamora,' Boletin de la Real Academia de la Historia, vn
(1885), 54-144; 'Treinta leyendas por Gil de Zamora,' ibid., xm (1888),
187-225; and 'Variantes de tres leyendas por Gil de Zamora,' ibid., vi (1885),
418-429.
Gobius = Johannes Gobius, Junior, Scala cell. Ulm, 1480.
Henmann of Bologna = Henmann of Bologna, Viaticum narrationum, ed.
Alfons Hilka, Behrdge zur lateinischen Erzahlungsliteratur des Mittelalters,
in, Berlin, 1935. Abhandlungen der Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Gottingen. Phil.-bist. KL, dritte Folge, 16.
Herolt = Johannes Herolt, Sennones Discipuli de tempore et de sanctis unacwn
Promptuario exeviplorum (includes also Promptuarium de miraculis beate
Marie virginis). Strassburg, 1492.
Hervieux = Leopold Hervieux (ed.), Les fabulistes latins depuis le siecle
d'Auguste, jusqu'a la fin du moyen age. Paris, 1884-1899. 5 vols.
Hilka = Alfons Hilka (ed.), Die beiden ersten Biicher der Libri VIII miraculorum. Bonn, 1937. Volume m of Die Wundergeschichten des Caesarius
von Heisterbach. Publikationen der Gesellschaft ftir rheinische Geschichtskunde, XLHI.
Hugo of Trimberg = Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, ed. Erich Seemann,
Munich, 1914. Miinchener Texte, ix.
Isnard = H. Isnard (ed.), 'Recueil des miracles de la Vierge du xiiie siecle,'
Bulletin de la Societe archeologique, scientifique, et litteraire du vendomois,
xxvi (Vendome, 1887), 23-63, 104-149, 182-227, 282-311.
Jacques de Vitry = Jacques de Vitry, The Exempla or Illustrative Stories from
the Sermones Vulgares, ed. Thomas Frederick Crane, London, 1890.
vi
Abbreviations
Johannes Monachus = Johannes Monachus, Liber de miraculis, ed. P. M. Huber,
Heidelberg, 1913. Sammlung mittellateinischer Texte, vn.
Kjellman = Hilding Kjellman (ed.), La deuxihne collection anglo-normande
des miracles de la sainte Vierge et son original latin. Paris and Upsala, 1922.
Klapper = Joseph Klapper (ed.), Exempla aus Handschriften des Mittelalters.
Heidelberg, 1911. Savrmlung mittellateinischer Texte, 11; Erzdhlungen des
Mittelalters, Breslau, 1914.
Legenda aurea = James of Voragine, Legenda aurea, ed. Theodor Graesse,
Leipzig, 1850.
Little = Andrew George Little (ed.), Liber exemplorum ad usvm praedicantium saeculo xiii compositus a quodam fratre minore Anglico de provincia
Hiberniae. Aberdeen, 1908.
Magnum speculum exemplorum = John Major (ed.), Magnum speculum exemplorum. Cologne, 1747.
Meister = Aloys Meister (ed.), 'Die Fragmente der Libri VIII miraculorum
des Caesarius von Heisterbach,' Romische Quartalscbrift fur christliche
Alterthumskunde und fur Kirchengeschichte. Supplement, XIII (1901).
Meyer = Paul Meyer, 'Notice du MS Rawlinson Poetry 241,' Romania, xxix
(1900), 1-84.
Mussafia = Adolf Mussafia, 'Studien zu den mittelalterlichen Marienlegenden,'
in Sitzungsberichte der kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften in Wien.
Phil.-hist. Kl. Mussafia, I = cxm (1886), 917-994; II = cxv (1887), 5-93;
III = cxix (1889), fasc. ix, 1-66; IV = cxxm (1890), fasc. viii, 1-85; V =
cxxxix (1898), fasc. viii, 1-74; 'Cber die von Gautier de Coincy beniitzten
Quellen,' Denkschriften der kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften in
Wien. Phil.-hist. KL, XLIV (1894).
Neuhaus = Carl Neuhaus (ed.), Die lateinischen Vorlagen zu den alt-franzosischen Adgar'schen Marien-legenden. Aschersleben, 1886-1887; Die
Quellen zu Adgars Marien-legenden. Aschersleben, no date. Inaugural dissertation, Erlangen, 1882.
Pelbart = Oswald Pelbart of Temesvar, Stellarium corone benedicte Marie
virginis in laudem eius pro singulis predicationibus elegantissime coaptatum.
Hagenaw, 1508.
Pez = Bernhard Pez (ed.), Venerabilis Agnetis Blannbekin . . . vita et revelationes auctore anonymo. . . . Accessit Pothonis . . . liber de miraculis s.
Dei genitricis Mariae. . . . Vienna, 1731. The Mary legends are reprinted
by Thomas Frederick Crane, Liber de miraculis sanctae Dei genitricis
Mariae. Ithaca, 1925.
Pseudo-Celestine = Peter Coelestinus, De miraculis B. Mariae virginis, ed.
Coelestinus Telera, S. Petri Caelestini opuscula ornnia (Naples, 1640), pp.
199-219.
Thomas = Antoine Thomas (ed.), 'Les miracles de Notre-Dame de Chartres,'
in Bibliothtque de Yt.cole des chartes, XLII (1881), 505-550.
Thomas of Cantimpre = Thomas of Cantimpre, Bonuvt universale de apibus.
Douai, 1627.
Vincent of Beauvais = Vincent of Beauvais, Bibliotheca mundi Vincentii Burgundi; speculum quadruplex, naturale, doctrinale, morale, historiale. Douai,
1624.
Welter = J. Thomas Welter (ed.), Le speculum laicorum. Edition dJune collection d'exempla composee en Angleterre a la fin du xiii' siecle. Paris, 1914;
Abbreviations
vii
La Tabula exemplorum secundum ordinem alphabeti, recueil d'exempla
compile en France & la fin du xiii' siecle. Paris, 1926.
Wright = Thomas Wright (ed.), A Selection of Latin Stories from Manuscripts
of the Thirteenth and Fourteenth Centuries. London, 1842. Percy Society,
VIII, 1-136.
ANGLO-NORMAN
Adgar = William Adgar, Adgar's Marienlegenden nach der Londoner Handschrift, Egerton 612, ed. Carl Neuhaus, Heilbronn, 1886; ed. J. A. Herbert,
'A New Manuscript of Adgar's Mary-legends,' Romania, XXXII (1903),
394-421.
Everard de Gateley = Everard de Gateley, 'Miracles de la Vierge,' ed. Paul
Meyer, 'Notice du MS Rawlinson Poetry 241,' Romania, xxix (1900), 27-47.
Kjellman. See Kjellman above.
Mussafia. See Mussafia above.
FRENCH
Gautier de Coincy = Gautier de Coincy, Les miracles de la sainte Vierge, ed.
Alexandre Eusebe Poquet, Paris, 1857; ed. Arthur Langfors, Miracles de
Gautier de Coincy; extraits du manuscrit de VErmitage. Helsinki, 1937.
Annales Academiae Scientiarum Fennicae, no. xxxiv, series B; ed. Arlette P.
Ducrot-Granderye, 'fitudes sur les Miracles Nostre Dame de' Gautier de
Coinci,' ibid., no. xxv (Helsinki, 1932), series B; ed. Meon, Nouveau recueil,
11, 1-128; ed. Jacob Ulrich, 'Drei Wunder Gautiers von Coincy,' Zeitschrift
fur romanische Philologie, vi (1882), 325-346.
Isnard = H. Isnard (ed.) 'Legendes drees d'un manuscrit francais du xv* siecle,'
Bulletin de la Societe archeologique . . . du vendomois, xxvi (1887), 312—
322.
Jehan le Marchant = Jehan le Marchant, Le livre des miracles de Notre-Dame
de Chartres, ed. Georges Duplessis, Chartres, 1855.
Jubinal = Achille Jubinal (ed.), Nouveau recueil de contes, dits, fabliaux et
autres pieces inedites des xiii', xiv*, et xV siecles. Paris, 1830-1842. 2 vols.
Kjellman. See Kjellman above.
Langfors = Arthur Langfors, 'Notice du manuscrit francais 12483 de la Bibliotheque Nationale,' Notices et extraits des manuscrits de la Bibliotheque Nationale, xxxix2 (1916), 503H562.
Legrand d'Aussy = P. J. B. Legrand d'Aussy (ed.), Fabliaux ou contes, fables
et romans du xii' et du xiii' siicle. Paris, 1829. 5 vols.
Meon = Dominique Martin Meon (ed.), Nouveau recueil de fabliaux et contes
inedites. Paris, 1823. 2 vols.
Meyer = Paul Meyer, 'Notice sur un manuscrit d'Orleans contenant d'anciens
miracles de la Vierge en vers frangais,' Notices et extraits des manuscrits de
la Bibliotheque Nationale, xxxiv2 (1895), 31-56; 'Notice sur un 16gendier
francais du xiiie siecle,' ibid., xxxvi (1899), 1-69; 'Notice sur le recueil de
miracles de la Vierge renferme dans MS Bibliotheque Nationale French 818,'
ibid., xxxiv2 (1895), 57-88.
Mielot = Jean Mielot, Miracles de Nostre Dame, ed. George F. Warner for the
Roxburghe Club, Westminster, 1885; ed. Alexander, comte de Laborde
viii
Abbreviations
(Paris, 1928) for Societe francaise de reproductions de manuscrits 4
peintures.
Morawski = Jozef Morawski, 'Melanges de litterature pieuse: Les miracles de
Notre-Dame en vers frangais, i-m,' Romania, LXI (1935), 145-209, 316-350;
and LXIV (1938), 454-488.
Mussafia. See Mussafia above.
PROVENCAL
Ulrich = Jacob Ulrich (ed.), 'Miracles de Notre Dame en Provencal,' Romania, vm (1879), 12-28.
SPANISH
Alfonso el Sabio = Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas de Santa Maria, ed. by La Real
Academia Espanola, Madrid, 1889. 2 vols.
Berceo = Gonzalo de Berceo, Milagros de nuestra senora, ed. A. G. Solalinde,
Madrid, 1922.
Gayangos = Pascual de Gayangos (ed.), El libro de los enxemplos, in Escritores
en prosa anteriores al siglo xv (Madrid, i860), pp. 443-542. Biblioteca de
autores espanoles, LI.
Recull de eximplis=Recull de eximplis e miracles, gestes e faules e altres ligendes
ordenades per A-B-C tretes de un manuscrit en pergami del comencament
del segle xv, ara per primera volta estampades. Barcelona, 1880-1888 (?).
2 vols.
Sanchez = Climente Sanchez, El libro de exenplos, ed. Alfred Morel-Fatio in
Romania, vn (1878), 481-526.
ITALIAN
Levi = Ezio Levi (ed.), 11 libro dei cinquanta miracoli della vergine. Bologna,
1917. Collezione di opere inedite o rare dei pr'vmi tre secoli della lingua.
Stolfi = Casimiro Stolfi (ed.), Corona de'monaci compilato da un monaco
degli Angeli. Prato, 1862.
Ulrich = Jacob Ulrich (ed.), 'Recueil d'exemples en ancien Italien,' Romania,
xiii (1884), 27-59.
ENGLISH
Banks = Mary MacLeod Banks (ed.), An Alphabet of Tales, an English Fifteenth Century Translation of the Alphabetum Narrationum of fctienne de
Besanfon. London, 1904. Early English Text Society, 126.
Horstman = Carl Horstman (ed.), The Minor Poems of the Vernon MS, I
(London, 1892), 138-167. Early English Text Society, 98; The Early SouthEnglish Legendary or Lives of Saints. London, 1887. Early English Text
Society, 87.
Robert of Brunne = Robert of Brunne's 'Handlyng Synne,' ed. Frederick J.
Furnivall, London, 1901. Early English Text Society, 119.
Tryon = Ruth Wilson Tryon, 'Miracles of Our Lady in Middle English
Verse,' Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923),
308-388.
Abbreviations
ix
GERMAN
Bar = Franz Bar (ed.), Die Marienlegenden der Strassburger Handschrift, MS
Germ. 863, und ihr literarhistorischer Zusammenhang. Strassburg, 1913.
Inaugural dissertation.
Bolte — Johannes Bolte (ed.), 'Marienlegenden des xv Jahrhunderts,' Alemannia,
XVII (1889), 1-25.
Floss = H. J. (?) Floss (ed.), Neun Marienlegenden nebst einem Gebete an
Maria. Miinster, 1852.
Hagen = Friedrich Heinrich von der Hagen (ed.), Gesaimntabenteuer. Hun.. dert altdeutsche Erzdhlungen, Ritter- und Pfaff en-Maren, Stadt- und Dorfgeschichten, Schwdnke, Wundersagen und Legenden. Stuttgart and Tubingen,
1850. 3 vols.
Pauli = Johannes Pauli, Schimpf und Ernst, ed. Johannes Bolte, Berlin, 1924.
2 vols.
Pfeiffer = Franz Pfeiffer (ed.), Marienlegenden, Stuttgart, 1846; 'Predigtmarlein,' Germania, in (1858), 407-440.
NORSE
Mariusaga = Carl Richard Unger (ed.), Mariu saga. Christiania, 1871. 2 vols.
ETHIOPIAN
Budge = E. A. W. Budge (ed.), The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary and
the Life of Hannd. London, 1900. Lady Meux MSS,Nos. 2-y, One Hundred
and Ten Miracles of Our Lady. London, 1923. The latter includes only
English translations of Ethiopic originals.1
'Valuable descriptions of manuscript collections are to be found in Alussafiia, op. cit.;
Morawski, op. cit.; Catalogue of Romances in the Depamnent of Manuscripts in the British
Museum (London, 1883-1910), vols. 11 and in; Louis Villecourt, 'Les collections arabes des
miracles de la Sainte Vierge,' Analecta Bollandiana, XLII (1924), 21-68 and 266-287; C. G. N .
De Vooys, Middelnederlandse legenden en exempelen (Groningen, 1926); and the volumes
of Notices et extraits des manuscrits de la Bibliotheque Nationale et autres bibliotheques,
Paris, 1787—. Still other manuscript collections are noted or described in notes appended to
various editions of Mary legends. See especially Levi, op. cit^ and the notes by Warner in
his edition of the second book of Mielot. Albert Poncelet, 'Miraculorum B. V. Alariae quae
saec. vi-xv latine conscripta sunt index,' Analecta Bollandiana, xxi (1902), 241-360, is an index
of Mary legends.
PREFACE
T
HOMAS FREDERICK CRANE in his edition of the Pez collection
deplores the inaccessibility to students of mediaeval history and culture of so many of the Latin collections of Mary legends. Adolf Mussafia,
as long ago as 1889, asked for an edition of the collection of John of Garland. These demands, combined with my interest in the works of John
of Garland, have led me to undertake an edition of his collection, the
Stella marts. It was made, if the numbers and the bulk of the manuscripts
are a criterion, at a time when the activity of gathering Mary legends was
at its height, and in a region where it was particularly intense.
John of Garland's collection has certain advantages over all the other
manuscript collections which I have examined. It is the only one which
can be accurately dated and at the same time securely attached to a particular author and geographical center — a firm anchor in an almost unbroken sea of anonymity. Even though the narratives are merely suggested, their outlines are sufficiently clear so that particular versions can
be identified. Of the printed collections of Mary legends made in northern
France in Latin, only that which Vincent of Beauvais included in the
Speculum historiale is comparable in these respects. The Stella marts, therefore, occupies a position of strategic importance in the history of Mary
legends. I have attempted with the miscellaneous data which all these collections yield in hand and John of Garland's collection as a point of departure to place some of the Latin collections which I have used in relationship one to the other. Without the help of the painstaking studies of
Mussafia, the careful descriptions of H. L. D. Ward, Paul Meyer, Albert
Poncelet, and many others whose help I have acknowledged in the footnotes, I should not have attempted it.
From the point of view of the history of the Mary cult in the middle
ages, an important subject too little investigated, the collection of John of
Garland should be a document of particular value. It represents the attitude toward the Virgin Mary, not of the trained theologian, nor of the
simple souls often portrayed in the legends themselves, but that of an educated layman who was also a schoolmaster. It was composed, as the author
of the gloss remarks, with a great deal of feeling, and with a deeper sincerity
than characterizes the more pretentious works of the author. Of special importance, I believe, is the suggestion as to the way in which the secular
learning of the schools was made in his classes to serve the cult of the
Virgin. In some of the other manuscript school-books and commentaries
xii
Preface
which I have surveyed in the course of this study there is evidence that his
interpretations were not unique. With this subject, however, I have not
attempted to deal.
It is, moreover, with the expectation that the Stella marts, composed as
it was for use in the schools, will be able to throw additional light upon the
teaching of Latin and the use of the classics in the thirteenth century that
I have edited the text together with all the glosses.
My interest in the work of John of Garland began as a student of the
late L. J. Paetow at the University of California. Generous grants made by
Radcliffe College, especially the Alice Mary Longfellow Fellowship, and
the American Council of Learned Societies enabled me to pursue it under
the direction of the late C. H. Haskins at Radcliffe and in the libraries of
Europe. I am particularly indebted to Professor E. K. Rand for aid and
encouragement all along the way.
I wish also to thank Professor William Thomson of Harvard University,
who generously helped me with the Arabic words in the glosses.
My thanks are due to many libraries for permission to use and photograph their manuscripts and for generous hospitality and assistance, especially the British Museum, the Bibliotheque Nationale, the Public Library
at Bruges, the Widener Library of Harvard University, and the Wellesley
College Library; and to the Coe Fund of the University of Maine for aid
in the typing of the manuscript.
For making the publication of this study possible, I owe a deep debt of
gratitude both to Wellesley College and to the Mediaeval Academy of
America: to the Wellesley College Committee on Publications, its chairman, Ella Keats Whiting, and the Alumnae who contributed to the Fund
which it administers; to Charles R. D. Miller and Robert J. Clements of the
Academy for their helpful interest and assistance, and to the American
Council of Learned Societies and the Carnegie Corporation of New York
for their contributions.
E. FAYE WILSON
8 June, 1944
Wellesley, Massachusetts
CONTENTS
ABBREVIATIONS U S E D F O RCOLLECTIONS O F LEGENDS
.
.
.
.
PREFACE
I.
v
xi
A S T U D Y O F C E R T A I N C O L L E C T I O N S O FM A R Y L E G E N D S M A D E I N
N O R T H E R N F R A N C E I N T H ET W E L F T H A N D T H I R T E E N T H C E N TURIES
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
3
T h eEarliest Collections
T h eCollections of t h e Parisian Monasteries
. . .
MSS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 17491 and 2333A .
M S Paris B i b l i o t h e q u e N a t i o n a l e 18134 . . . .
T h e R o u e n Mariale
The Mariale Magnum
3
7
22
26
30
36
7. Relation of Caesar of Heisterbach and Pseudo-Caesarius
to the 'Mariale' Collections
8. The Collection of Ste. Genevieve and the Stella Moris
9. The Stella Maris in England
$$
59
69
II. INTRODUCTION TO THE TEXT OF THE Stella Maris .
1. The Authorship and Date of the Stella Maris
2. The Manuscripts of the Stella Maris
3. The Editing of the Stella Maris
MARIS
.
87
JOHANNIS
IV.
N O T E S ON T H E LEGENDS
155
GLOSSARY
211
INDICES
214
VI.
STELLA
77
77
80
85
III.
V.
DE GARLANDIA
. . .
. . .
.
.
1. General Index
2. Index of Manuscript Collections
3. Index of Legends
214
221
222
PLATE
MS London British Museum Royal 8 c iv, fol. 17; lines 94-153 of
text
facing page
96
A STUDY OF CERTAIN COLLECTIONS OF MARY
LEGENDS MADE IN NORTHERN FRANCE
IN THE TWELFTH AND THIRTEENTH CENTURIES
I
COLLECTIONS OF MARY LEGENDS
i.
T H E EARLIEST COLLECTIONS
T
HE worship of the Virgin Mary, originating in the East, slowly penetrated into western Europe during the interval from the fifth to the
eleventh century.1 The festivals of the Virgin began to be celebrated;
pictures were painted and images were carved; churches were dedicated to
her; and prose and poetry, profane2 as well as sacred, honored her. The
absence of details about the life of the mother of God in the gospels was
an advantage, rather than a disadvantage, to the growth of the Mary cult.
Accounts of her parents, her childhood, her marriage, her purification, and
the miraculous deeds she performed both before and after her assumption
multiplied.3
At first the miracles of the Virgin were told singly by churchmen to point
a moral or to celebrate a festival, related to pilgrims visiting particular
shrines, or incorporated into the records of monasteries. As early as Gregory of Tours (c. 538-594) eastern tales of this nature begin to be narrated
by ecclesiastical writers in the West. In his Liber miraculorum, the first
book of which is entitled In gloria martyrum, he tells, among a number of
others, six Mary legends of eastern origin.* It is, however, not much earlier
than the eleventh century that tales of western origin make their appearance in written form in significant numbers.5
The earliest known collections of Mary legends originating in the West
are those which gathered about the churches of France dedicated to the
Virgin Mary. They date in their present form from the beginning of the
twelfth century, although they were probably begun much earlier. Such
are those compiled for the Mary churches of their respective towns by
'Ernst Lucius, Die Anfange des Heiligenkults (Tubingen, 1904), pp. 420-504, and Stephan
Beissel, Gescbichte der Verebrung Marias in Deutschland (Freiburg-im-Breisgau, 1909),
pp. 1-71.
* H. P. J. M. Ahsmann, Le culte de la sa'mte Vierge et la litterature franfaise profane du
moyen age. Utrecht, [1930]. Dissertation, University of Amsterdam.
• The Prot-evangelion of St. fames, the Pseudo-Matthew, and the so-called Infancy gospels, edited by Constantinus de Tischendorf, Evangelia Apocrypha (Leipzig, 1876), besides
numerous collections of miracles.
t
Gregorii Turonensis opera (ed. Wilhelm Arndt and Bruno Krusch, Hanover, 1885), 11,
451-561.
"Adolf Mussafia, 'Studien zu den mittelalterlichen Marienlegenden,' Siteungsberichte der
kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften in Wein. Phil.-hist. Kl^ cxm (1886), 917-936,
lists these legends. Henry L. D. Ward, Catalogue of Romances in the Department of Manuscripts in the British Museum (London, 1893), 11, 586-589, makes some additions.
4
The Stella Alaris of John of Garland
John of Coutances6 at the very beginning of the twelfth century, by
Guibert de Nogent (d. 1124) and Herman of LaonT (compiled c. 1150),
by Hugo Farsitus of Soissons,8 and by the abbot Haimon writing for the
Alary church of St. Pierre-sur-Dive in Normandy.9 Rocamador in Guienne,10 Chartres,11 and Fecamp12 also had their collections made by anonymous compilers in the twelfth century.
By the eleventh century the popularity of the Virgin Alary had outstripped that of all the saints and was growing in ever-widening circles.
Sinners as well as the righteous could rely upon her to get them into heaven,
if only they had that mediaeval virtue of loyalty. She had become the
Alother of Mercy 13 whose privilege it was to mitigate the Justice of God.
Saturday was in many places a day reserved for the recitation of the office
of the Virgin.14 The network of Cluniac monasteries and the pilgrimage
routes offered new and broader avenues along which Alary legends could
make their way. When Odo caused Alary to be honored as the Mother of
Alercy at Cluny,15 his example was followed in many monasteries. As a
consequence not only did the number of Mary legends increase rapidly,
but the same legends came to be known far from their original home. And
thus there began the second stage in the history of Alary legends in the
West, the collection of tales gathered from far and near, of universal rather
than merely local interest.
The oldest of these collections, according to Mussafia,16 is the group of
legends which make up the first seventeen numbers of the compilation
printed by Bernhard Pez in the eighteenth century.17 It begins with the tale
of 'Hildefonsus' and ends with that of 'Murieldis,' hence it is known as
" The collection is edited by E. A. Pigeon, Histoire de la cathedrale de Coutances (Coutances, 1876), pp. 367-383. See also Leopold V. Delisle, 'Notice sur un traite inedit du
douzieme siecle,' Bibliotheque de F&cole des chartes, series ii, iv, 339-352.
* Guibert de Nogent, De laude sancte Marie, Migne, PX., CLVI, 537-578, and ibid., De
vita sua, pp. 953-962. Those compiled by Herman of Laon are printed in the appendix to
De vita sua, pp. 961-1018.
' H u g o Farsitus, Libellus de miraculis B. Marie virginis, Migne, PX., CLXXIX, 1773-1800.
•Leopold V. Delisle, 'Lettre de l'abbe Haimon,' Bibliotheque de Ffccole des chartes,
series v, 1,113-139.
"Edited by Gustave Servois, ibid^ series iv, in, 21-44 ar>d 228~245> and more recently by
Edmond Albe, Les miracles de Notre-Dame de Roc-Amadour. Paris, 1907.
"Edited by Antoine Thomas in Bibliotheque de P£cole des chartes, XLH (Paris, 1881),
505-550.
"Just when this collection was made is not known, except that it could not have been
done earlier than 1082. It is edited by Arthur Langfors, De miraculis quae in ecclesia
Fiscanensi covtigerunt (Helsinki, 1932), pp. 1-32. (Annales Academiae Scientiarum Fennicae, xxv, series B).
"Beissel, op. cit^ pp. 124-125.
" / « < / , p. 272.
"Ibid^p. 125.
" Mussafia, I, 952.
" Venerabilis Agnetis Blannbekin . . . vita et revelationes auctore anonymo . . . Accessit
Pothonis Prunveningensis prope Ratisbonam O. S. B. liber de miraculis s. Dei genitricis Mariae
. . . edidit Bernardus Pez. Vienna, 1731. The Mary legends are reprinted by Thomas
Frederick Crane, Libet de miraculis sanctae Dei genitricis Mariae. Ithaca, 1925.
Collections of Mary Legends
5
HM.ie The origin of the collection is obscure, and the authors are, for the
most part, anonymous. Six of the seventeen legends have lost the names
and places with which they were originally associated; the others come
variously from Italy, France, Spain, and Germany. The subjects are
gathered from the lives of saints and from monastic records of various sorts.
Some of them were not in their first form Alary legends at all. The saint
for whom they were originally written is still there, but he has been subordinated to the Virgin Alary, who now usurps the leading role.19 This
ancient series of tales exists in more or less complete form in almost all the
great collections, although the order in which the legends are told is frequently altered. John of Garland's Stella marts includes eleven of the
seventeen.
Next in order of their development, and also of the eleventh century,
are the legends of the Elements-series.20 The four anecdotes which comprise it have been rewritten by their unknown compiler so that each illustrates the Virgin's dominion over fire, earth, air, or water.21 Although it is
English in origin and has been found as a unit only in collections which
can be identified with England,22 the single legends appear very commonly
in the great collections of northern France. John of Garland tells two of
them, omitting 'Childbirth in the Sea' and 'Jew of Bourges.'23 They are
not told in series, nor with their original significance.
The third series in point of time, belonging to the twelfth century,24 is
the collection which forms the third book of two manuscripts, MSS British
Museum Cotton Cleopatra C x and Toulouse 482. Related to it also is MS
Oxford Balliol 240. There are seventeen numbers, beginning with the legend of 'Toledo' and ending with 'Saturday,' hence the collection is designated TS.25 Mussafia believes that this series also is English in origin,28
although the tales are gathered from many different sources. All three of
these early collections appear together in MS Cotton Cleopatra C x27 of
18
Also known as the Ad laudem group, the prologue which precedes the legends.
"Especially no. 8, 'Pilgrim of St. James' (Pez, ed. Crane, pp. 10-12), and no. 10, 'Two
Brothers at Rome' (ibid^ pp. 12-14).
20
Mussafia, III, 56-57.
a
Carl Neuhaus, Die lateinischen Vorlagen zu den alt-franzosischen Adgar'scben Marienlegenden (Aschersleben, 1886-1887), pp. 0-25. The 'Jew of Bourges' is a miracle performed
in fire; 'Theophilus,' in air; 'Childbirth in the Sea,' in water; and 'Julian the Apostate,' in
earth. See prologue to 'Julian,' ibid., p. 23.
" Mussafia, III, 60.
0
John of Garland's tale of 'Jewish Boy' (no. j) is the Gregory of Tours version.
"Hilding Kjellman, La deuxieme collection anglo-normande des miracles de la sainte
Vierge (Paris and Upsala, 1922), p. xii.
" Mussafia, III, 58. In the first two manuscripts mentioned the series ends with 'Leuricus,'
which 'Saturday' precedes; but by comparison with other manuscripts Mussafia comes to the
conclusion that 'Leuricus' originally preceded 'Saturday.'
* Mussafia, III, 60-61.
"Ward, op. cit., pp. 600-618, analyzes the contents. Neuhaus, op. cit^ prints most of the
numbers.
6
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
the twelfth century. The four legends of the Elements-series make up the
first book;28 the HM series, the second book; and the TS group, the third
book.29
Of primary importance in the history of Mary legends is the so-called
Pez collection.30 Probably French in origin and a product of the twelfth
century, it was transported to Germany to become the foundation upon
which Latin collections in that region were built.31 The first seventeen of
the forty-three legends is a complete HM series, told in the same sequence
in which they appear in the Cleopatra-Toulouse-Oxford manuscripts.32
Two of the four Elements-series are narrated in the same versions as in
Cleopatra-Toulouse-Oxford33 Nine are TS legends, and one more, 'Conception,' is a different version of a TS tale. To these, fourteen new legends
have been added from the constantly increasing number of incidents recorded in other sources. That TS was one of the principal sources of Pez
is indicated by the fact that the nine miracles of Pez which are identical with
those of TS follow in Pez in exactly the same order as in TS.3* The Pez
" There are two other legends in the first book in addition to these four.
" T h e third book is incomplete in the Cleopatra manuscript. It is necessary to use the
two other manuscripts related to it to determine the order and the contents of the TS collection. Kjellman, op. cit^ prints most of the numbers of the Balliol collection as the source of
the Anglo-Norman collection he has edited. The manuscript is regarded by both Mussafia
and Kjellman as English in origin.
30
Mussafia, I, 936-953. Mussafia, III, 54-55, notes that 'Potho' or 'Botho,' monk of Priefling,
is not the author of the whole series, as Bernhard Pez thought. He is the author of a single
tale which he incorporated into the collection. A more recent and better-documented statement of the case is by J. A. Endres, 'Boto von Priifening und seine schriftstellerische
Thatigkeit,' Neues Archiv der Gesellschaft fiir tiltere deutsche Geschichtskunde, xxx (1905),
605-646.
"Mussafia, III, 61.
**Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 3-20 (1-17).
"Ibid., pp. 25-27 (22), 'Childbirth in the Sea,' and pp. 39-40 (31), 'Jew of Bourges.'
34
The following table illustrates the relationship between Pez and TS. It should be noted
that Pez (ed. Crane) gives 'Botho' a number, thus counting forty-four instead of fortythree legends in the Pez collection. Seventeen tales altogether are added in Pez.
TS
Pez
Legends Added in Pez
1. Toledo
—
2. Foot Cut Off
18
3. Musa
—
4. Mother of Mercy
— 19. Conception (Pseudo-Anselm).
(Sicut iterum)
5. Libia
20
6. Gethsemane
21
7. Mary Image Insulted
— 22. Childbirth in the Sea.
8. Drowned Sacristan
—
9. Devil in Beasts' Shapes
23 24. Son Restored. 25-26. St. Dunstan. 27.
Pilgrim in the Sea. 28. Light on Masthead.
10. Complines
29
n . Milk: Monk Laid Out
30 31. Jew of Bourges.
12. Three Knights
—
13. Eulalia
32 33. Jew Lends to Christian. 34. Hours Sung
Daily. 35. Love by Black Arts. 36.
Abbess. 37. Bonus.
Collections of Mary Legends
7
collection is, therefore, derived from three sources: HM, the Elementsseries, and TS, to which other legends have been added. These four collections are the foundations upon which were built, not only the French collections of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, but those in all western
Europe.
2.
THE COLLECTIONS OF THE PARISIAN MONASTERIES
At the close of the twelfth century the Mary cult was in full bloom, and
the century which followed has been properly called 'the century of
Mary.'35 The Ave Maria was as frequently and universally on the lips of
all classes as any other prayer. The Salve Regina, the favorite anthem of
the pilgrims and crusaders, was sung regularly in the evening before the
image of the Virgin, not only in the churches of the religious orders, but
by laymen as well.36 The four great Mary festivals already covered the
entire year, one for each of the seasons, when the Conception of the Virgin
and the Visitation were added in the twelfth century.37 Relics of the
Virgin, her shift, her girdle, her sweat, and her milk accumulated. Images
of the mother with the Child in her lap were countless, and the great
Gothic cathedrals were rising in her honor.
Much of the ever-growing popularity of the Mary cult in the twelfth
century is to be attributed to the new monastic orders, the Cistercians,
Praemonstratensians, and the various groups of canons regular. In the
thirteenth century the mendicant orders joined them in propagating the
worship of the Virgin. Robert of Molesme, the founder of the Cistercian
order, it is said, had been particularly devoted to her by reason of a vision
seen by his mother before he was born.38 Alberic, his successor, had decided that the order should be dedicated to her, and that its houses should
be under her invocation. According to legend the Virgin bestowed upon
him a white mantle, and it was for that reason that the Cistercians gave up
their black habit for a white one. All their churches were dedicated to the
Virgin, and each had its Mary altar, before which the office of the Virgin
was celebrated every Saturday.39 The seal of the Cistercian monasteries
14. Mead
15. Conception
16. Leuricus
—
—
38
39. Drowned Sacristan; Friend Prays. 40.
German Nobleman Healed. 41. Uncompleted Confession.
17. Saturday
42 43. St. Blasius.
" Ahsmann, Le cuke de la sa'mte Vierge, pp. 4-46, has an excellent account of the development of the Mary cult in France. It incorporates material from J. A. F. Kronenburg, Maria's
Heerlijheid in Nederland (Amsterdam, 1904-1914), which is valuable.
** Ahsmann, op. cit^ p. 18.
"lbid^ pp. 19-20.
* / W i , p . 26.
lbid^ pp. 26-28, and Beissel, op. cit^ pp. 195-214.
8
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
pictured the Virgin crowned. It is understandable, then, that in the late
twelfth or early thirteenth century the collection of Mary legends became
a particular project of the Cistercian order.40 The Dominicans and the
Franciscans also were greatly devoted to the Mother of God. Tradition
tells how the Virgin herself urged St. Dominic to found his order, and the
preaching of the mendicants spread Mary legends to the far corners of
Europe.41
The larger place given to Mary in the calendar of the church and in the
hearts of the people called for greater efforts on the part of the compilers
of Mary legends, for it was particularly on the Virgin's days that the story
of her life and her marvellous deeds was read in monasteries and churches.
They were not content merely to tell and retell the anecdotes of the HM
and TS collections, and to search the old sources, monastic records and
saints' lives, for occasional fresh tales. Entirely new and more varied sources
were sought. Even history was forced to make its contribution. The
Virgin became the heroine of incidents in the chronicles in which previously she had had no place; and then succeeding chroniclers retold the
incident with the legendary accretion as sober history!42 The chance narratives of the ecclesiastical writers of the twelfth century were gathered
into the growing compendia, and single miracles were culled from local
collections.43 The quickening interest of the twelfth century in the matter
of ancient Rome prompted the transformation of some highly pagan tales
into Mary legends.44 Even folk tradition may have played a considerable
part in the shaping of Mary legends, though the evidence is hard to lay
hold of.45
Some new and entertaining anecdotes were selected from the growing
collections of sermon stories, especially in the thirteenth century. Mary
legends had always been used in sermons, and the collection of sermon
stories ran parallel with the gathering of Mary legends. It was natural,
therefore, that the compilers of one series should borrow from the other.
Some rather undignified anecdotes written to entertain popular audiences
were, consequently, rewritten with great freedom to include the Virgin
and added to the number of Mary legends.46 Equally diverting are the
Mary legends used by preachers as sermon stories. The stately old miracles,
composed for the most part for leisurely monastic audiences, had to be
"Below, pp. 50-51.
"Beissel, op. cit^ pp. 214-266.
" John of Garland, Stella maris, no. jo, 'Purification,' and no. 32, 'Chartres.'
" A t times old local collections were copied entire into the new compilations. John of
Garland, nos. 44, 45, and 57, are examples of miracles gathered from the local collection of
Soissons.
" Stella maris, no. 8, 'Ring on Finger.'
"Especially »W4, no. 14, 'Chaste Empress.'
"Ibtd^ no. 42, 'Little Devil in Church,' is a sermon story in which the Virgin originally
had no part.
Collections of Mary Legends
•
9
made briefer and livelier to appeal to impatient lay crowds. This appropriation of Mary legends by popular preachers grew until in the fourteenth
century collections of Alary legends were made primarily for the use of
preachers, and many of them had become unrecognisable.47
The more frequent contacts between the East and West beginning with
the twelfth century and the increasing travel in the West itself stimulated
by the pilgrimages and crusades, the growth of the mendicant orders, and
the development of commerce opened other new sources. More legends
about miraculous images came back from the East as well as new eastern
versions of the old stories that had been told by Gregory of Tours. Even
merchants were credited with the transmission of legends about Mary
images.48 Travellers in western Europe itself carried tales from one place
to another by word of mouth.49
Still other Mary legends came into existence in a purely literary fashion.
New details were fitted into favorite old themes until whole cycles of Mary
legends having the same theme may be distinguished.50 Westerners grown
accustomed to visualizing the Christ as a child sitting in the lap of the Virgin
transformed eastern tales about crucifixes into Mary legends with a few
strokes of the pen.51 Latin legends, it seems, were translated into the vernacular and back again into Latin with the homely details and new incidents which they had acquired in the process.52
As a result of the growth of the Mary cult in all its aspects, the collections
of Mary legends rolled up like huge snowballs in the late twelfth and early
thirteenth centuries. The Pez collection of the twelfth century comprises
forty-three legends. A similar collection about a generation later counts
seventy-seven legends, even if the separate miracles of Soissons are not given
numbers.53 A compendium made in the same region about 1200 numbers
one hundred and five legends,54 and another by Alfonso el Sabio in the
Galician vernacular in the thirteenth century, more than three hundred
and fifty.55 The manuscript which John of Garland used at Ste. Genevieve
in 1248 must have included a large number, for he calls the sixty-one leg" T h e collections of Gobius, Herolt, and others. The Rosarius is an example of a vernacular collection.
"Stella marts, no. 19, 'Jew Lends to Christian,' is a story said to have been brought from
Constantinople by a pilgrim. Another version attributes it to a merchant. See p. 175 and
iMrf, note 56.
"Ibid^ no. 23, 'Hours Sung Daily.' A clerk on a pilgrimage heard the story at Cambrai.
The tale of the siege of Parma was brought to Pans by the Franciscans of Parma (ibid^
no. 59). See below, pp. 78-79.
" T h e 'Bridegroom' cycle, ibid~, no. 8; or 'Drowned Sacristan,' no. 36.
*xlbid^ no. 53. See p. 203.
M
See pp. 27-29 and note 140.
"MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 1446$ (Mussafia, I, 953-959).
U
MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale I2f9$ (Mussafia, I, 962-969).
K
Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas de Santa Maria, ed. by La Real Academia Espanola, Madrid,
1889.
io
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
ends he tells, 'a few.'86 In all, more than two thousand separate legends
originating in the middle ages have been counted, and there are other collections still to be studied. They come from Iceland and from Ethiopia,
from Spain and Russia and the middle East; and they are written not only
in Latin, but in the vernaculars.
Some of these numerous new anecdotes about the Virgin, originating in
the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, gained as wide currency in Europe as
those of the HM and TS series. Others got no farther than the collections
in which they first appeared. A considerable number, however, circulated
freely within fairly large areas, more or less coterminous with language
boundaries.67 There developed, consequently, in the twelfth and early
thirteenth centuries, Latin collections which may be identified as specifically Anglo-Norman, or French, or German in origin.58 At a later date,
however, even the latter part of the thirteenth century, the distinctions
between regional collections have broken down.
Identification of anonymous regional collections is made in several different ways. The most important is the differentiation of tales characteristic of certain regions whose author or place of origin can be determined.
The legend of the 'Maid of Arras,' for instance, occurs only in collections
which can be traced to northern France. Certain redactions of some legends, especially the ancient TS legends, are characteristic of certain areas.
There are, for example, two particular versions of the 'Milk' miracle which
are found only in collections originating in England and another which
is characteristic of collections French in origin.89 The differences between
versions of English and French provenance appear clearly in the manuscripts of John of Garland's work. His collection belongs to the series
made in northern France, and the individual who wrote some of the commentary in the British Museum manuscript is familiar only with the redactions of English origin, or with similar English stories.60 Because the first
vernacular collections were translations from Latin, they too are useful in
determining the regional origin of particular Latin collections.61
"Stella maris, 1. 27.
"The 'Parma' legend, ibidn no. 59, is an example of a tale which, although it is told in
the chronicles of Italy, never won a place among collections of Mary legends. The legend,
'Mare,' no. 29, is found in only four collections in northern France. Number 8, 'Ring on
Finger;* no. 14, 'Chaste Empress;' no. 26, 'Orleans;' and no. 33, 'Maid of Arras,' are legends
characteristic of collections made in northern France in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries.
"Little study has been made of the Latin collections in German and Italian libraries or
of the vernacular collections in these languages.
"Stella marts, no. 1. See notes, pp. 155-156.
"Ibid-, no. 1, 'Milk: Tongue and Lips Restored;' no. 8, 'Ring on Finger;' and no. 34,
'Conception.'
** The French vernacular collection of Gautier de Coincy is gathered chiefly from Latin
collections made in northern France (edited by Alexandre Eusebe Poquet, Paris, 1857), and
the anonymous Anglo-Norman collection edited by Kjellmann, op. ch~, is from the Latin
collection MS Oxford Balliol 240, etc.
Collections of Mary Legends
11
Paris with its two great monasteries, Ste. Genevieve and St. Germaindes-Pres, was already an important monastic center, when in 1108 William
of Champeaux founded the Canons of St. Victor. They lived under the
rule connected with the name of St. Augustine, as did the canons regular
of Ste. Genevieve when the monastery was reformed. A particular feature
of the Austin canons — they included also the Praemonstratensians founded
by St. Norbert in 1120 — was their devotion to the Virgin Mary.62 To the
city on the Seine in the twelfth century also came merchants, students, and
pilgrims. The road which ran from north to south across the island was
one of the great pilgrimage routes. Paris was, therefore, very early a center
of the new life in Europe which contributed to the growth of the Mary
cult and the collection of Alary legends. Although the narratives themselves offer little proof of the specific place where the collection was made,
there are strong indications that the monasteries of Paris did play a leading
part in the development of the great French collections.
There are to-day in the Bibliotheque Nationale a number of manuscript
collections, obviously related one to another, which were made in northern
France during the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. One group in particular
connects itself with the monastic and educational centers about Paris. The
first and oldest of these is MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 14463, written
in scripts of the twelfth century. It once belonged to the monastery of
St. Victor, hence Mussafia designates it SV.*3 The Sorbonne possessed two
very similar collections.64 The second is a larger collection, MS Bibliotheque
Nationale 12593or" t n e thirteenth century.65 Since it came formerly from
the library of the monastery of St. Germain-des-Pres, it is called SG. Several Paris manuscripts, with no clue as to their origin, are related also to
this series of Latin collections, especially MSS Bibliotheque Nationale
17491 of the thirteenth, 2333A of the fourteenth, and 18134 of the late
thirteenth or early fourteenth centuries. No similar compilation has been
identified as the possession of the third great monastery of Paris, Ste.
Genevieve. One did exist there in the thirteenth century, nevertheless, for
John of Garland used it in 1248 as the source of the Stella maris. The
monastery of Ste. Genevieve, then, had in the thirteenth century a collection very similar to SV and SG, manuscripts which are known to have been
the property of the two other great monasteries of Paris. It is, therefore,
reasonable to suppose that these two collections were in the thirteenth
" Ahsmann, op. cit^ pp. 26-27.
" Its contents are analyzed by Mussafia, I, 953-959" Mussafia compares the Sorbonne collections with SV, ibid^ I, 959-96^- There are also
in Brussels two collections, one of the twelfth and another of the thirteenth century, the first
series of which are almost identical with SV (Mussafia, IV, 2-5). The second series of the
earlier of the two Brussels collections, MS Brussels Phillipps 3J6, resembles that of the second
Sorbonne collection, Mussafia's Ps (Mussafia, III, 23-24).
" / « i , I, 962-969.
12
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
century lying on the shelves of their respective monasteries. If they were
also originally compiled there, then an important part in shaping the great
collections of northern France could be attributed to the Parisian monasteries, for all three collections are important links in the history of Mary
legends in northern France in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries.
The Collection of the Monastery of St. Victor
The collection of St. Victor, SV, compiled in the latter half of the
twelfth century,68 numbers seventy-seven legends, aside from the entire
local collection of Soissons. They fall into two major groups. The first
sixty-six, SV1, are legends, many of them originating in northern France,
which became widely disseminated in France and Spain. The Sorbonne
collections and two manuscripts of the Brussels Library follow SV only to
this point.67 The second series, SV2 (nos. 67-77), a r e a miscellaneous group,
among which are interpolated the De transitu beatissime virginis of Melito
of Sardis and a commentary on St. Bernard's sermon Missus est angelus
(fols. 72v-8o). Eight of the legends (nos. 67 and 71-77) may have belonged to a single small collection, for they are found together in MS British Museum Royal 6 B x with an introductory paragraph.68 This small collection also originated in northern France, for three of the tales were first
told by an abbot of Capelle, one by King Louis of France (probably Louis
VII, 1137-1180), and another by a monk of Noyon. It was, perhaps, appended to SV1 by the monks of St. Victor. Their additions did not, however, become popular enough to be told in the great collections.69
It is the first series, SV1, therefore, that is significant in the history of the
collections made in northern France. In it are included all the miracles of
the HM series, three of the Elements-series, and all except one of the TS
legends.70 The compilation is not done, however, as in the CleopatraOxford-Toulouse manuscript, simply by adding one series after another in
the same order. The Paris compiler put the tales together as one would a
mixed bouquet — several from one old source, a few from another, and
then some new ones to give variety to the compilation.71 The first seven
"Number 58, 'Maid of Arras,' mentions the date 1142, and no. 72 is told by Theodoric,
abbot of Capelle from 1141-1149. The script is in several hands of the twelfth century.
" Mussafia, I, 960-961 and IV, 2.
" W a r d , Catalogue of Romances, 11, 642-645, and Mussafia, IV, 10-11. The British Museum manuscript may have included others of the legends of SV, for it is fragmentary, and
the last legend is no. 67 of SV.
" In the Sorbonne manuscripts SV1 is followed by the De miraculis of Peter the Venerable of Cluny (d. 1156) of which MS Paris 16056 includes only a few selections. The Brussels manuscript, Phillipps 336, relates several visions in addition to the treatise of Peter the
Venerable. In Brussels 7797-7806 of the thirteenth century, there are a great many legends,
only a few of which are Mary legends. These Mussafia summarizes (Mussafia, IV, 2-5).
One originates in the church of St. Martin at Paris, another at Rheims, and several at Soissons.
TO
TS 8, 'Drowned Sacristan: Clerk Named Nonus.'
71
Collections of Mary legends were made in monasteries to be read or repeated at various
Collections of Mary Legends
13
1
numbers of SV are the first seven HM legends, except that no. 7 precedes
no. 6. A second series of eight from HM is interpolated after no. 15, although they do not follow in the same order as in Pez. The two remaining
HM anecdotes are nos. 39 and 59 of SV1. The TS tales are treated in the
same manner, as are also the remaining Pez legends. The following shows
the relationship between TS, Pez, and SV1:
1.
2.
3456.
78.
910.
•11.
12.
•3-
14.
«5-
16.
'7-
TS
Toledo
Foot Cut Off
Alusa
Mother of Mercy (Sicut iterum)
Libia
Gethsemane
Mary Image Insulted
Drowned Sacristan (Nonus)
Devil in Beasts' Shapes
Complines
Milk: Monk Laid Out
Three Knights
Eulalia
Mead
Conception
Leuricus
Saturday
Pez
18
20
21
SV1
41
65
42
43J)
26
23
37
27
30/
28/\
60
32
9
10
24)
25/
Pez
24. Son Restored
25- St. Dunstan
26.
2
7- Pilgrim in the Sea
28. Light on Masthead
3'- Jew of Bourges
33- Jew Lends to Christian
34- Hours Sung Daily
*35- Love by Black Art
36. Abbess
*37- Bonus
39- Monk Drowns: Friend Prays
40. German Nobleman
•41. Uncompleted Confession
•Versified
24
25
26
27
28
31
33'
34
35
47
48
49
5°
1
5 J
66
54/
36
55
36
37
39
38
56
4«
57/
3°
}
The table illustrates clearly a relationship between SV1 and Pez. Is SV1
derived from the completed Pez? Or did the compiler of SV1 have available some collection or collections which may be regarded as the ancestor
services. This method of compilation probably had advantages over the other. The new
legends, it may be supposed, were so placed in the collection that one or more occurred in
each reading, or so that the reading of new legends alternated with the reading of old ones.
14
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
of Pez? The latter seems to be the case. In the first place, the St. Victor
collection includes tales which belong to the TS series, but which are
omitted in the Pez collection (TS i, 3-4, 7, 12, and 14). Secondly, the
version of TS 15, 'Conception,' which SV1 presents is that of the CleopatraOxford-Toulouse collection, not that of Pez 19. In the third place, the
arrangement of the legends of SV1 indicates that the compiler had access
to a manuscript which presented TS in the form in which it is found in
Cleopatra-Toulouse, not in Pez.72 Note especially the three series TS
3-4 = SV 31-32; TS 14-15 = SV 9-10; TS 16-17 = SV 24~25- Moreover, three of the Elements-series are included in SV1 in the versions of
Cleopatra-Toulouse.13 It appears, then, that SV1 and Pez share a common
source, that one of the sources that the compiler of St. Victor used in the
making of his collection included not only HM, TS and the Elements-series,
but also the miracles which were eventually to become associated with
them to form the Pez collection. The compendium which was their common source was probably French in origin, possibly Parisian.74
These four common compendia account for forty-nine of the sixty-six
legends of SV1. Although some of them may well have originated in northern France, they spread so widely over western Europe that they have
lost much of their value as a means of distinguishing the collections of
northern France from others. It is the seventeen (or eighteen) legends75
of SV1 still unaccounted for that characterize the collections made in this
region. For many of them it is their earliest appearance in a collection of
Mary legends, and the narrative is embedded in the considerable introductory matter which belonged to them in their original form. They were
probably extracted from their original sources by some monk of Paris:
11. Mother of Mercy (Pseudo-Anselm). Meminimus et meminisse delectabile est.
12. Foot Cut Off: Grenoble. Dilectis in Christo fratribus . . . Cum nuper
in territorio Grannopolitano.
13. Bridegroom: Transported To a Remote Region. Audiant adhuc quos
audire delectat. . . . luvenis erat predives. S.M. 35.176
14. Milk: Tongue and Lips Restored. Clericus quidam vite secularis. S.M. 1.
15. Mouth of Hell. Sanctimonialis quedam sancte enutrita. S.M. 39.
29. Monk Dies Suddenly in Burgundy. Olim erat cognitus alter quidam
monachus (versified).
n
SV 42-43, which is the same as Pez 20-21, are the Libia-Gethsemane series, very frequently found together in all sorts of collections.
** The fourth legend of the Elements-series in a version different from that of CleopatraToulouse concludes SV.
"Mussafia, III, 61, believes that the intermediary manuscripts between TS and Pez were
French in origin.
"The recurrence of the number seventeen almost certainly has some particular significance in connection with Mary legends, but I have not been able to discover what it is.
** Brief summaries of such of these legends as appear in the Stella maris will be found in
the notes on legends under the appropriate number.
Collections of Mary Legends
15
33. Sacristan Worthy to Kiss Hands and Feet of Mary. Erat in quodam
sancte dei genitricis . . . cenobio frater.
34. Boy Devoted to the Devil. Inter imrumera dei genitricis . . . insignia.
v
. . . Fuit quidam nobilis affluensque. S.M. 52.
35. Excommunicate Absolved by Foolish Servant of Mary. Preiudicatis
quippe nonnullis in seculo eundi ad penas. . . . Erat quidam mire sanctitatis
presbyter.
40. Will for Deed. Fuit quidam miles nobilitate et dignitate conspicuus.
S.M. 55.
• 44. Bread. Spiris est locus famosus. S.M. 49.
45. Chaste Empress. Quam mercedem legate coniugium. . . . Hie siquidem
de quo loqui incipimus imperator. S.M. 14.
58. Maid of Arras. Memoriam gloriose virginis. . . . Erat igitur in suburbio
civitatis Atrebatensis. S.M. 33.
[58a. Poor Man Strikes Stone. Quam viagna sit. . . . Quidam pauperculus
homuntio Walterus nomine in vicinia Aquicinensis]11
61. Rich Man and Poor Widow. Fuit ecclesia cuius parrochie presbher
preerat (versified).
62. Incest. Quam seereta regis abscondere. . . . Erat Rome vir quidam
nobilis (versified).
63. Stepmother and Stepson. Chiviachus villa est episcopii Laudunensis.
64. Wife and Mistress. Est preterea aliud quiddam relatu breve exemplo.
. . . Ex relatione Atrebatensis episcopi mulier quedam fuerat.
The whole of Hugo Farsitus of Soissons is included in SV\ preceding
no. 58.
Four of the eighteen legends characteristic of SV1 are taken more or less
literally from two ecclesiastical writers of the eleventh and twelfth centuries, both of whom wrote in northern France. The first, no. 11, included
among the works of Anselm of Canterbury, is by Mauritius, archbishop of
Rouen, 1055-1067.78 Three, nos. 12, 63, and 64, come from the De laude
sancte Marie of Guibert de Nogent, chs. 10-12.79 Another tale, no. 44, is
much the same anecdote as that told by Gautier de Compiegne, De miraculis
beate virginis Marie,80 but the diction is so altered and the details so different that it can scarcely have been taken directly from that work. Two of
the legends, nos. 58 and 64, originated at Arras; one at Anchin near Douai,
no. 58a; two, nos. 12 and 29, in Burgundy; and one, no. 44, at Speyer. The
Speyer legend is, however, probably not of German authorship, for the
author remarks of a phrase which he quotes, 'as German boys say.'
The trail of four of the legends which are new in SV1 leads back to
" This legend must also originally have belonged to the collection. It follows 'Murieldis'
(HM 17), which is no. 59 of SV1 in the Brussels manuscripts and in one of the Sorbonne
manuscripts. See Mussafia, I, 961, and IV, 2.
"Andre" Wilmart, Auteurs spirkuels et textes devots du moyen age latin (Paris, 1932),
pp. 480-481. Migne, P.L., CLVIII, 946-947. The SV collection includes another version of the
same narrative, beginning Sicut iterum, a TS legend.
™ Migne, P i . , CLVI, 564-574.
80
/ W i , CLxxiii, 1383-1384. The work was written after 1141.
16
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Rome, and suggests an earlier period. The legend of 'Chaste Empress' appears to be from an ancient collection connected with Roman emperors in
which the Virgin at first had no part. In the tradition of three of the others,
'Bridegroom: Transported,' 'Boy Devoted to the Devil,' and 'Incest,' early
popes are important characters.81 It is possible, therefore, that the compiler
of SV1 had available also an ancient collection of legends from Italy. The
'Milk' legend, no. 14, is a redaction of one of the TS miracles. The origin
of the remaining five legends is unknown. All of the eighteen are related
again and again in the collections made in northern France and Spain in
both Latin and the vernaculars. With some exceptions they are not so
frequently told elsewhere in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. John of
Garland tells nine of them in the Stella marts.82
The Collection of St. Germain-des-Pres
Analysis of the St. Victor manuscript suggests the way in which collections of Mary legends grew in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. Each
compiler copied and rearranged the old legends. He rejected some, perhaps
because they did not suit his fancy, because a certain number were needed
for the requirements of the services, or because he had a certain limited
amount of parchment to fill. In any case few collections were made without adding some legends from a new source. So it was with the monk who
brought together the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres, MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593 (SG) of the thirteenth century.83 The legends,
therefore, fall into two series: SG1, nos. 1-80, and SG2, nos. 81-105.
The compiler of the collection of St. Victor had been satisfied with the
old prologue, beginning Ad oirniipotentis Dei laudem, which stood before
the HM series. The compiler of the legends of St. Germain-des-Pres, embarking upon a more ambitious project, writes a new one, beginning
Quoniam gloriosissima virgo virginum. In the last paragraph he announces
his intention to bring together the miracles of the Mother of God, those
performed 'in different times and in diverse places, upon diverse persons
of either sex, of different age, and of different condition and status; whatever is to be found in the books of the saints or scattered about in the writings of the faithful.'8i
The writer of this prologue intended to do a good deal of original research in ecclesiastical literature, but, none-the-less, the nucleus of his collection is SF 1 . Of its sixty-six legends, sixty are repeated in SG1 in almost
81
See notes on Stella marts, nos. 14, 35, 52, and 20 respectively.
See the table, pp. 74-75.
Alussafia, I, 962-969.
"MS Paris 12593, fols. 118-119, . . . diversis temporibus, diversis locis, et diversis personis
utriusque sexus, diverse etatis, diverse conditionis et ordinis . . . que in sanctorum libris vel
quorumcumque fidelium litteris dispersa reperimus.
M
M
Collections of Mary Legends
17
identical words, and another, 'Jewish Boy,' is told in a different version.85
It was, however, not the manuscript of St. Victor itself that the compiler of
St. Germain-des-Pres used, but another similar to it which he, perhaps,
found in his own monastery. A legend obviously belonging to the SV1
series, but lacking in the St. Victor manuscript, 'Poor Man Strikes Stone,'86
is no. 75 of his collection. Either he, or a compiler who preceded him, was,
moreover, strongly influenced by a twelfth-century collection which Mussafia designates as APM,81 so-called because it exists to-day in three manuscripts, MSS British Museum Arundel 346 (twelfth century), Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 18168 (twelfth century), and Montpellier 146 (twelfth
to thirteenth century), as is shown by the table on the following page.
The first twenty-six legends of SG1 in general follow the sequence of
APM, except for Sicut iterwn which is inserted between HM 4 and 5, TS
16 ('Leuricus') which is added, and TS 3 ('Alusa') which is deferred. As
in SV, however, Pseudo-Anselm is interpolated after 'Conception.' The
first twenty-five legends of SV\ on the other hand, show no marked relationship to APM, except the series 'Alead'-'Conception' (nos. 9-10).
Nevertheless, beginning with no. 26 and continuing through no. 43, SV1
is tied more closely to APM than is SG1 (see nos. 31-32,42-43, 28-30, etc.).
The APM sequence ought to be older than the sequence of SV1 1-25, because it reproduces HM 1-17 intact and certain series of TS in order (TS
12, 14-15, 1-6, n , to which SG adds TS 16) . Could there have been at
St. Germain-des-Pres a copy of SV1 older than the manuscripts of St. Victor, the Sorbonne, and the Brussels collections which reproduced the first
twenty-six legends more nearly in APM sequence? It is difficult to explain
the marked parallels between SV1, SG1, and APM in any other way. There
are two suggestions of such a collection in the Sorbonne manuscripts themselves. They follow SV1 almost exactly except that (1) 'Three Knights'
(TS 12) is placed after Pseudo-Anselm (no. 10) in approximately the same
place as in SG1 and (2) 'Theophilus' has been deferred, as in SG1, until
later in the collection (no. 27). The original home of SV1, then, may well
have been the old monastery of St. Germain-des-Pres rather than the newer
M
Mussafia, I, 962 (26). The legends of SV1 lacking in SG* are nos. 29, 38, and 61-63. The
first four are versified. The narratives selected from SV1 do not follow in the same sequence
as in their source. Small series of from two to four legends are, however, set side by side in
both collections:
SV1 SG1
SV1 SG1
1-4 = 1-4
19-22 = 14-17
5-7 = 6-8
34-35=62-63
46-49=65-68
9~U=2O-22
I2-I3=6o-6l
14-15 = 39-40
16-17 = 12-13
See above, p. 15, and ibid^ note 77.
Mussafia, II, 12-13.
50-51=70-71
56-57=76-77
00
A?M
1-17. HM, 1-17 (ending 'Murieldis')
18. Jew of Bourges P 31
19. Three Knights TS 12
20. Mead TS 14
21. Conception TS 15
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
•28.
*20.
•30.
•31.
•32.
•33.
34.
Toledo TS 1
Foot Cut Off TS 2
Musa TS 3
Mother of Mercy (Sicut
iterum) TS4
Libia TS 5
Gethsemane TS 6
Milk: Monk Laid Out
TS 11
Monk Dies Suddenly
Uncompleted Confession
P41
Wife and Mistress
Love by Black Arts P 35
Bonus P 37
Mary Image Insulted TS 7
•Versified
SV*
1-7, 18, 39, 23, 16, 17,
19-22, 59
66
60
SGl
Sorbonne
1-4, 6-18 (ending 'Murieldis') 1-7, 13, 23, 18, 32, 12,
14-17, 60
26, but a different version
67
10
9 \ 8. Theophilus
21
1 o / 1 1 . Mother of Mercy 20
(Pseudo-Anselm) 23
2
4'
65
4
103
11
8 2
50. Theophilus
\ 7 - Theophilus
22. Mother of Mercy
9J10. Mother of Mercy
(Pseudo-Anselm) 24
(Pseudo-Anselm)
25. Leuricus TS 16
3*1
CO
1
s.
1-
5 J
37
57
78
35
a
41
37
Q
43
4«
43
33
Si
27
8a
Collections of Mary Legends
19
St. Victor. The re-ordering of the legends of SG1 beginning with no. 27 is
to be explained by the desire of the compiler to group together legends
with similar themes.88 A series of five, nos. 27-31, are about Mary images;
nos. 34-35 tell of sinners saved by repeating the prayer O intemerata;
nos. 45-46, of cities saved by the Virgin; and nos. 48-56, of Mary festivals
and Mary in the liturgy.
The basic source of SG1 is the twelfth-century collection SV\ or an
earlier compilation, of which SV1 is a redaction. The addition of seventeen
legends distinguishes SG1 from SV\ legends which together may be used
to differentiate the Quoniam (the first word of SG's prologue) collections
and their descendants from others made in northern France.
29. Bridegroom: Ring on Finger. In antiquis temporibus factum de ymagine
genitricis — Erat quedam ecclesia in qua imago. S.M. 8.
30. Orleans. Omnis cetus fidelium audiat hoc miraculum— Quoddam municipium est Aurelianensi proximum civitati quod Avenon nuncupatur. S.M. 16.
31. Saracen and Mary Image. Contigit Sarracenum quendam habuisse
ymaginem. S.M. 7.
32. Unchaste Monk Warned by Widow. In territorio Corneracensi quoddam cenobium est.
33. Mare. De matre misericordie matre domini mirabilia multa narrantur —
In vicinia Remensis urbis est quoddam cenobium regule Premonstratensi
deditum. S.M. 29.
34. O intemerata: Devil as Servant. Homo quidam erat nobilis divitiis potens
et honoribus.
35. O intemerata: Buried Outside the Churchyard. Aliud quoque beneficium
gloriose virginis de eadem oratione — Erat quidem adolescens nequam.
45. Constantinople Saved. In diebus Theodosii predecessoris Leonis pape.
46. Chartres. Temporibus Karoli regis Francorum qui cognominatus est
Simplex anno ab incarnatione domini 806. S.M. 32.
47. Sardenay. Tempore quo Greci terram inhabitabant.
48. Nativity. Sancte dei genitricis semper que virginis Marie navitatis —
Solitarius quidam sancte vite fuit. S.M. 15.
49. Purification. Temporibus lustiniani Augusti quinto decimo imperil
ipsius anno. S.M. 30.
52. Thread in Lip. Dominus noster Ihesus Christus dei filius annuntiatus —
Erat quidem tune temporis in Gallia in suburbio scilicet Noviomince urbis
quedam puellula Heremburgis nomine.
53. Origin of Antiphony. O Maria virgo, pia maris Stella. Hanc suprascriptam
antiphonam docuit s. dei genitrix monachos in quodam cenobio — Laicus
quidam inibi degens.
54. Sight Restored. Est responsorium quod quidam asserunt in ecclesia non
debere cantari — Responsorii . . . istius . . . auctor exitit quidam Romamis
nomine Victor.
88
Classification according to subject matter could not account for the differences between
the first twenty-six legends of SG1 and SV1. It does explain the deviation from APM beyond
no. 26.
20
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
56. St. Luke's Portrait of Mary. Dum beatissima del genitrix moraretur cum
apostolis.
58. Barns Filled. Monasterium est valde magnum in Iherusalem. S.M. 6.
Of the seventeen tales which are new in SG1, five are from monastic or
communal records of northern France, nos. 30, 32, 33, 46, and 52. Six are
anecdotes connected with the liturgy, nos. 34-35, 48-49, and 53-54. Two
are ancient tales about Mary images, nos. 31 and 47. One is from Gregory
of Tours' In gloria tnartyrum, ch. 10, no. 58. The other three, nos. 29, 45,
and 56, have nothing in common except that they originate in Rome or
mention early popes. This is true also of nos. 53 and 54, as well as four
other legends told in SV1 and repeated in SG1, except for 'Incest' which is
lacking only because by some accident it was versified.89 These legends
probably belonged to an ancient collection of Roman origin brought to
France. A further hint of the existence of such a collection comes from
the British Museum gloss of the Stella maris, written by some one who had
seen the collection of Ste. Genevieve. John of Garland tells all of the legends except 'Constantinople,' and the author of the gloss remarks, Cum
maximo affectu compositus illo modo totaliter de miraculis beate virginis,
prout in registro Rome et etiam alibi comprobantur?0 There seems to be
no other explanation for this statement, except that a particular group of
legends in the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve were said to come from an
ancient papal 'register.' Moreover, some of the anecdotes, together with
others of the same nature, are related in MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale
$268 of the twelfth century. One of them, a tale about Leo the Great, begins, Romanorum testimonio didicimus et in conrmentariis pontificalibus?1
These two phrases, it should be noted, cover both types of ancient legends
among the Quoniam anecdotes.
The legends of the first series of the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres,
therefore, clearly point to northern France as their home. Some come from
collections already in existence there, probably including one of Roman or
Italian origin. Others are the result of the search of the works of ecclesiastical writers, of chronicles, and of monastic and communal records promised by the compiler in his preface. It is in the second series of the collection that he most specifically carries out his intention to tell tales 'of
diverse persons of either sex, of different ages and different conditions and
status.' These, as well as the seventeen tales of SG1, probably were his own
additions. In SG2 he groups the legends according to the social status of
the individuals about whom they are told. Numbers 81-90 are about priests
" T h e legends are: 'Bridegroom: Transported to a Remote Region,' SV 13 and SG 61;
'Boy Devoted to the Devil,' SV 34 and SG 6z; 'Chaste Empress,' SV 45 and SG 79; and 'Incest,' SV 62 (versified).
•° See pp. 87-88.
" Mussafia, II, 6.
Collections of Alary Legends
11
and monks; nos. 91-92, about conversi; nos. 93-95, about clerks; no. 96,
about a nun; and nos. 97-105, about laymen. The laymen include an emperor, a knight, a servant, an impoverished man, and a blind man. Two of
the tales are about boys. It may be inferred that the compiler was a monk,
for he puts even the conversi of the monastery before the clerk and the nun,
to say nothing of the emperor and the knight.
Of the twenty-five tales of SG2 only three, nos. 101-103, are wellknown in France, and even they are not the usual versions. The others
suggest some region farther from Paris. Does SG2 offer any clue as to the
home of the compiler and the origin of his legends?
A first examination of the series, SG2, suggests Germany or at least the
Rhineland as the home of these tales. The scene of two of the legends is
the Rhineland, no. 100 at Strassburg92 and no. 93 at Trier.93 A third occurred in a monastery in Germany.94 Two themes particularly popular
in German lands predominate in the collection, the 'Drowned Sacristan'
theme,95 and the theme of the 'Bread' legend.98 In fact this particular
'Bread' legend seems to be the point of departure for all others of German
origin. Two of the three popular legends, nos. 101 and 102, are from
thirteenth-century collections which exist to-day in German libraries,97
and one of them, no. 101, is a version seldom found in the French collections. Mussafia reports three collections (MSS Copenhagen Thott 26,
i2th-i3th centuries; and Leipzig 821 and 8ip, 13th century) which are
related to SG. The Copenhagen collection and the second Leipzig manuscript repeat only the first legend of SG2, no. 81. The first Leipzig collection includes six, nos. 81, 88-90, 96, and 101.98
The first series of the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres presumes northern France as its home, and the second series strongly suggests Germany
or the Rhineland. In view of these facts, was the compiler a German monk
who brought SG2 with him to Paris? Or was he, perhaps, a French monk
who had visited Germany? The author of the 'Bread' legend, no. 104,
writes at the close of his narrative, 'This, the lord Louis, abbot of St. Peter
at Chalons-sur-Marne," is a witness, was related to him by the abbot of
M
'Poor Man With Three Marriageable Daughters.' In Argentina civitate Strazburc quid am
civium (fol. 205').
** 'Student Forbidden to Swim in the River Drowns.' Part pene tnodo afflicta fuisse narratur ecclesia Trevirorum (fols. 2O2T-2O3)..
** No. 104, 'Bread.' Quantum pura simplicitas deo placeat . . . Ait namque in Alemannia
esse quoddam famosum et ditissimum cenobium (fol. 209).
"SG 1 , nos. 81, 85, 86, and 92; also SG\ no. 76.
"SO', no. 104; SG1, nos. 28 and 44.
" Mussafia, I, 969 and 946.
"* Mussafia, I, 970-975.
"Louis was abbot of St. Peter at Chalons, 1140-1166. Better known as St. Pierre-auMont, it was a Benedictine monastery founded in 1028 (Gallia Christiana, ix [Paris, 1751],
928).
22
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
that very monastery [where the incident occurred], a very truthful and
pious man, when he was studying in Germany in that same monastery.' 10°
The author says also that the abbot Louis frequently told the anecdote to
his monks in his [the author's] hearing.101 The legend which follows the
'Bread' miracle and closes the series, no. 105, comes also from the region
of Chalons-sur-Marne. It is a tale of a young boy whose soul was rescued
by St. John because he repeated the prayer O intemerata to Mary and St.
John the Evangelist. The prayer was found upon his pillow when he died.
Gonterus (fl. 1156), abbot of Chalade, a Cistercian monastery near Clermont-en-Argonne founded in 1138,102 heard it at a chapter meeting of
Cistercian abbots, to which a priest brought the scroll with the prayer on it.
Gonterus wrote down the prayer.103
The collection of St. Germain-des-Pres could, therefore, have been made
by a monk who had come to Paris at the end of the twelfth or the beginning of the thirteenth century from the region east of Paris toward the
Rhineland bringing with him a collection from a monastery of that region.
If the compiler of SG2 was the author of the 'Bread' miracle he was a monk
of the Benedictine monastery of Chalons-sur-Marne.104 In the Benedictine
monastery on the Seine he made another collection gathered from the
sources available there and appended his earlier collection to it. The whole
he refurbished with a prologue of his own, and it became the progenitor of
a group of Quoniam collections, of which John of Garland's source, the collection of Ste. Genevieve, was one.105
3. MSS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 17491 AND 2333A
Nothing is known of the origin or the compiler of the large collection
of MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 17491 (X) 106 in a script of the thirteenth century. It could scarcely have been made earlier than the last
100
MS Paris 12593, fol. 209. Hoc dominus Ludovicus, abbas Sancti Petri Cathalaunensis,
testatur sibi relatum esse ab abbate eiusdem cenobii, viro veracissimo et religiosissimo, cum in
Alemannia studendi gratia scolis deditus idem cenobium frequentaret.
101
Ibid., fol. 208. licet . . . quoddam delectabile miraculum scribere quod dominus Ludovicus venerabiUs abbas Sancti Petri Cathalaunensis monachis suis frequenter me audiente
retulit. The narrative is summarized, below, p. 199.
""Gallia Christiana, xm (Paris, 1785), 1319-1320. Gonterus was present at the council of
Rhcims in 1148, and in 1156 signed a document.
10
*MS Paris 12593, fol. 209. Querente vero presbiter accepit orationem illam, et ad Cisterciense capitulum veniens, ubi plurimi abbates illius ordinis confluxerant, quod viderat, retulit
et orationem illam Hits tradidit. Inter ceteros ergo abbates qui afferunt etiam dominus Gonterus abbas Caladiensis qui fuerat vionachus Sancti Martini Tornacensis earn descripsit seque
earn cotidie dicere asserens quibusdam et dicendam tradidit. The eighth legend of MS Cambrai 739 (Mussafia, 1,976) is a redaction of this same legend without mention of specific names
and places.
104
St. Germain-des-Pres was also a Benedictine monastery, and the compiler's own personal contribution is frequently placed at the end or near the end of the collection.
106
See p. 60.
"* Analyzed by Mussafia, I, 976-980. A number of the legends have been overlooked in
Collections of Mary Legends
13
quarter of the twelfth century, for it includes an incident recorded by the
Cistercian monk, Helinand of Froidmont (d. after 1227), under the year
1161,107 and a tale told in his later years by the abbot Baldwin of the Praemonstratensian abbey of Belleval in Lorraine, who flourished in 1179.108
The work is constructed according to no discernible plan 109 except to include under one cover as many Alary legends as possible. Among the more
than ninety numbers are the following:
1. The complete collection of Soissons by Hugo Farsitus,110 of Laon,111
and of Rocamador.112
2. Gregory of Tours, In gloria martyrum, chs. 8-10.113
3. A tale from Helinand's Chronicon.11*
4. A legend from the Cistercian monastery of Savigny in the diocese of
Avranches which is not a Mary legend.115
5. Some verses, De transitu virginis Marie, attributed by their author to
Melito of Sardis.116
6. Sixty-nine of the eighty legends of SG1.
7. Ten versified legends.117
8. Two unique legends.118
Mussafia's analysis. In order to avoid confusion, his numbers have been retained, and the
missing numbers are designated by the use of small letters. The missing legends are:
2a. Sardenay SG 47.
41a. Mother of Mercy (Pseudo-Anselm) SV 11.
55a. Gethsemane P 21.
68a. Saracen and Mary Image SG 31.
68b. Unchaste Monk Warned by Widow SG 32.
68c. Mare SG 33.
73a. Rich Man and Poor Widow SV 61 (versified).
"'Mussafia.I, 978 (65).
" • / M l , I, 979 (7*).
109
The numbers are divided into five 'pans,' each part with a carefully labelled prologue
followed by a list of titles to chapters. Upon investigation the prologues are found to be
merely the traditional prologues to the first legend in the 'part,* whose content connects it
with that miracle only. The legends within each part are numbered. Either the numbering
was done very carelessly, or the numbers were taken from the source from which the compiler worked. Some legends without numbers are interpolated between two bearing consecutive numbers; and in several cases the numbering would indicate that legends found in
the compiler's source have been omitted. In spite of considerable search no particular collection has been found in which the legends are arranged in the sequence suggested by the
numbers of X. Except for the last 'part,' which comprises versified legends, the 'pans' have
no recognisable unity.
"• MS Paris 17491, fols. 61-71V.
m
/W<Mols. 91-100.
Ibid^ fols. 103-139V.
H i , fols. 22V-24.
W<f, fols. 84-88 and Migne PX. CCXII, 1059-1063.
"» /Wrf, fols. 88-88*.
™ I bid ^ fols. 167V-169.
" T / « i , fols. 149-167V.
"*lbid^ fols. 146-149 and 169-169*. The first is said by its author to be miraculum inauditum told by the abbot Baldwin of the Praemonstratensian monastery of Belleval in the
diocese of Rheims to a brother named Gualterus as happening in his youth, how Mary ap-
24
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
The collection ends with remarks on various incidents in the life of the
Virgin, the Annunciation, Assumption, etc.
The work of the compiler of MS Paris 17491 (X) falls into two distinct
parts, each of which closes with an unique legend.119 The first series, X1,
nos. 1-72, are entirely in prose; the second, X2, nos. 73-82, are in verse, or
partly in verse, and in some cases the details differ from the prose versions
in other collections. The first collection, X1, is derived either from SG1 or
from a common source. The prologues, Quoniam gloriosissima virgo,120
are identical; and not only are sixty-nine legends the same in both collections, but there are several long series which follow in the same sequence:
SGX
X1
SG1
2
14
61
18
3
4
'5
16
6z
63
64
65
66
21
22
26
67
60
'3
14
'5
16
3'
32
33
34
29
30
31
32
33
34
67
68
68a
68b
68c
69
35
7°
68/\
69
X*
2
7
28
61
70
71
40
41
74
75
63
64
Of the seventeen legends which differentiate the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres from the earlier one of St. Victor, all but two 122 are repeated
in the first series of X in much the same order.123 Six legends, neither in
SV nor SG, have been added:
7. Columns Raised. Beata dei genitrix et perpetua virgo . . . cuius basilica
a Constantino ammirabili opere fabricata renitet. S.M. 13.
peared in a voice from heaven in the midst of a fire which engulfed his bed without burning
it. The other comes at the end of the collection to warn the reader against skepticism, how
a learned man made sport of Mary's miracles, and how she appeared to him in the middle of
the night and struck him with her sleeve on the left side of the head. It was only after he
had confessed that he recovered from the headache it gave him.
"* Numbers 71 and 83.
"° This prologue introduces only those collections which on other grounds can be connected with the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres, MS Paris 17491, MS Charleville 168 (defective in the beginning), the collection of Ste. Genevieve, MS Paris 2333A, MSS Rouen U
134 and A $3$. These comprise the Quoniam collections.
M
Especially significant because SG1 5 is a legend interpolated between two long series
of HM legends.
111
Those omitted are: no. 53, 'The Origin of O Maria virgo pia;' and no. 56, 'Portrait of
St. Luke.'
*" The long series SG 1 29-35 = X1 67-70; SG1 48-49 = X1 5-6, etc.
Collections of Mary Legends
25
8. Light in a Mary Church. Huius gloriose virginis reliquie in oratorio Marciacensis Averni territorii continentur.
9. Jewish Boy. Quid etiam in oriente actum fuerit . . . ludei cuiusdam
vicarii filius. S.M. 3.
11. Mary Relics. Huius itaque beate virginis reliquias quadam die super me
in cruce aurea positas exhibebam.
65. Judas in Hell. Omnis qui de testimonio veritatis novit agere. S.M. 27.
65a. Christ Appears to Monk. Quoniam de visionibus studio aptare pennam
cepimus quod in monasterio Saviniensi contigit sub venerabili patre . . . Serlone
relatu dignum credimus. Unus fratrum cuius novten novimus. S.M. 40.
The first four incidents are from Gregory of Tours' In gloria martyrunt,
chs. 8-1 o . m The other two are tales of visions seen by monks. The first is
recorded under the year 1161 in the Chronicon of the Cistercian monk of
Froidmont, how a novice in a monastery in England saw a vision of
heaven and hell. The second incident occurred in the Cistercian monastery of Savigny when Serlo de Vaubadon was abbot, 1140-1153 (abbot of
Clairvaux, 1153-1158), how Christ appeared to a monk on two different
occasions when he was saying mass. If the two collections do not emanate
from a common source, then MS Paris 17491 (X 1 ) would seem to be derived from the first series of the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres, because of the slightly later date, as compared with SG1, of the legends which
distinguish it;125 and because their common prologue is more at home in
SG than in X.
The versified series, X 2 , of MS Paris 17491, on the other hand, is derived
either from the first series of the collection of St. Victor (SV1) or from a
common source. Of the ten numbers, seven are identical with those of SV1,
and the sequence is almost the same in both collections: 126
Monk Laid Out as Dead
Monk Dies Suddenly in Burgundy
Uncompleted Confession
Love by Black Art
Bonus
Rich Man and Poor Widow
Incest
m
SV1
28
29
30
36
38
61
61
X1
79
78
81
76
75
73a
73
T h e second part of ch. 9, 'Barns Filled,' is no. 58 of SG1.
Among the legends of SG1 which can be dated, the most recent one is 'Mare,' an incident referred to in a letter of pope Alexander III (1159-1181) to Henry de France, archbishop of Rheims, 1162-1175 (see below, p. 184). The incident itself may have happened
earlier. Besides this tale, A1S Paris 11491 relates 'Judas in Hell,' dated 1161 in the Chronicon
of Helinand (d. after 1227), and the unique one told by the abbot Baldwin of Belleval
(fl. 1179) in his later years.
128
Numbers 74, 77, and 80 of X* are lacking in SV1. Of these nos. 74, 'Chaste Empress,'
and 77, 'Clerk of Pisa,' are only partly in verse, as if the compiler of X* had begun something he found too difficult to finish. The third, no. 80, is a version of 'Jewess in Childbirth,' not known elsewhere. The APM collections place the versified legends together at
the end of the collection, as in X.
125
26
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
The manuscript of the Bibliotheque Nationale, 2333A, in a script of the
fourteenth century, is little more than a copy of MS Paris 11491. Four of
the legends are omitted,127 and two have been added.128 The legend,
'Theophilus,' in verse replaces the prose version of X. Otherwise the legends follow in the same order.129
The growing tendency to versify the legends of the Quoniam collections
is observed in MS Charleville 168 of the thirteenth century, a collection
which has much in common with MS Paris 17491. The compiler of X2, or
some one who preceded him, versified a part of Melito of Sardis. He attempted also to turn two others into verse, but gave up after the first two
lines. The compiler of the Charleville collection adds to the number,
'Mare' and 'Unchaste Monk Warned by Widow,' besides another legend
which is unique.130
4. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 18134
The fifty-nine legends of MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 18134 in a
script of the second half of the thirteenth century or the beginning of the
fourteenth 131 may be divided into two distinctly different series: Q1, nos.
1-26, except nos. 1 and 17; and Q2, nos. 27-59 a n ^ nos. 1 and 17. The first
series, Q1, depends upon the first series of the collection of St. Victor, for
the^legends are identical in form and diction. They are told in almost the
same order in both collections except that some have been omitted from
Q1132 The prologue is the ancient Ad laude?7i prologue, as in SF. 133
""No. 5, 'Purification;' no. 57, 'Mary Relics;' no. 66, 'Conception;' and no. 72, 'Abbot
Baldwin.'
"* No. 6, 'Musa,' and no. 79, *Wife and Mistress," in verse.
IM
Mussafia, I, 981. The table is not accurate. A number of the legends of MS Paris 233}A
indicated as added legends are actually in MS Paris 17491: nos. 56, 68-70, and 75.
M0
Mussafia,II,49( 4 -6).
m
Between 1280 and 1325, is the judgment of Henri Omont. Mussafia attributes it to the
thirteenth century. See Mussafia, 'trber die von Gautier de Coincy benutzten Quellen,'
Denkschriften der kalserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften in Wien, XLIV (1894), 49,
note 1.
"* Mussafia's series of studies on Mary legends, I, 982-989, overlooks three of the legends
of MS Paris 18134. Two are among the series of Q1, 'Hieronymous' (fol. 114) and 'Fire at
Mont-St.-Michel' (fols. H4-ii4 v ); and one belongs to Q*» 'Milk: Tongue and Lips Restored'
(fols. 141-141*). The two additional legends of the first series make the case for dependence
upon SV1 stronger than Mussafia indicates. Mussafia's numbering has had to be abandoned
in this analysis, because in addition to the omissions, there are errors in the printing. In
Mussafia's study (? l = nos. 1-24, except nos. 1 and 15, and Q* = nos. 1,15, and 25-65.
Q1
SV1
O1
SV1
Q1
2
1
2
12
22
21
22
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
. 10
11
13
3
4
5
7
«3
»4
>5
34
64
23
16
17
18
28
—
30
25
26
15
19
•9
3<S
20
40
• 21
H
SV
44
45
39.
33
61
62
Collections of Mary Legends
27
2
The second series, nos. 1, 17, and 27-59 (Q ), is one of the most interesting and mysterious series in all the collections of Mary legends in Latin.
It is difficult to believe that they were originally put together by the
same person who compiled Q1, for the treatment of the two series is very
different. The compiler of the first series has painstakingly followed his
source, except for the omission of some of the legends and the rearrangement of others. In Q\ not even the most venerable legends escape radical
alteration in diction. Others are revised to make them briefer and more
dramatic in the manner of the vernacular versions of the thirteenth century.
The Latin style of the legends of Q2 is more direct than that of the original
versions, and the form is often cruder.
The thirty-five legends of Q\ aside from nos. 41 and 58 which are Pez
legends, may be divided into four groups according to the sources from
which they appear to come:
1. Eight legends, nos. 17, 27, 35, 42, 54-56 and 59,134 are unique, or not
often told in Latin collections made in northern France.
2. Fourteen legends, nos. 28-30, 34, 39, 43-47, and 49-52,135 are sufficiently similar in diction, detail, and sequence to the collection in the
French vernacular of Gautier de Coincy136 that it must be concluded either
(1) that Gautier de Coincy used Q2 in the composition of his work or (2)
that the author of Q2 was following the text of Gautier de Coincy. Although it is not possible with the evidence at hand to conclude definitely
that Gautier's vernacular collection was the source of the fourteen legends of Q2,137 a study of some of the narratives in the next classification as
well as the script of MS 18134 would indicate a date later than 1223 for the
composition of Q2, and therefore lead to the second conclusion.
184
Mussafia, I, 983-989, numbers these legends 15, 25, 41, 48, 60-62, and 65.
""Mussafia's numbers are 26-27 (no. 29 does not appear), 40, 45, 49-53, and 55-58.
"• Gautier de Coincy, Les miracles de la sainte Vierge, ed. by Alexandre Eusebe Poquet,
Paris, 1857. Three additional legends are edited by Jacob Ulrich in Zeitschrift fiir romanische
Philologie, vi (1882), 325-346. Arthur Langfors edits several from the Hermitage manuscript
in Annales Academiae Scientiarum Fennicae, series B, xxxrv (Helsinki, 1937). Mussafia in
Denkschriften, XLIV, 3-5, lists the legends as they appear in the Soissons manuscript. There is
a study of the manuscripts by Arlette P. Ducrot-Granderye in Annales Academiae Scientiarum Fennicae, xxv, 2, series B (Helsinki, 1932).
w
Mussafia, Denkschriften, XLIV, 35-54, marked the similarity in diction of nine of the
legends, noting that in one case the author of MS Paris 18134 seems to have known also the
version of the manuscript of St. Germain-des-Pres as well as that of Gautier de Coincy.
Five other legends, not noted by Mussafia, show traces in diction as well as detail of both
Gautier de Coincy and SG. Moreover, with a single exception, the legends of the Paris
manuscript 18134 a n d the Soissons manuscript of Gautier de Coincy follow in the same
sequence. The legends, not noted by Mussafia are: X \ no. 29, 'Milk: Tongue and Lips Restored;' no. 30, 'Devil in Beasts' Shapes;' rio. 39, 'Abbess;' no. 45, 'Eulalia;' and no. 46, 'Ebbo;'
Following is a table showing the parallels:
(?2
G. de Coincy
28
1,4
30
7
34
3*
28
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
3. In the third group are five legends, nos. 32-33, 36, 38 and 48,138
identified with a Latin collection referred to as the Mariale magnum, but
not now extant.139 They are similar in theme to certain tales found in other
collections where they are said to have been extracted from that enigmatical
work.140 In addition to these five legends, said to be from the Mariale
?7iagnum, which do not appear in Gautier de Coincy's collection, there are
ten or eleven other Mariale magnum legends among those fourteen in the
second group which are common to both Gautier de Coincy and MS 18134,
nos. 28-30, 34, 39,43-44,46-47,49, and probably 50.1" These numbers include all but one of the legends of MS 18134 in whose diction there are traces
of both Gautier de Coincy and another source which Mussafia believed to be
5G.142 But, the SG legends are the same versions as those found in Vincent
of Beauvais and attributed to the Mariale magnum. The compiler's second
source, therefore, could have been, not SG, but the Mariale magnum. In
view of this fact and of the appearance of the five legends of the Mariale
magnum in Q\ but not in Gautier de Coincy, it would seem that the author
of Q2 (provided he did use Gautier de Coincy as his source and not vice
versa) was employing both Gautier de Coincy and the Mariale magnum as
Q*
G. de Coincy
39
43
44
45
46
47
49
1 1 "I
50
5'
5*
12
H
20
21
23
19
3"
35 J
11,3
138
Mussafia's numbers are 29, 39, 42, 44, and 54.
"•See below, pp. 36-51.
140
Number 32, how a married woman and a clerk eloped with her husband's money and
the church treasure, in Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major, Cologne, 1747), pp. 472474 (43); no. 33, how Ubaldus, a knight, refused to deny Mary, in Vincent of Beauvais,
Speculum historiale, VII (105-106); no. 36, about an old Cistercian who could learn only
the Ave Maria, in Gobius, Scala celt (Ulm, 1480), no. 17; no. 38, of a physician, turned
Cistercian, who refused to eat coarse food, in Vincent of Beauvais, op. cit^ ch. 108; and no. 48,
of a boy drowned by a tidal wave, in Gobius, op. cit^ no. 8. These legends are treated with
great freedom by the author of MS 18134, but the number of them and the obvious similarity in theme and some of the details makes it impossible to dismiss them, as Mussafia does,
as legends which developed independently. Certain of the legends of Q' appear to come
from the vernacular collection of Gautier de Coincy. It is just possible that there was also
an intermediary vernacular collection between the Mariale magnum and 0 s (see below,
p. 30, note 157). Certain of the legends, however, follow more closely what must have been
the Latin text of the Mariale magnum.
•
ul
Mussafia's numbers are 26, —, 27, 40, 45, 49-50, 52-53, 55, and probably 56. The last
two legends often appear together. The exceptional one, 'Eulalia,' no. 45, may also be a
Mariale magnum legend, for it appears in related collections.
J4>
Mussafia in Denkschriften, XLIV, 48-49, after a comparison of the diction of MS 18134,
no. 50; SG, no. 35; and Gautier de Coincy comes to this conclusion. The same is equally
true of other legends which Mussafia apparently did not study, especially Q', nos. 29, 39,
and 46. See p. 27, note 137.
Collections of Mary Legends
29
sources. When he came upon a legend told in both his sources, his instinct
for the dramatic led him to rely chiefly upon the vernacular version of
Gautier de Coincy. Legends which he found only in the Mariale magnum,
he revised in the spirit of the vernacular examples he had before him.
Some clue as to the date of Q1 of MS Paris 18134, as ide from the script in
which it is written, is furnished by several of the legends in this third group.
The evidence, such as it is, supports the conclusion that the collection of
Gautier de Coincy, although in the vernacular, is earlier than that of Q- in
Latin. Three of the five legends of the Mariale magnum are among the
narratives of the second collection of MS British Museum 15723 of the
thirteenth century.143 The first series of this compendium depends upon
Vincent of Beauvais. The entire collection is said to have been taken from
the Mariale magnum.1** The details of three legends make it possible to
date them. Ward places one not earlier than 1161,145 another not earlier
than 1180,146 and a third not earlier than i2oo.14T A fourth legend, appearing in the Mariale magnum, but not in Q2, could have been told in its
original form as late as 1223.148 It is not at all likely that legends with
termini ex quo so late as 1200 could have been written down in Latin and
then revised by the compiler of Q2 in time for Gautier de Coincy to use
them in the early 1220's. Therefore, in the absence of other evidence,
it may be concluded tentatively that Q2 of MS Paris 18134 was composed
from at least two sources, a Latin collection known by reputation as the
Mariale magnum and the vernacular collection of Gautier de Coincy. As
such it is a most unusual collection, for ordinarily vernacular collections
were made by translation from the Latin, not Latin collections from the
vernacular.
4. The fourth group of legends comprising Q2 is a miscellaneous group
of six, nos. 1,31,37,40, 53, and 57.149 One of them, no. 40, how the Virgin
rebuked a Cistercian monk who sang softly, has the same general characteristics as the legends of the Mariale magnum, and may well belong there.150
It exists today in the French vernacular in the Miserere of the Renclus of
Aloiliens,151 written about the end of the twelfth century. A second anecdote, no. 57, is the same tale as no. 60 of MS Rouen A 535, a collection
closely related to the Mariale magnum™ The first legend of the mami-*
"* Ward, Catalogue of Romances, H, 622-636, describes this collection.
144
See below, pp. 44-48.
la
MS 18134, no. 44, 'Five Psalms.' Ward, 11, 632-633 (30).
™MS 1X134, no. 51, "Nun Could Not Unlock Door.' Ward, 11, 634 (34).
147
MS 18134, no. 34, 'One Hundred and Fifty Aves Daily.' Ward, 11, 634-635 (35).
""Ward, 11, 624-625, 'Missus Gabriel.'
148
Mussafia's numbers are 1, 28, 43, 46, 59, and 63.
150
It is a Cistercian legend, as are many others of the Mariale magnum.
la
A . G. van Hamel (ed.), Li Romans de Carite et Miserere du Renclus de Moiliens
(Paris, 1885), pp. 261-272 (232-252).
164
See below, pp. 36-39 and 46-47.
30
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
script is another which has been identified in the same version only in a
vernacular collection.153 A story similar to no. 37, how a widow taught her
son to lay garlands upon the altar of the Virgin, is told by the Dominican
preacher Herolt in the next century.184 The 'Chorister,' no. 31,155 and
'Beatrice the Sacristan,' no. 53, could also have come to MS Paris 18134 by
way of the Mariale magnum.169
It is probable that the original home of Q2 was Soissons, or the vicinity
of Soissons, for the trails which lead to and from the collection tend to
converge on that region. Not only-did the author probably use the Soissons
manuscript of Gautier de Coincy, the monk of St. Medard at Soissons, as
one of his sources, but a number of the legends told by him appear in a
large compilation of Mary lore in the vernacular made not earlier than
1328 by an anonymous of Soissons, part of which is known as the Rosarius. There may have been a copy of the Mariale magnum available in the
Soissons region about 1325, a possible date for Q2 as indicated by the script
of MS Paris 18134, because the Rosarius depends upon a Grant Marial as its
principal source.187 The author of the Rosarius knew the work of the
Renclus of Moiliens, whose vernacular poem, Miserere, yields the only
parallel to one of the legends of Q2 of MS Paris 18134}™
5. THE ROUEN Mariale
The title 'Mariale' is defined in the thirteenth century as a collection of
materials in praise of the Virgin, a sort of anthology or summa of Mary
lore. Such volumes were useful in the monasteries and churches as sources
of readings for Saturdays and the celebration of the great festivals of the
"Mn MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale French 2094, fol. i6z v . This legend is printed by
Jozef Morawski, 'Melanges de litterature pieuse: Les miracles de Notre-Dame en vers
francais,' Romania, LXI (1935), 335-341.
"* Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 70.
""The 'Chorister' is included in the Vendome collection (below, pp. 48-51). Gautier
de Coincy relates the tale, but the version of MS Paris 18134 is not the same one.
""The tale of 'Beatrice the Sacristan,' as well as several others of MS Paris 18134, is
among the legends of Caesar of Heisterbach and an anonymous collection probably made
also at the Cistercian monastery of Heisterbach, which is designated as pseudo-Caesarius.
One of the sources of these two collections seems to have been an unidentified Book of the
Miracles of Clairvaux, a probable source of some of the legends of the Mariale magnum.
See below, p. 55-59. In fact it might even be possible to conclude that the compiler of Q*
was using the Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux as one of his sources, if it were not for the
definite traces in the versions of MS Paris 18134 °f th e diction of the versions of the Mariale
magnum in those legends which certainly must have come from Gautier de Coincy. The
Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux seems to have lacked the legends of northern France, so
abundant in Gautier de Coincy and MS Paris 18134.
157
Morawski, op. cit^ pp. 316-326, and Langfors, Notices et extraits, xxxix (1916), 503662. See Morawski, p. 319, and Q', no. 1; Morawski, p. 323, and Q s , no. 53 (Mussafia, I,
987, 59); Langfors, op. cit., p. 605, and Q1, no. 48 (Mussafia, I, 986-987, 54). If the Grant
Marial were a vernacular Mariale magnum, the mystery of Q' would be solved. Comparison
of the inedited Rosarius texts with Q' could provide the answer.
u
*The relationship between the collections studied to this point may be illustrated as
follows:
Collections of Mary Legends
31
Virgin Mary.159 Some of the collections already described include scattered materials other than legends. The collection of St. Victor interpolates among the miracles, the De transitu of Melito of Sardis and a commentary on a sermon of St. Bernard. The compiler of MS Paris 17491
versified part of the De transitu, and he concludes the collection with references to scenes from the life of the Virgin.
The Public Library of Rouen has, among others, two collections of
Mary legends, one of which is a copy of the other. The earlier, MS Rouen
U 134160 of the thirteenth century, bears the title, Mariale, quod est de
laude gloriose et perpetue virginis Dei genitricis Marie. Both belonged to
the Benedictine monastery of Jumieges. The Rouen Mariale was not originally a single collection, for it has two prologues, one awkwardly following the other. The first, In libro Mariali, beginning Mirande virginis laudes
qui miratur, mirandus est nemo, ends with the statement that the work is
compiled 'from miracles and sayings of the fathers, ancient and modern.'161
In spite of this declaration, the thirteenth-century copy162 is made up of
HM, Elements-series, TS, and local collections
Pez, 12th cent.
{Ad laudem)
MS Paris 14463, SV, 12th cent.
{Ad laudem)
MS Parts 12193, SGl
{Quoniam)
MS Paris 17491, X*
(versified)
MS Paris 18134, 0 '
{Ad laudem)
[Ur-Gautier]
Gautier de Coincy
I
MS Paris 11491, X 1 {Quoniam)
MS Paris 18134, Q', 1300-1325
MS Paris 2333A, 14th cent.
MS Cambrai 739, a collection of Mary legends and sermons about the Virgin, suggests
that they were repeated at certain services. The sermons and the miracles are each divided
into three readings {lectiones). The manuscript has two rubrics which explain their use:
Incipiunt miracula beatissime virginis Marie que dicuntur ad matutinas, quando agitur de
S. Maria privatis noctibus, and Serniones de S. M. que dicuntur privatis noctibus quando
agitur de S. M. ad matutinum cum miraculis supradictis. See Mussafia, I, 975-976.
160
Albert Poncelet, 'Catalogus codicum hagiographicorum latinorum Bibliothecae Publicae
Rotomagensis,' Analecta Bollandiana, xxm (1904), 143-146 and 214. A collection also entitled 'Mariale' is MS Brussels Phillipps 336, of the twelfth century (Mussafia, III, 23-24 and
IV, 2-5). Vincent of Beauvais, too, used a collection which he called 'Mariale.'
161
Poncelet, op. cit^ p. 144, huius libelli series ex miraculis et ex dictis patrum veterum et
recentium tota contexitur. It is possible that this is the prologue also of MS Paris $268, the
first folio of which is mutilated (Mussafia, II, 5).
"" Excerpts from a sermon of St. Augustine are inserted in the fourteenth-century copy
which is MS Rouen A $3$.
159
32
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
legends only, four of which are not Mary legends. A second prologue,
Generalis prefatio, which belongs specifically to the series of Mary legends,
follows immediately. It is the prologue of SG and MS Paris 17491, Quomain gloriosissima virgo virginum.163
As the second prologue foreshadows, the Rouen Mariale is a descendant
of the collections of St. Germain-des-Pres and MS Paris 17491, X1. Of the
sixty-four legends of the Rouen collections, the first forty-three, R\ are
the same, except for changes in diction and sequence, as those of the first
series of MS Paris 17491. Among the anecdotes common to both are three
of particular significance because they have been found only in Quoniam
collections, including the Stella maris: the vision of 'Judas in Hell' from
Helinand of Froidmont; following it, as in MS Paris 17491, that of the
monk to whom Christ appeared while he was saying mass; and the legend
of the fire in the church at Mare. The series from Gregory of Tours follows in the same order in both except that chapter 18 of the In gloria
martyrum has been interpolated between the two legends of chapter 8, and
chapter 10 has been omitted. Both are legends about Mary relics. The
fact that the series in MS Paris 17491 (X1) is chapters 8-10 without modification suggests that chapter 18 is a substitution made by the compiler of
the Rouen Mariale or his source, and that X1 of MS Paris 17491 is the earlier
collection. That the Rouen Mariale was not copied directly from X1 as
it appears in the Paris manuscript 17491, however, is indicated by the presence of 'Musa,' which is omitted in X1, in its appropriate place before 'Columns Raised,' as in MS Paris 2333A, clearly related to X1.164 The Stella
maris includes, not only the three distinctive legends common to MS Paris
17491 and the Rouen Mariale, but also three from the Gregory of Tours
series.165
1M
Even the title, Generalis prefatio, is from MS Paris 17491 and SG.
The following table records legends in series common to both collections:
MS Paris 17491
Rouen
MS 2333A
5. Purification
4
—
6. Nativity
5
—
[Musa]
6
6
7. Columns Raised ch. 8a
7
7
[Mary Relics] ch. 18
8
8. Light in a Mary Church ch. 8b
9
8
9. Jewish Boy ch. 9a
10
9
10. Barns Filled ch. 9b
11
10
11. Mary Relics ch. 10
—
11
51. Three Knights
41
52. Eulalia
42
58. Bread
38
59. Hours Sung Daily
39
65. Judas in Hell
1
65a. Christ Appears to Monk
2
68c. Mare
18
"* 'Judas,' no. 27; 'Christ Appears to Monk,' no. 40; 'Mare,' no. 29; and from Gregory of
Tours, nos. 3, 6, and 13, as well as a legend (no. 53) which is a redaction of ch. 21 of the
same work.
184
Collections of Mary Legends
33
There is other evidence that MS Paris 17491 was not the immediate
source of the Rouen Mariale. The Rouen collection uses prose versions of
two legends,166 versified or partly versified, in the second series, X2, of MS
Paris 17491 and in the collection of St. Victor. Their presence here is significant, because they are part of a series which appears in versified redactions in the Parisian collections, with the exception of the Stella marts, and
in prose versions in the Mariale magnum and the Stella maris.1*1 These facts
imply not only that MS Paris 17491 was not the source of the Rouen
Mariale, but also that the Rouen Mariale shares a common source with the
Mariale ?nagnum, or that its source was the Mariale magnum.
The second series of the Rouen Mariale, R2 (nos. 44-64), provides more
evidence of its relation to the Mariale magnum. The twenty-one legends
include six which have not been found in other collections,168 and six which
are more or less familiar.169 A third group of eight are characteristic only
of the Mariale magnum and collections related to it:
44. Painter of Flanders.170 Caritati diligentium virginem viatrem Christi
Iesu Mariam incentivum aliquod superaddi cupientes, parvum sed pulchrum quid
de pictore quodam loqummr, qui eidem Domine pro vite sue nierito familiaris in
partibus Flandrie sibi nomen fecerat. S.M. 54.
45. Unwilling to Deny Mary.171 Lapsis gravi peccatorum ruina . . . In Aquitanie itaque partibus in castello quodam milites duo principabantur.
46. Cisterian Monks at Their Field Work.172 Laborantis anima laborabat
sibi . . . Nobilis quidam honeste in seculo vite tiviens ne in vacuum curreret.
47. Christ Image Broken by Brabantine Blasphemers.173 luxta castrum
Radulfi est quedam abbatia, que Dolis vocatur.
48. Cistercian Monk Persecuted.174 Rei geste quam sequens perstringit lectio.
*** Rouen Mariale, no. 34, 'Chaste Empress,' of which only the first sentences are versified,
and no. 36, 'Bonus.' The latter is included in versified form, not only in the Parisian collections, but also in Pez, no. 37. The collection of St. Germain-des-Pres omits it. Following
the two versified legends in the Rouen Mariale is 'Poor Man Strikes Stone' (no. 37). In the
legends which Vincent of Beauvais took from the Mariale magnum, this legend occupies the
same position following 'Bonus.'
""John of Garland has, of course, versified all the legends he uses, but his details are
those of the prose versions which he found in the collection of Ste. Genevieve. See especially
'Jewess in Childbirth,' Stella marts, no. 37, and MS Paris 17491, no. 80. (Mussafia, I, 979-980.)
148
Rouen Mariale, nos. 56-59, 61, and 64: no. 56, how an English priest was freed of
demons by reciting O intemerata (suggests no. 1 of MS Paris 18134); n o - 57« n o t a Mary
legend; no. 58, how a girl of Lausanne was rescued by Mary (there is another legend of
Lausanne in MS Additional IJJJJ); no. 59, how a captive was liberated from prison; no. 61,
how the niece of a wicked man of Rouen accused of being an accomplice in one of his
crimes was freed; and no. 64, about an abbot who ate a spider with the sacrament, which is
not a Mary legend.
J
" Rouen Mariale, nos. 49, 51-52, 54-55: no. 49, 'Fulbert of Chartres,' is found chiefly in
Anglo-Norman collections; no. 51, from Peter the Venerable (Migne, PX., CLXXXIX, 949-950);
no. 52, from Lanfranc (ed. J. A. Giles, Oxford, 1844, 1, 340-349); nos. 54-55 are Pez, 4-5;
no. 63, 'Beirut,' is not a Mary legend, but does appear in the Stella maris, no. 21.
170
Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII, ch. 104.
m
Ibid^ chs. 105-106.
171
/ « i , ch. 107.
"• /«</, ch. 110.
"' /«<*, ch. 109.
34
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
. . . In quodam aiebat [Simon, abbas de Los] Cisterciensis [ordinis] monasterio
fuit monachus quidam religiosus.
53. Monk Who Recited Five Psalms Daily.175 Quidam archiepiscopus Cantuariensis ecclesie.
60. Chaplain Whom Mary Chose.176 In territorio Lexoviensi quidam fuit
iuvenis natalibus onus non infimis.
62. Demons in the Form of Swine.177 Fuit ex eorum numero, quos Cartusiensis ordo suscipit laicus quidam humilis genere.
Besides the two prose legends of Rl and the eight tales of R2, eleven
others m of the narratives of R1 are also identified with the Mariale magnum
by the compilers of collections yet to be analyzed.179 Moreover, the sequence of certain of the legends of both R1 and R2 was determined either
by the Mariale magnum or a common source.180
The Rouen Mariale, therefore, betrays evidence of two collections: (1)
a Quoniam collection similar to, but not the same as MS Paris 11491 (X 1 ,
but not X 2 ); and (2) the Mariale magnum. It was not composed, however,
simply by uniting two collections, for the sequence of the legends throughout must have been influenced by the Mariale magnum, or a collection
much like it. On the other hand, the more detailed comparison of the
Rouen Mariale with the collection of Vincent of Beauvais which follows
does not justify the conclusion that the Rouen Mariale was descended from
the Mariale magnum. It was, instead, probably derived from a single collection which was the common source of both. That collection, as yet
unidentified, will be referred to at present as the Ur-Mariale.1Bl
The title Mariale was, perhaps, borrowed from its source, as was also the
title Mariale magnum, hence the first prologue of the Rouen collections,
In libro Mariali. The concluding sentence of the same prologue, huius
libelli series ex miraculis et ex dictis patrum veterum et recentium tota conlre
Gobius, Scala cell, no. 21 and MS British Museum Additional 15723 attribute it to the
Mariale magnum. Vincent of Beauvais tells the tale (ch. 116), but it is not one of the legends
which he attributes to the Mariale magnum.
ln
MS Paris 18134, no. 57 (fols. 166-168).
177
Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII, ch. 112.
in
'
Rouen Mariale, nos. 7, 16-17, 20» 24~26, 32, 35. 37-38. In addition to the table on pp.
35-36, see also p. 42.
179
Below, pp. 37-48.
180
See pp. 38 and 46-47 for a comparison of the legends of the Rouen Mariale and the
Mariale magnum, as it is known through the summaries of Vincent of Beauvais.
Ml
MS Paris 11491, X 1
X
[Ur-Marialei
I
Rouen Mariale
[Mariale magnumi
Collections of Mary Legends
35
1 2
texitur, makes a promise that is not really fulfilled in the Rouen Mariale, *
which is made up entirely of legends. It is fair to suppose that the source
from which the legends were drawn did include matter of this sort. A
study of the collections descended from the Mariale magnum yields evidence that it did.
The following table compares the Rouen Mariale with other collections:
Stella
Vincent of
Rouen Mariale (R1)
X
marts
Beauvais
1. Judas in Hell
65
27
—
2. Christ Appears to Monk
65a
40
—
3. Stained Corporal P 14
33
—
—
4. Purification
5
30
—
5. Nativity
6
15
119a
6. Musa TS 3
—
—
—
7. Columns Raised
7
13
81a
8. Gregory of Tours, ch. 18
—
— 183
—
9. Light in a Mary Church
8
—
—
10. Jewish Boy
9
3
—
n . Barns Filled
10
6
—
12. Libia T S 5
3
17
—
13. Gethsemane TS 6
5a
—
—
14. Saracen and Mary Image
68a
7
119b
15. Mary Image Insulted T S 7
4
18
119c
16. Toledo T S 1
36
9
81b
17. J e w Lends to Christian P 33
29
19
82
18. Mare
68c
29
—
19. Fire at Mont-St.-Michel P 15
34
41
—
20. Orleans
68
26
83
' 21. Constantinople
1
—
—
22. Chartres
23
32
—
23. Sight Restored
12
31
—
24. Milk: Tongue and Lips Restored . . . 25
1
84
25. Childbirth in the Sea P 22
27
—
85
26. Abbess P 36
38
2
86
•27. Uncompleted Confession P 41
81
—
—
28. Devil in Beasts' Shapes T S 9
26
5
—
29. Kiss Hands and Feet
48
—
—
30. Bridegroom: Transported
18
35
—
31. Son Restored P 24
28
4
—
32. Pilgrim in the Sea P 27-28
40
10
88-89
33. Saturday TS 17
56
58
—
34. Chaste Empress
—
14
9°-92
35. St. Dunstan P 25-26
60
—
113
36. Bonus P 37
—
—
97 a
37. Poor Man Strikes Stone
64
—
98
* Versified.
""There are, of course, the legends from 'recent' fathers, Peter the Venerable (no. 51)
and Lanfranc (no. 52).
*" Chapter 21 of the same work is no. 53, of the Stella marts.
36
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
X
Stella
maris
Vincent of
Beauvais
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
Bread
Hours Sung Daily P 34
O intemerata: Buried Outside
Three Knights TS 12
Eulalia TS 13
Leuricus TS 16
58
59
70
51
52
55
49
23
—
—
—
—
99b
—
—
—
—
—
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
61.
63.
64.
Rouen Mariale (R*)
Painter of Flanders
Will not Deny Alary
Monks at Their Field Work
Brabantine Blasphemers
Cistercian Monk Persecuted
Milk: Fulbert of Chartres
Liberated by the Prayers of Brothers
Peter the Venerable, ch. 30
Lanfranc
Five Psalms
Five Joys P 4
Charitable Almsman P 5
O intemerata: Son of a Priest
King of France
Girl of Lausanne
Liberated from Captivity
Mary Choses a Chaplain
Niece of a Wicked Man
Demons as Swine
Beirut
Abbot Eats Spider
Thread in Lip184
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
16
49
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
54
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
48
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
21
—
—
104
105-106
107
no
109
—
—
—
—
116
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
112
—
—
89b
6. THE Mariale magnum
The history of Alary legends in France presents no more intriguing problem than the Mariale magnum, known at present only by reputation. It
must have been a work of importance in its day, for it is cited by French
compilers of Alary lore from the middle of the thirteenth to the fifteenth
century. The most accurate information as to its nature and content comes
from the collection of Alary legends which Vincent of Beauvais incorporates in the Speculum historiale™* The work was probably completed by
1244, certainly by 1247.186 Since one of the legends which the compiler
184
A separate article immediately following the Mary legends.
** Bibliotheca tnundl Vincentii Burgundi; speculum quadruplex, naturale, doctrinale,
morale, historiale (Douai, 1624), vol. iv. In this edition the legends are in Bk. VII, chs. 80119, pp. 250-266.
"*B. L. Ullman, 'A Project for a New Edition of Vincent of Beauvais,' Speculum, vm
(1933), 316.
Collections of Alary Legends
37
attributes to it mentions the year 1187,187 the Mariale magnum must have
been compiled, as Vincent of Beauvais used it, in the sixty years between
1187 and 1247.
The Collection of Vincent of Beauvais
Vincent of Beauvais' legends are preceded by excerpts from the De
transitu of Melito of Sardis and the vision of the assumption of the Virgin
from Elizabeth of Schonau (d. 1165).188 That these selections have a definite connection with the miracles about to be related, he makes clear when
he begins the author's note introducing the legends with Post Assumptionem. The note itself sheds light on the character of the Mariale ?nagnum,
After her assumption the Virgin was made illustrious by many miracles [performed] in various parts of the earth and at various times. Certain of these
worthy of credence and approved by religious men, to her honor and the enlightenment of the reader, we wish to insert briefly in this work in this fashion.189
This statement by Vincent of Beauvais himself is followed immediately in
the same chapter by the words Ex Mariali magno and a series of legends
occupying chapters 81-119. In the middle of chapter 113, the author, after
merely alluding to several legends, breaks in with the words Explicit de
Mariali magno. Item alia. He gives no information about the source of the
additional miracles which follow in chapters 113-119, except that he tells
two of them elsewhere in the Speculum historiale and attributes them to the
'Mariale.' 190 His collection, therefore, may be divided into two series:
V1, chs. 81-113b (33 legends) and V2, chs. 1130-119 (10 legends).
The most striking characteristics about the work of Vincent of Beauvais
are (1) its similarity to the Rouen Mariale and (2) the large number of
Cistercian legends it includes. Certain phrases of the author's note suggest
the Quoniam gloriosissima virgo prologue of the Rouen Mariale}91 Vincent
187
Vincent of Beauvais, op. clt^ VII, ch. no, how in 1187 during a war between Henry II
and Philip Augustus two Brabantines blasphemed and stoned a Mary image. The Douai edition which has been cited erroneously reads 1287.
lx
lbtd~, VII, chs. 75-80. Schonau was a Benedictine monastery founded at Trier in the
twelfth century. The visions of St. Elizabeth, related by her brother Egbert or Eckbert of
Schonau, were well-known in the middle ages. A large number of manuscripts remain.
Cf. F. W . E. Roth, Die Visionen und Briefe der hi. Elisabeth (2nd ed., Briinn, 1886), and
Ruth J. Dean, 'Manuscripts of St. Elizabeth of Schonau in England,' Modern Language Review, xxxii (1937), 62-71. The De transitu beate virginis of Melito of Sardis is edited in
Bibliotheca maxima veterum patrum (Lyons, 1677), 11, pt. ii, 212-216.
189
Vincent of Beauvais, op. cit^ ch. 81. Author. Post Assumptionem vero suam beatisshna
Virgo multis miraculis per diversas orbis panes, diversis quoque temporibus clarificata est.
Ex quibus quaedam fide digna, et a religiosis viris approbata, ad ipsius honorem, et legentium
aedificationem, huic operi inserere voluimus breviter in hunc modum.
"°lbid^ ch. 119a, 'Nativity' in VI, ch. 6y, and ch. 114, 'Vision of St. Hugh of Cluny,' in
XXVI, ch. 7. Ward has assumed that he meant the Mariale magnum (Catalogue of Ro?nances,
11, 624).
181
MS Paris 17491, fol. 16, miracula . . . diversis temporibus, diversis locis et diversis
personis, . . . ad edificationem legentium in unum corpus collecta compegimus; Vincent
38
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
of Beauvais, furthermore, adds portions of the De transhu of Melito of
Sardis and the visions of Elizabeth of Schonau to the variety of materials
promised in the Mirande virginis laudes prologue of the Rouen Mariale.
Melito of Sardis (died c. 190) is an 'ancient' father, and the brother of St.
Elizabeth (d. 1165), a 'recent' one. The Mariale magnum, therefore, maywell have used both the Mirande and the Quoniam prologues of the Rouen
Mariale. Although there are many omissions and some additions, the narratives which Vincent of Beauvais, V1, took from the Mariale magnum follow in much the same order as those of the Rouen collection:
V1
Rouen
V1
ch. 81a
7
81b
16
100
82
'7
101
83
20
84
85
86
87
88
89a
89b
24
25
26
—
90-92
34
—
—
3<5
37
—
93-95
96
97
98
99a
99b
102-103
104a
104b
105-106
32
32a
192
107
108
109
110a
nob
in
112
113a
113b
Rouen
38
—
—
44
45
46
48
47
—
—
62
—
35
The first six legends of the Rouen Mariale are lacking in Vincent of Beauvais and possibly in his source, the Mariale ?nagnum.193 Of the twenty-one
others which are missing, fourteen are either Pez or TS legends.194 These
data suggest that the Mariale magnum had eliminated many of the legends
of the earliest collections, perhaps because they were lacking in the authority that mention of names, places, and witnesses gives.
of Beauvais, ch. 81, Virgo multis miraculis per diversas orbis panes, diver sis quoque temporibus clarificata est . . . quaedam . . . ad ipsius bonorem, et legentium aedificationem,
hide operi inserere voluimus . . .
"* Vincent of Beauvais, ch. 89b, the sermon on the Annunciation by Radbod II of Noyon,
who died in 1028 (Migne, PX., CL, 1531), follows the collection of Mary legends in the Rouen
Mariale as a separate article.
m
The first six include the legends which serve to establish a clear relationship between
X 1 and Rl: 'Judas in Hell,' 'Christ Appears to Monk,' 'Mare,' and the series from Gregory of
Tours. One of the Gregory of Tours legends ('Columns Raised,' ch. 81a), however, stands
at the beginning of F 1 .
"*TS 3, 5-6, 9, 17, 12-13, a n d '6. all of which occur in the Rouen Mariale in the order
listed and in MS Paris 17491 (except 'Musa' which really belonged there) are lacking in
Vincent of Beauvais. He relates only TS 1 and 7. Of the remaining Pez legends included in
Rl and X \ nos. 14-15, 41, 24, and 34 are lacking in V1, while nos. 22, 36, 27-28, and 25-26
appear there. See table, pp. 35-36.
Collections of Mary Legends
39
In spite of the striking similarity in sequence, Vincent of Beauvais was
not the source of the Rouen Mariale, for his versions are only summaries
which are told in full, many of them with prologues, in the Rouen Mariale.
Nor was the Rouen Mariale the source of Vincent of Beauvais. Aside from
the fact that the Dominican says that his source was a collection called the
Mariale magnum, there is other evidence that it was not. The second series
(X 2 ) of MS Paris 17491, already noted, was a series of ten versified, or
partly versified, legends. Of the ten, Vincent of Beauvais tells five in prose,
the Rouen Mariale only two, and John of Garland three. Moreover, they
follow in the first three collections in approximately the same order,
Rouen
(prose)
MS Paris 17491 (X1)
73. Incest
73a. Rich Man and Poor Widow
74. Chaste Empress
75. Bonus
[Poor Man Strikes Stone]
76. Love by Black Art
77. Clerk of Pisa
78. Monk Dies Suddenly
79. Monk Laid Out as Dead
80. Jewess in Childbirth
81. Uncompleted Confession195
K...
—
—
34
36
37
—
—
—
—
—
—
F 1 (prose)
chs. 93-95
96
90-92
97
98
—
—
—
—
99a
—
Stella
marts
20
—
'4
—
—
—
—
—
—
37
—
Obviously there was somewhere in the ancestry of the Rouen Mariale
and Vincent of Beauvais a collection which narrated at least five of these
ten legends and 'Poor Man Strikes Stone' in prose in much the same sequence as in MS Paris IJ491' The natural conclusion would be that it was
the Mariale magnum, Vincent of Beauvais' source; and that it was likewise
the source of the Rouen Mariale. There are several reasons, however, why
the Mariale magnum could not have been the source of the Rouen Mariale,
and why it is necessary to look upon the source of the Rouen collection,
the Ur-Mariale, as the common ancestor of the Mariale magnum and the
Rouen Mariale\
1. A significant series of legends19G and a large number of the TS anecdotes which are at home in the Rouen Mariale are lacking in Vincent of
Beauvais and probably also in the Mariale magnuvi.
2. A study of the ten legends which Vincent of Beauvais adds to those
of the Rouen Mariale pre-supposes a more remote common ancestor than
the Mariale magnum. Five of the ten are tales of other Quoniam collec"°This legend appears in the Rouen Mariale in verse, no. 27.
"* The series common to X1 and the Rouen Mariale (Judas, etc.).
40
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
tions.197 The other five, however, are legends not yet encountered in the
collections of northern France:
chs. 102-103. Girl Named Mary. Erat miles quidam dives, et in bellis
famosus.
ch. 104b. Blasphemer of Lausanne. In Mis partibus quidam in taberna, cum
tessera ludens.
ch. 108. Electuary. Apud Claramvallem quidam cum promisisset fieri se
monachum.
ch. 110b. Saracens Unable to Injure Mary Image.198 Quandavi sancte Marie
basilicam ingressi Saraceni.
ch. i n . Jew of London. Quidam Iudeus nomine lacobus a Londonia . . .
apud Wintoniam pergens.
Comparison of three versions of the second narrative in this group provides
more definite proof of the existence of the Ur-Mariale which was the common source of the Rouen Mariale and the Mariale magnum. The anecdote
of the 'Blasphemer' is told following the 'Painter of Flanders' in Vincent of
Beauvais, MS British Museum Additional 15723 (fol. 79) and Gobius,
Scala celt (nos. 33 and 34). All three compilers attribute both narratives to
the Mariale magnum. Vincent of Beauvais does not record the scene of the
second incident — presumably, then, it was Flanders, for the text begins In
illis partibus, and Flanders is the scene of the preceding legend. The Additional version omits the scene of the 'Painter' and incorporates apud Lausennam into the text of the 'Blasphemer.' Gobius substitutes in Lavana for the
first phrase. Since 'Lavana' cannot be identified, it is almost certainly a
corruption of 'Lausana.' These variations can be explained only with the
help of an unique legend from the Rouen Mariale and the supposition of an
Ur-Mariale which was the source of the Rouen collection and the Mariale
magnum. Rouen Mariale, no. 58, relates a tale of a girl in Lausenna civitate 199 who was saved from burning by the Virgin Mary. The Ur-Mariale,
it may be conjectured, related the legend of the 'Girl of Lausanne' first
and following it, the 'Blasphemer,' beginning In illis partibus. The compiler of the Mariale magnum omitted the first legend and placed the second
after the 'Painter of Flanders,' probably inscribing apud Lausennam in the
margin opposite the 'Blasphemer.'200 The compiler of the Additional colm
F1
ch. 93-95
99a
100
101
113a
X1
—
—
Stella maris
20
37
61
69
17
'—
—
16
""This tale is told in fuller form in MS Toulouse 418 (Mussafia, II, 30).
™* These are the only tales from Lausanne noted in all the collections examined.
""This is frequently done in the text of the Stella maris and elsewhere in collections of
Mary legends. See glosses on 11. 142, 220, 244, etc.
Collections of Mary Legends
41
lection, who used the Mariale viagnum, noted the confusion which this
created. He naturally thought, however, that the two legends belonged
together, and so he solved the problem by incorporating apud Lausennam
into the text of the 'Blasphemer' and omitting Flandrie from the text of the
'Painter.' Gobius merely substituted in Lausana for the first phrase of the
'Blasphemer.'201 Because Vincent of Beauvais failed to interpolate the
name of the place into his text it was lost, and therefore his 'Blasphemer'
appears to be from Flanders instead of Lausanne, its proper home.
3. A study of the Cistercian legends of the Rouen Mariale and those
which Vincent of Beauvais took from the Mariale magnum fits into the
same hypothesis. He says in his note that the legends he used had the sanction of a religious order.202 Both the Rouen Mariale and the collection of
Vincent of Beauvais are, for the most part, made up of legends of northern
France, especially those of the Quoniam collections. Only occasionally do
the latter include Cistercian materials. The first series of MS Paris 11491
and the Stella maris relate two, 'Judas in Hell' and 'Christ Appears to
Monk.'203 The Rouen Mariale, whose source was the Ur-Mariale, adds to
these, three which may be identified as Cistercian.204 In the first series,
those which* he took from the Mariale magnum, Vincent of Beauvais relates
sixteen legends which are not in MS Paris 17491, a series of five, except for
the interpolation between nos. 4 and 5 of 'Poor Man Strikes Stone,' and
another of eleven.205 The five are the versified legends of MS Paris 17491
which have been accounted for. Of the eleven remaining, three in a series
are legends about Cistercian monks,208 two of them monks of Clairvaux.
m
Gobius and others have in like manner preserved the scene of other legends. The
legend, 'Girl Named Mary,' Gobius says happened in Armandia; Vincent of Beauvais omits
the scene. The compiler of the Additional manuscript probably copied the text of this particular legend from Vincent of Beauvais, but he had the Mariale magnum at hand. A number of the legends and probably certain details which he adds to Vincent of Beauvais' text
were from the Mariale magnum itself (cf. pp. 45-48 and note 219).
M
I t would be logical to suppose that it was his own, the Dominican order, especially
since these same legends were so frequently used by Dominican preachers in the next century. There is no evidence of their use by the Dominicans in the first half of the thirteenth
century.
m
Stella maris, no. 12, should not be confused with a similar tale from the Exordium
magnum ordinis Cisterciensis, Migne, PX., CLXXXV", 1129-1131 (5). It is a Cluniac legend as
told by both John of Garland and Vincent of Beauvais.
*"* Rouen Mariale, no. 46, 'Cistercian Monks at Their Field Work;' no. 48, 'Cistercian
Monk Persecuted,' told by Simon, abbot of Loz (d. 1204), a Cistercian monastery near Lille
in the diocese of Tournai; no. 53, 'Five Psalms,' witnessed by a bishop of Arras, who had
previously been a Cistercian abbot.
"* Vincent of Beauvais, chs. 90-993 and 102-112.
m
lbidn chs. 107-109, 'Monks at Their Field Work,' 'Electuary,' and 'Cistercian Monk
Persecuted.' Tales similar to the first two are to be found in the work of a Cistercian,
Herbert of Torres (or Clairvaux), Migne, PL^ CLXXXV", 1273-1275, 1365-1366; and Exordium,
ibid^ pp. 1062-1063 and 1077-1078. The legends as told by Vincent of Beauvais, however, do
not come from either of these sources, although they are sufficiently similar in detail so that
they must have had a common origin. The origin of the third is unknown, except that it was
told by a Cistercian abbot.
42
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Two of the three are narrated in the Rouen Mariale, one from Clairvaux.207
These data lead to the conclusion that the Mariale magnum and probably
also the Ur-Mariale were Cistercian collections. The Benedictine of Jumieges, who compiled the Rouen Mariale, was not interested in all the Cistercian legends in his source. The compiler of the Mariale magnum, a Cistercian, copied all of them and passed them on to Vincent of Beauvais.
4. Strangely enough, an analysis of the ten legends of Vincent of Beauvais' collection which he drew from a source other than the Mariale magnum, V2, provides more proof of the existence of an Ur-Mariale which was
the source of both the Rouen Mariale and the Mariale magnum. Four only
of the ten legends which comprise it are not found in MS Paris 17491 and
the Parisian collections, except the Stella maris. Three of the four are told
in sequence. One of the sequence is a Cistercian legend, told also in the
Rouen Mariale. Two of the four, as well as six others, eight of the ten, are
legends of the Stella maris. The series, V2, then, was evidently also selected
from a Cistercian collection related to MS Paris 11491 and John of Garland's source, the collection of Ste. Genevieve, a description which fits the
Mariale magnum. Furthermore, two of the tales of V2, Vincent of Beauvais tells elsewhere and attributes them to the 'Mariale.' It has been presumed without question that he meant the Mariale magnum,208 and it would
appear to be true, especially since four more of the ten legends are attributed to the Mariale viagnum by other compilers who used it:
Vincent of Beauvais, V
ch. 113c. Priest of One Mass
114. Vision of St. Hugh of Cluny . . .
115. Boy Devoted to the Devil
n6a.Ebbo
116b. Five Psalms
117. Woman Revived for Confession
118. Little Devil in Church
119a. Nativity
119b. Saracen and Mary Image
119c. Mary Image Insulted
X1
13
—
21
43
—
—
—
6
68a
4
R
—
—
—
—
53
—
—
5
14
15
Stella maris
25
—
52
61
—
12
42
15
7
18
M 209
MM 2 1 0
MM
MM
MM
M
It might be supposed, then, that Vincent of Beauvais gathered the second
series, V2, also, from the Mariale magnum, if it were not for his own statement and the fact that in Book XXIX, ch. 4 of the Speculum historiale, he
reproduces the entire series of Rocamador with the note, in Mariali; and
*" MS Rouen A $3$, nos. 46 and 48.
""Ward, Catalogue of Romances, 11, 624. Or, it is sometimes assumed that he used the
term generally to apply to any collection of Mary legends.
*"M = attributed to the 'Mariale' by Vincent of Beauvais. See above, p. 37, note 190.
""MM = attributed to the Mariale magnum: ch. 116a, by Gobius, no. 54; ch. n6b, in
MS.Additional 15723, fols. 80-85', a n d Gobius, no. 21; ch. 117, by the anonymous author of
the Rosarius; ch. 118, by Gobius, no. 22.
Collections of Mary Legends
43
nothing has come to light about the Mariale magnum that would justify the
inference that it included any of the local series which are sometimes incorporated in the Parisian collections.211 The complete collection of
Rocamador is to be found in MS Paris 17491,212 which, as has already been
noted, has much in common with the Rouen Mariale. Although the Rouen
Mariale does not recount the miracles of Rocamador, it is quite possible
that the Ur-Mariale did, and that when Vincent of Beauvais cites the
Mariale he means the very collection to which we have given the name UrMariale. It could then be concluded that the collection to which he turned
after he had finished with the Mariale magnum was its source, the UrMariale.
All the data which has been presented about V2 would, in that case, fit
neatly into place. (1) The four legends which other compilers attribute to
the Mariale magnum are legends of the Ur-Mariale which were retold in a
portion of the Mariale magnum, not used by the Dominican encyclopedist
for the summaries of V1. (2) The Rouen Mariale, also dependent upon the
Ur-Mariale, recounts four of the same legends which Vincent of Beauvais,
V2, took from the Ur-Mariale, the source of both. (3) The relationship
between the Rouen Mariale and a Quoniam collection similar to MS Paris
174^1, X1, has already been established. If the hypothesis that the legends
of V2 are from the Ur-Mariale is correct, the ten legends should show a
marked resemblance to one of the Quoniam series. Comparison shows that
six of the ten tales are to be found in MS Paris 17491 and eight of them in
the Stella maris. Only one of them is missing from the Quoniam collections
and that, the 'Vision of Hugh of Cluny,' Vincent of Beauvais narrates elsewhere with the note that he took it from the Mariale. (4) Furthermore, the
veracity of Vincent of Beauvais need not be questioned. He had the tales
of V1 from the Mariale magnum, and those of V2 from another collection
very like it, which on other occasions he called the Mariale, that is the
Ur-Mariale.
Added support for the existence of a collection called the 'Mariale,'
which was the source of the Mariale magnum and the Rouen Mariale
comes from the Speculum exemplorum, the first edition of which was published in 1481.213 It was later expanded and edited by the Jesuit, John
Major (1542-1608), as the Magnum speculum exemplorum (Douai, 1605).
The original compiler, who may have been a Flemish Franciscan, tells a
tale about a monk and a nun of the Cistercian order which he says he had
from a volume called the 'Mariale,' Legitur in libro quodam exemplorum
m
T h e collection of St. Victor includes the collection of Soissons (Mussafia, I, 956).
/torf, I, 978, following no. 68.
"* J. Thomas Welter, Vexeviplum dans la littirature religieuse et didactique du moyen age
(Paris, 1927), pp. 386-391.
M
44
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
B. virginis qui vocatur Mariale.21* The work he mentions may very well
have been the collection which has been designated temporarily as the
Ur-Mariale.
The sources of the collection which Vincent of Beauvais incorporates
into the Speculum historiale are, therefore, as he describes them: (i) the
Mariale magnum and (2) the Ur-Mariale. He probably found them together in the same Cistercian monastery which there is reason to believe
was Clairvaux.215 The Ur-Mariale, it may be supposed, was an older collection in the style of the collection of St. Victor and MS Paris 17491 which
included materials other than Mary legends scattered here and there about
the collection, as suggested in the Mirande prologue. The Mariale magnum
was a more recent and compact collection which had eliminated a good
many of the traditional tales 2ie whose authenticity had become doubtful,
and added others supplied with names of places in which they occurred
and witnesses to them. Among them were many Cistercian legends, interpolated in groups. To this new collection could be given the authority of
the Cistercian order which Vincent of Beauvais says that it had.217
The table on pages 46—47 compares the legends of Vincent of Beauvais
with other Quoniam and Mariale collections.
MS British Museum Additional 15723
The second collection of Mary legends in MS British Museum Additional 15723, in a script of the thirteenth century, names the Mariale magnum as the source of its legends.218 It begins with Vincent of Beauvais'
*"Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. John Major, Cologne, 1747), pp. 472-474 (43).
The first printing was 1605. Moreover, the tale is very similar to no. 32 of MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 18134,o n e oi whose sources was, in all probability, the Mariale magnum
(see above, p. 28, note 140) and to a tale in pseudo-Caesarius (see below, p. 58, note 260)
which probably shares a common source with the Ur-Mariale.
215
See below, p. 48, note 224, and p. 50.
a
" The Rouen Mariale includes a great many tales of the older collections, nine of the TS
legends, four of the HM series, and eight of the additional Pez legends. Vincent of Beauvais
tells only one of the TS legends, one from HM, and three additional Pez legends.
SIT
MS Paris 17491, X1
[Collection of Ste. Genevieve]
Stella maris
[Ur-Mariale]
!
Rouen Mariale
Vincent of Beauvais, V1
[Mariale magnum]
Vincent of Beauvais, V1
""Described by Ward, Catalogue of Romances, 11, 622-636. There are two collections of
Mary legends in the volume. The first in a script of the twelfth century is related to the
HM series. There is also an abridgement of the life of St. Elizabeth of Schonau which in
Collections of Mary Legends
45
note, obviously copied from the Speculum historiale. The series of Mary
legends which follows agrees substantially with Vincent of Beauvais
through chapter 119a,219 or well beyond the end of the series which the
Dominican took from the Mariale magnum. Several of the legends of Vincent of Beauvais are missing, but none of those omitted is a Cistercian
legend.220
The forty-three legends of MS Additional 15723, therefore, comprise
two series, A1, (nos. 1-32, with the exception of no. 20) and A2, (nos. 3443). The first series, A\ was copied from Vincent of Beauvais, who took
them from the Mariale magnum, a Cistercian collection. The second series,
A2, is also Cistercian. Ten of the eleven incidents occur in Cistercian
houses of England or France, or are reported by abbots of Cistercian monasteries of those regions. Seven are from northern France.221 Eight of them
are later retold by the abbot of a Cistercian house on the borderline between the diocese of Chartres and Paris.222 The anecdotes of A2 are related
in very circumstantial fashion including names and places that can be
readily identified. Ward's date for the collection, not earlier than 1200 and
while Philip Augustus was still king of France, that is 1200-1223,223 may
well apply to the Mariale magnum from which the compiler said he had
the legends. It is impossible to believe that it applies to the Additional
collection itself, because, except for certain additions of details, A1 was
clearly copied from Vincent of Beauvais; and the collection must therefore have been made after 1244 or 1247, the date of the completion of the
Speculum historiale.
It is probable that the compiler of the collection was a monk of Clairvaux. When he reaches no. 19 of Vincent of Beauvais, how a knight of
Aquitaine refused to deny Mary, he suddenly interrupts the narrative to
tell an unique legend of which he is reminded by the similarity of the theme.
The tale which is interpolated in this fashion, no. 20, is the story of two
boys from the vicinity of Clairvaux who went to Paris to study. One of
three collections of legends (Vincent of Beauvais, Vendome, and MS Paris Bibliotheque
Nationale French 818) serves to introduce the legends. In this manuscript, however, it appears to have no connection with either series of legends.
""The note is without the designation 'Author.' The selections from Elizabeth of
Schonau and Melito of Sardis are lacking. The texts of the legends agree substantially with
Vincent of Beauvais, although there are some variations. The prayer O intevterata (Vincent
of Beauvais, ch. 101) is written out in full. The scene of the legend of the 'Painter' is
omitted (Vincent of Beauvais gives it as Flanders in ch. 104). The scene of the 'Blasphemer*
in the same chapter of Vincent of Beauvais is apud Lausennam. A note is added to 'Five
Psalms' (Vincent of Beauvais, ch. 116b), Hie potes notare de collect a quam beata virgo
Maria docet quendam novicium nostri ordinis in Calabria. The titles of the legends suggest
Vincent of Beauvais.
•"Those omitted are well-known legends: Vincent of Beauvais, chs. 82, 8^-92, 98-093,
nob, 113a, 114, 116a, 118, and 119b and c.
821
Number 33, Noyon; no. 34, Blois; no. 35, Beauvais; no. 38, Beauvais; no. 39, Rheims;
no. 40, Paris; no. 42, Neufchatel.
" T h e Vendome collection, pp. 48-51.
" W a r d , op. cit^ 11, 624-625.
Vincent of Beauvais
8ia. Columns Raised
8ib. Toledo
82. Jew Lends to Christian
83. Orleans
84. Milk: Tongue and Lips Restored
85. Childbirth in the Sea
86. Abbess
87. Bridegroom: Ring on Finger
88. Pilgrim in the Sea
89a. Light on the Masthead
89b. Thread in Lip
90-92. Chaste Empress
93-95- Incest
96. Rich Man and Poor Widow
97- Bonus
98. Poor Man Strikes Stone
99a. Jewess in Childbirth
99b. Bread
100. Wife and Mistress
101. O intemerata: Devil as Servant
102-103. Girl Named Mary
104a. Painter
104b. Blasphemer of Lausanne
105-106. Unwilling to Deny Mary
107. Monks at Their Field Work
108. Electuary
109. Cistercian Monk Persecuted
110a. Blasphemers of Brabant
nob. Unable to Injure Mary Image
i n . Jew of London
112. Demons as Swine
SG
—
23
72
30
39
—
80
29
70 "i
71 J
52
79
—
—
—
75
—
28
69
34
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
X
7
}6
29
68
25
27
38
67
40 "1
S. mans
n'
9
19
26.
1'
—
2
8
10
41 J
37
—
__
—
—
64
—
58
61
69
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
17
—
20
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
—
—
24
25
26
—
32
32a
—
'4
34
37
49
—
—
—
1
2
16
—
20
—
—
—
A
R
7'
—
36
37
—
38
—
—
—
10
11
12
—
—
GobiusVendome
—
I
—
2
2"
3
4
—
6
5
3
6
9
11
13
10
7
—
__
'5
K
7.
en
_
H
—
—
__
19
s.
'3
27
—
H
12
9
—
—
—
—
'5
30
25
*-*
16
14
—
—
a.
19
—
54.
—
—
—
—
—
—
44
—
45
17
'9
33
34
31
46
—
48
47
21
22
20
—
23
24
16
__
—
25
49
__
—
62
26
32
—
18
35
10
—
—
—
—
0
8
Vincent of Beauvais
SG
5
67-68
10
—
62
7
—
—
—
48
31
27
X
17
6o
13
—
21
43
—
S. marts
16
—
25
—
52
61
—
—
A
—
35
—
—
—
—
53
27
28
—
29
—
30
Gobius Vendome
—
—
—
—
—
43'
—
—
46
54
21
p.
*^
1
—
48
34
.
12
6
'5
5
32
22
—
68a
4
18
7
•4)
'5J
—
—
—
42
—
—
—
Si
lends
113a. Mother of Mercy
113b. St. Dunstan
113c. Priest of One Mass
114. Vision of St. Hugh of Cluny
115. Boy Devoted to the Devil
116a. Ebbo
116b. Five Psalms
117. Woman Revived for Confession
118. Little Devil in Church
119a. Nativity
119b. Saracen and Mary Image
119c. Mary Image Insulted
48
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
them fell in love and was commanded by the devil to deny Christ and the
Virgin Mary in order to win the girl. His companion prevented him from
doing so, and they both entered Clairvaux.224
The Mariale magnum is given by the compiler as the source of the entire
collection of MS Additional 15723. In the face of the clear relationship to
Vincent of Beauvais, it must be concluded that he used two collections:
(1) the Speculum historiale for the legends of A1 and (2) another Cistercian collection for A2. Three of the legends of A2, aside from the compiler's word for it, show some relation to the Mariale magnum. Gobius
attributes the last, no. 43, to the Mariale magnum.225 A series of two, nos.
34-35, are distinctly similar to nos. 51 and 34 of the second series of MS
Paris 18134, which seems to have been derived from the Mariale magnmn.226
Certainly the tales are similar in form and character to the Cistercian legends of A1 and could well have belonged to that collection. They are similar, too, to that Cistercian legend which the compiler of the Speculum
exemplorum said he had from the Mariale221' probably the Ur-Mariale,
which was the source of the Mariale magnwn. There is, therefore, no reason to doubt the compiler's veracity except that he clearly used Vincent of
Beauvais' versions of some of the legends. Why, if he had the complete
Mariale magnum available, did he choose to use a second-hand source? The
answer is that it saved him labor and parchment. Vincent of Beauvais had
already reduced the bulky legends to a briefer form without changing the
order or detracting from the narrative. He chose the shorter versions of
Vincent of Beauvais, except for some details omitted by the encyclopedist,
and then added the others at length from the Mariale magnum itself.
If the collection of MS Additional 15123 was taken from the Mariale
magnum, and the evidence permits us to assume that it was, then the dates
of the compilation of the Mariale vtagnum may be narrowed to the period
between 1200 and 1247, dates which are not incongruous with what is
known about other collections of Alary legends in northern France related
to the Mariale magnum.
The Vendome Collection
Certain characteristics of another Cistercian collection of Mary legends
now in the Public Library of Vendome22S lend support to the picture of
*" Ward, op. cit., pp. 624-625, believes the collection was made at Clairvaux. Ruth J. Dean
in Modern Language Review, XXXH (1937), 63-64, mentions a slip in the manuscript when she
used it which says that it probably belonged to Citeaux. Even if the manuscript belonged
to Citeaux the collection might have been compiled at Clairvaux, as the evidence indicates.
**'Clerk of Chartres,' Gobius, Scala celi, no. 18.
** 'Nun Who Could Not Unlock the Convent Door* and 'A Hundred Aves a Day.' The
variations in the versions may perhaps be attributed to the intervention of a vernacular
version between the Mariale magnum and the legends of MS Paris 18134 which seem to come
from it.
*" Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), pp. 472-474 (43).
128
Edited by H. Isnard, 'Recueil des miracles de la Vierge du xiii* siecle,' Bulletin de la
Societe archeologique . . . du vendomois, xxvi (Vendome, 1887), 23-63, 104-149, 182-227.
Collections of Mary Legends
49
the Mariale viagnum just outlined and permit a further conjecture about
the work. The Vendome collection, comprising sixty-five legends as it
stands,229 was made at the Cistercian monastery of Vaux-Cernay, founded
in 1128 on the borderline between the dioceses of Paris and Chartres. Believing it to be the work of Thibaud de Alarley, abbot of Vaux-Cernay,
Bouchet dates it between 1235 and 1247,230 the years of his incumbency.
Most of the introductory matter of the Vendome collection is almost
identical with that of Vincent of Beauvais. It begins with excerpts from
the same portions of the visions of St. Elizabeth of Schonau. Although the
diction is very similar, the abbot was clearly not copying from Vincent of
Beauvais, for he mentions details from the work which the latter omits.
Nor could Vincent of Beauvais have been taking his excerpts from the
Vendome collection for the same reason. They were using a common
source which presented that portion of the work in full, presumably the
Mariale magnum or the Ur-Mariale. Between the excerpts from St. Elizabeth, the compiler of Vaux-Cernay inserts a brief paragraph from the De
transitu of Melito of Sardis quoted by Vincent of Beauvais at greater
length. There are also two paragraphs about the girlhood of Alary from a
work which John of Garland uses, but which Vincent of Beauvais does not
employ in this connection, the Pseudo-Matthei Evangelium.231
The abbot of Vaux-Cernay, for the most part, relates Cistercian legends
and anecdotes which are not frequently in other collections in northern
France. Here and there are some popular ones very greatly abbreviated.
Although he tells some familiar tales not among the first series of Vincent
of Beauvais, the character of the narratives as well as the order in which
they are told points to knowledge of the Mariale magnum or a collection
related to it:
Vendome
Jew Lends to Christian
Childbirth in the Sea
Milk: Tongue and Lips Restored
Abbess
Bridegroom: Ring on Finger
Bonus
Unwilling to Deny Mary
Rich Man and Poor Widow
O intemerata: Devil as Servant
2
3
5
6
7
9
10
19
25
V1
ch. 82
85
84
86
87
97
105-106
96
101
The Cistercian legends of the Vendome collection may be divided into
two classes: (1) those which were related to the abbot of Vaux-Cernay
** The last folios have been lost.
230
Charles Bouchet, 'Un recueil de miracles de la Vierge,' »Wi, ix (1870), 182-183.
831
Pseudo-Matthei Evangelium (ed. Tischendorf, Leipzig, 1876), chs. 4-9. The first excerpt, De bona indole eiusdem, is part of the introduction to the Vendome collection; the
second, De puericia beate virginis et Ihesu, is interpolated between legends 10 and n (Isnard,
op. cit^ pp. 34 and 50).
50
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
and were written down by him232 and (2) those which he found among
the records of Cistercian monasteries or in collections of Mary legends.
Among the first group of five legends is one told to him by the abbot of
Clairvaux.233 In the second class are several unique tales originating at, or
in the vicinity of, Clairvaux,234 and a series of legends which are similar to a
sequence in the second series (A2) of MS Additional 15723.™ It was possibly on a visit to Clairvaux, perhaps a chapter meeting, that the abbot of
Vaux-Cernay heard the story which he says the abbot of Clairvaux told
him. While he was there, it may be imagined, he took the opportunity to
do some research in the library and among the monastery records. If he
was actually Thibaud de Marley (abbot 1235-1247), he probably did not
find the collection of the Additional manuscript there, for part of that was
certainly copied from Vincent of Beauvais, whose work was not completed
until 1244 or 1247. He might very well have seen there that other source
used by the compiler of MS Additional 15723, which he said was the
Mariale magnum. The great volume probably lay on the shelves of the
library of the monastery of Clairvaux in the second quarter of the thirteenth century along with the earlier Ur-Mariale which will now be referred to as the Clairvaux Mariale. The likelihood is that they were both
compiled there where St. Bernard left behind him a strong tradition of
devotion to the Virgin Mary. The collection and the recording of Mary
181
Numbers 50-55 except no. 52: Isnard, op. cit~, p. 216 (50), told by the deceased Adam,
an Englishman who was abbot of Estree, a Cistercian abbey in the diocese of Evreux,
founded 1144; p. 218 (51), by the same Adam; p. 222 (53), by a recluse of Canterbury, once
countess of Leicester; p. 282 (54), by 'a certain person;' p. 284 (55), by the abbot of Clairvaux. Neither the abbot of Estree nor the countess of Leicester has been identified. The
list of abbots in Gallia Christiana, xi (Paris, 1874), 672, lacks five abbots who held office in
the last quarter of the twelfth and part of the thirteenth century. Adam was apparently
one of these.
""Isnard, p. 284 (55).
"* lbid~, p. 56 (14), how a converms of Clairvaux in the time of St. Bernard heard the angels
celebrating the Assumption of the Virgin; p. 106 (20), about a young man who came to
Clairvaux in the time of St. Bernard; p. 148 (33), a vision of a monk of Clairvaux; pp. 291292 (58), about a hermit whose soul flew to heaven with St. Bernard's; pp. 309-310 (65),
'Monks at their Field Work.'
** The legends of the Vendome collection are told more briefly and without mention of
many names and places. In one case the abbot of Vendome tells not the same story but a
similar one, and in another a different tale from the same monastery.
MS Additional i^2j (A*)
MS Vendome iS$
33. Dream of a Harlot and Her Horses
—
34. Nun Who Could Not Unlock Door
26
35. A Hundred Aves a Day
27
36. Virgin Bares Her Breast
28
37. Souls of Cistercians Released
29
38. Cistercians Beneath Virgin's Cloak
38, a similar tale
39. Cistercians Honored
30
40. Abbey of Le Val
35, another from the
41. Persuaded to Stay Forty Years
—* same monastery
42. The Sequence Missus Gabriel
31
• A legend of this sort did appear in the Vendome collection, for it is a legend of the
pseudo-Celestine collection. See below, p. 51, no. 22.
Collections of Mary Legends
51
legends was probably something of an official project, pursued chiefly at
chapter meetings when numbers of Cistercian abbots came together.238
This would account for the authority as well as the availability of the
Mariale magnum.
Collections derived from the Mariale magnum had their descendants.
The pseudo-Celestine collection,237 comprising twenty-seven legends,
briefly told, depends upon the work of the abbot of Vaux-Cernay. It is
included among the works printed by Telera in 1640 as those of Pope
Celestine V (c. 1215-1296), though they are certainly not written by him.
A clue as to the origin of the collection is given in the first legend, the only
unique one. This tale, together with the attribution to an Italian, suggests
Italy rather than France as the place where the collection was compiled.
It tells how a priest, accused of writing a letter attacking the emperor, had
his hand cut off and exposed before his own church dedicated to the Virgin
Mary. She restored the member, and the emperor came on foot and sought
the priest's pardon.238
The legends follow in the same order as in the Vendome collection,
although many have been omitted. The diction employed in telling them
is not the same, and there are very minor variations in the details. None of
the legends told on the authority of the abbot of Vaux-Cernay is included.
The additional legends at the end of the pseudo-Celestine collection only
serve as a reminder that the Vendome collection, as we have it to-day, is a
fragment. A comparison of these two collections and that of MS Additional
15723 follows:
Ps-Celestine
Vendome
A
Ps-Celestine
I
—
—
—
15
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
11
12
>3
'4
4
5
7
9
14
16
'7
21
22
23
26
27
34
16
4
'7
7
18
12
—
—
—
—
—
—
19
34
35
3°
20
21
22
23
2
4
25
2 6 239
27
Vendome
39
40
4i
48
5<*
63
—
—
—
—
—
—
A
—
—
—
—
4i
21
22
—
*" There are in support of this statement the large number of Mary legends already referred to as related or witnessed by Cistercian abbots. It was to a Cistercian chapter meeting
that a priest brought a scroll, the evidence of the authenticity of the 'Bread' legend of MS
Paris 1251)3 and a Cistercian abbot who recorded it (see above, p. 22).
m
Coelestinus Telera (ed.), S. Petri Caelest'mi . . . opuscula omnia (Naples, 1640), pp.
m
199-119.
lbid~, pp. 199-200.
""This legend as it is narrated in the pseudo-Celestine is a fusion of no. 21, 'Monks at
52
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
The Collections of the Mendicants
Granted that the Mariale magnum was the work of Cistercian monks,
it was the mendicant orders, particularly the Dominicans, who seem to
have made the most use of it during the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries.
Just before the end of the thirteenth century, the dignified tales the Cistercians heard in their monasteries begin to appear in a new guise. Almost
everything has been eliminated except the bare narrative, and that has been
revised by the addition of homely, and sometimes vulgar, detail intended to
excite the interest of crowds.
It may have been Johannes Gobius,240 a Dominican preacher of Alais,
who adapted the Mariale magnum to these uses; or if not he, some other of
his profession. At any rate, a large number of the legends of the Mariale
magnwn are included in a great compilation of materials arranged for the
use of preachers and called the Scala cell. The work may have been begun
as early as the last years of the thirteenth century, although it probably
was not completed in its final form before 1323-1330.241 Under the title,
Virgo Dei Genitrix, are gathered fifty-five Mary legends, all related very
briefly. Several Alary legends appear singly under other titles also. Gobius
mentions the source from which each was drawn, as in Mariali magno, in
libello de miraculis _, . . , Caesarius, etc. The first twenty-two, and then
seven more, are attributed to the Mariale magnum, appearing in almost the
same order as in Vincent of Beauvais. The difference in the arrangement
is to be explained by the use for which the collection was intended. Gobius'
anecdotes were to be used as exempla. The preacher accordingly tells his
fifty-four legends in seventeen series, each series illustrating some particular
power of the Virgin, 'She honors those who love her,' 'She saves from
drowning,' etc. The first seven series are made up altogether of legends of
the Mariale magnum\ and all but four of the seventeen series (the last four
but one, nos. 13, 14, 15, and 16) begin with a legend from that source. One
of the legends Gobius attributes to Vincent of Beauvais.242
Since Gobius knew Vincent of Beauvais, according to his own statement,
Mussafia doubts whether he ever used the Mariale magnum directly.243
The question is difficult because of the large number of innovations in
Gobius' text, including complete alteration in diction.244 Nevertheless, a
Their Field Work,' and no. 22, 'Electuary,' both in A1 (Ward, 11, 629-630). If the Vendome
collection also included, when it was still complete, pseudo-Celestine, nos. 21-27, >£ >s additional evidence of the relationship between Vendome and MS Additional IJ723"" Johannes Gobius, Scala celi. Ulme, 1480.
*" Gedeon Busken Huet, 'Un reck de la Scala celi,' Bibliotheque de F&cole des chartes,
LXXVI (1915), 299, note 2, and Welter, Vexemplum, p. 320.
** Gobius, no. 46, 'Boy Devoted to the Devil.' It is not one of the legends Vincent of
Beauvais attributes to the Mariale magnum. Note again the recurrence of the number 17 in
connection with the Mary legends of Gobius.
"* Mussafia, III, 40.
'"Especially Gobius, no. 10, 'Pilgrim in the Sea,' and no. 36, 'Mary Image Insulted.'
Collections of Mary Legends
53
closer examination of the texts leads to the conclusion that Gobius probably did make independent use of the Mariale magnum itself, or some
version of it current in southern France which had already been revised
for the use of preachers. In the first place, Gobius cites the Mariale magnum as the source of five legends245 which are not told by Vincent of
Beauvais. At least one of the five is just the kind of legend that would be
appropriate in the sort of Mariale magnum described above, how a Cistercian monk who knew only the Ave Maria was saved by the Virgin.246 A
second, 'Jewish Boy,' in the version of Gregory of Tours, could appear
in the Mariale magnum, if our hypothesis about its origin is correct. The
tale of the Cistercian monk and another of the five are among a number
of legends which can be connected with the Mariale magnuvi in MS Paris
18134 already described.247 Still another, the 'Clerk of Chartres,' is one of
those attributed to the Mariale magnum by the compiler of MS Additional
15723 in A2, the series not taken from Vincent of Beauvais. Gobius' treatment of certain legends also points toward independent use of a source
which related the legends more fully than they are told in Vincent of Beauvais. In the case of the 'Painter,' for instance, the details which Gobius and
Vincent of Beauvais select for emphasis are quite different. Occasionally
the scene and other details of Gobius' stories differ from that of Vincent of
Beauvais, even though both claim to be using the Mariale magnum.219 The
probability is that Gobius was using a version of the Mariale magnum available in southern France, in which the tales had been reduced to the briefer
and more dramatic form demanded by the preachers.
Other preachers of the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries used the collections of Mary legends made in northern France as the source of exempla
for their sermons, especially the collection of Vincent of Beauvais. John
Herolt, called Discipulus, a Dominican friar of Basle, in the first half of the
fifteenth century wrote two promptuaria ('storehouses'). One of them,
the Vromptuarium Discipuli de miraculis beate virginis2*9 is a collection of
one hundred Mary legends. In some cases Herolt states his authority; but,
845
Gobius, Virgo Dei Genitrix, nos. 5, 8, 17, and 18; and Corpus Christi, 'Jewish Boy.'
** Virgo Dei Genitrix, no. 17. Moreover, the only exact parallel occurs in pseudoCaesarius, a collection which is related to the Mariale magnum by way of common sources
(see below, p. 58, note 260). See Mussafia, III, 40-43, for comparison with Vincent of
Beauvais.
** Gobius, nos. 8 and 17 = MS Paris 18134, n o s - 48 and 36. See p. 28, note 140.
248
In Gobius, no. 30, O intemerata and no. 35, 'Brabantine Blasphemers,' there are differences in detail, precedent for which may be found in other versions. The scene of no. 9,
'Childbirth in the Sea,' and no. 34, 'Blasphemer of Lausanne,' differs from Vincent of Beauvais,
but see above, pp. 40-41.
** Johannes Herolt, Semiones Discipuli de tempore et de sanctis unacum Promptuario
exemplorum, Strassburg, 1492. The volume also includes the Promptuarium de miraculis
beate Marie virginis. The Alary legends are translated into English in the Broadway Medieval Library by C. C. Swinton Bland, The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary (New York,
1928), with an introduction by Eileen Power.
54
The Stella Alaris of John of Garland
whether stated or not, a great many of the legends can be traced to Vincent of Beauvais.
Oswald Pelbart of Temesvar in Hungary, a Franciscan preacher, wrote
a work in 1483 which is a compilation of materials about the Virgin Mary
for the use of preachers.250 Scattered through it are Mary legends which
he attributes to various sources, chiefly the work of other preachers, Scala
celi, Discipulus, etc. Some of them are attributed also to the Mariale magnum, although it is clear in this case that he did not use the work itself.
Frequently he mentions a double source, as Scala cell et Mariale magnum.
The author of the Speculum exemplorum?*1 probably a Flemish Franciscan
who wrote in 1480, used the Clairvaux Mariale, Vincent of Beauvais, and
the Scala cell, among numerous other sources.
Vernacular Collections Related to the 'Mariale' Family
The history of Vincent of Beauvais' collection is not limited to Latin
compilers. A manuscript of the British Museum, Additional 17920, of the
late fourteenth century includes a collection in Provencal, obviously a
translation of part of Vincent of Beauvais.252 It comprises thirteen miracles
which correspond exactly to the first thirteen of Vincent of Beauvais, except that one legend has been added and one omitted. The additional legend is a common one, how an image in the church at Mont-St.-Michel was
saved from destruction by fire. It follows 'Childbirth in the Sea,' the scene
of which is also Mont-St.-Michel. The legend omitted is 'Chaste Empress,'
no. 12, a very long tale.
A collection with the title Rosarius in French vernacular of the second
quarter of the fourteenth century was made by a Dominican preacher of
Soissons whose name is unknown. He uses the Grant Marial as one of his
principal sources.253
The 'Mariale' family, then, as it developed in the first half of the thirteenth
century included the following Latin collections: (1) The Clairvaux
Mariale, an unidentified collection, (2) the Mariale magnum, also known
only by reputation, (3) the Rouen Mariale, (4) the collection of Vincent
of Beauvais, (5) MS British Museum Additional 15723, and (6) the Vendome collection. The Clairvaux Mariale was the earliest, compiled in the
tM
Pelbartus Temesvariensis, Stellarium corone benedicte Marie virginis in laudem eius pro
singulis predicationibus elegantissime coaptatum. Hagenaw, 1508.
xl
The Speculum exemplorum was expanded into a larger collection in the years following 1480, and edited by the Jesuit, John Major, in the seventeenth century under the title
Magnum speculum exemplorum.
**The collection is edited by Jacob Ulrich, 'Miracles de Notre Dame,' Romania, VIII
(1879), 12-28. See also Ward, op. citn pp. 689-690.
""Morawski in Romania, LXI (1935), 316-321. The manuscript is described by Arthur
Langfors, 'Notice du manuscrit franc, ais 12483 de la Bibliotheque Nationale,' Notices et extraits, xxxix* (1916), 503-662. The collection is inedited.
Collections of Mary Legends
55
manner of the older collections. It included, in addition, certain Cistercian
legends which had accumulated in the monastery since the time of St. Bernard and other materials useful as readings for the celebration of Mary
festivals. Among them were the De transitu of Melito of Sardis, the visions
of St. Elizabeth of Schonau, and incidents from the Pseudo-Matthei
Evangelium.
The Mariale magnum was a better organized collection, compiled after
1200 and before 1247. Many of the traditional anecdotes were abandoned
to make room for more recent and authentic incidents reported by Cistercian abbots. The authority which Vincent of Beauvais claims for it and
the wide variety of houses in England and France from which the incidents
come, suggest that the collection of Mary legends had the official approval
of the Cistercian order. By the end of the thirteenth century, if not earlier,
the Mariale magnum and the collection of Vincent of Beauvais had got into
the hands of the preachers, especially the Dominicans, who used them in
the compilation of collections of anecdotes to be related in their sermons.
The Rouen Mariale is a collection made by a Benedictine of Jumieges
who used the Clairvaux Mariale as his source. Since he was not particularly
interested in the Cistercian tales, he copied few of them. Most of his attention he devoted to the familiar anecdotes, to which he added certain local
legends.
Vincent of Beauvais, who later became a 'lector* in the Cistercian monastery of Royaumont near Paris, used only a portion of the Mariale magnum
for his collection. He probably selected the first part of it because it included tales of universal rather than particularly Cistercian interest. When
they grew less frequent, we may suppose, he turned to the older, more
general collection, the Clairvaux Mariale. The abbot of Vendome also
used the Mariale magnum as one of his sources. To these legends he added
others which he himself had gathered, some of them tales told by Cistercian
abbots. The anecdotes he copied, he told only briefly, the others at greater
length. The compiler of the Additional collection, who was probably a
monk of Clairvaux, used both Vincent of Beauvais and the Mariale magnum
as the sources of his compilation.
7. RELATION OF CAESAR OF HEISTERBACH AND PSEUDO-CAESARIUS
TO THE 'MARIALE' COLLECTIONS
The 'Mariale' collections originated in the Cistercian monasteries of
northern France. Collections were made in the convents of the same order
in other regions, and because the nature of Cistercian monastic organization promoted frequent contacts between abbots as well as the exchange of
books, some similarities among collections of various regions would naturally result. The seventh book of the Dialogus miraculorum of Caesar of
T H E 'MARIALE' COLLECTIONS
[The Clairvaux Mariale]
I
Vincent of Beauvais, V2
Vendome, c. 1250
[The Mariale magnum, 1200-1247]
The Rouen Mariale-
1
Vincent of Beauvais, V1
2
MS Additional tsi^h A
Gobius\ c. 1300
MS Additional 15723, A1
Rosarius,'
Pseudo-Celestine, c. 1300
MS Additional 17920,
c.
1400
Heroic
1400-1450
Pelbart,
Speculum exemplorum,
H83
1481
Collections of Mary Legends
57
Heisterbach together with several Mary legends in the Libri VIII miraculorum and the anonymous collection attributed to him by Meister are Cistercian collections made in the region of Cologne.254 The first two were
completed during the years 1223-1227, and the third, it would seem, not
a great deal later.258
Neither the collection of Caesar of Heisterbach nor pseudo-Caesarius
clearly belong to the series of collections which have been discussed in
relation to the Stella maris, for they do not include the tales typical either
of SV or the Quoniam series. They are, however, related to the 'Mariale'
collections of Clairvaux. In the Dialogus Caesar of Heisterbach tells three
or four25<t of the legends that characterize the 'Mariale' collections; and in
the Libri VIII miraculorum, a single one.257 The best clue we have to explain his acquaintance with them is a statement prefacing quite another
tale about the Virgin, 'We read in the Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux.1258
Could it have been the Clairvaux Mariale or possibly the Mariale magnum
that he knew? It is difficult to give an affirmative answer. No one of his
legends is exactly the same version as the corresponding 'Mariale' legends,
even when allowances are made for differences in diction; and of the one,
'Girl Named Mary,' which is most similar in detail Caesar of Heisterbach
says, 'I heard it recently from a certain abbot of our order,'259 indicating
854
Alfons Hilka, Die Wundergeschichten des Caesarius von Heisterbach, vol. m (Bonn,
1937), has recently edited the only two books which remain of the Libri VIII miraculorum
together with the anonymous collection, or collections, which Meister attributed to him.
The Dialogus miraculorum, planned as the second volume of Hilka's work, is available in the
older edition of Joseph Strange (Cologne, 1851). It has been translated into English in the
Broadway Medieval Library by H. von E. Scott and C. C. Swinton Bland (London, 1929).
255
Hilka, op. cit^ p. 13. Since the anonymous compiler makes use of Caesar of Heisterbach, some of his legends come from the same towns and monasteries, and many are Cistercian legends, the assumption is that the compiler was a Cistercian of the same region, if
not the same monastery, in which Caesar of Heisterbach lived. Of the legends which can
be dated readily, the most recent (no. 43) could have been written as early as 1189.
"* The tale of 'Beatrice the Sacristan' is included doubtfully, because its only claim to be a
'Mariale' legend is its appearance in MS Paris 18134 (no. 53).
>
VII,
Dialogus miraculorum
xxxii, One H u n d r e d Aves . . . .
xxxiv, Beatrice
xlvii, Electuary
lix, Under H e r Cloak
Libri miraculorum
^-
rt
"5
5
2
^
34
53
38
—
>
—
—
108
—
2 i 1 ( j
II, 7, Girl N a m e d Mary
—
Caesar of Heisterbach, Dialogus miraculorum,
miraculorum Claraevallis de duobus lusoribus . . .
858
*™ Hilka, m, p p . 81-83.
r
^
35
—
22
38
>
27
—
—
38
u
—
—
—
—
I(
102-3
5
—
<4
V I I , 43 (ed. Strange), Legitur in libro
58
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
an oral source. It seems more likely, therefore, that the collection of Clairvaux in which he read was an earlier collection than either of these. It may
not have been limited to Mary legends and was, perhaps, the common
source of some of the Cistercian legends in the Clairvaux compilations of
Mary legends, Caesar of Heisterbach, and the Exordium magnum ordinis
Cisterciensis of Conrad of Eberbach, a contemporary of Caesar of Heisterbach.
• As for pseudo-Caesarius, it cannot be said with certainty that he did not
know the Clairvaux Mariale or the Mariale magnum, although it seems very
doubtful. He includes six characteristic 'Mariale' legends, aside from those
which seem to come from Caesar of Heisterbach himself.260 One of them,
no. 91, appears again in Gobius, Scala celi, where it is clearly attributed to
the Mariale magnum. The 'Painter' is very much abbreviated. The other
four do appear in MS Paris 18134, although the details differ radically from
those of pseudo-Caesarius.261
If, on the other hand, pseudo-Caesarius compiled his collection at Heisterbach, there must have been available to him as to Caesar of Heisterbach,
MO
e
•*•
a
*
5
5
S
1 i 3 1 j
Pseudo-Caesarius
1^
j>
^
>
O
55. Man and Woman Freed
32
—
—
—
—
63. Painter
—
104a
17
—
33
72. Boy Saved From Drowning
48
—
—
—
—
87. Chorister
31
—
—
41
—
91. Could Learn Only'Ave Maria'
36
—
—
—
17
103. Unwilling to Deny Mary
1+33 —
—
—
—
In favor also of the pseudo-Caesarius' use of the Clairvaux Mariale is the appearance of
so many Pez legends in his collection. But, on the other hand, the fact that the Ad laudem
prologue directfy precedes Pez, 1 and 2, suggests that he was using Pez as Pez. The series
of narratives which characterize SV and the Quoniam collections are lacking in pseudoCaesarius. But, strangely enough, he does include two of the series of versified legends
which appear in MS Paris 14463 (SV1) and MS Paris 17491 (X 1 ). Significantly they appear
in sequence and in prose instead of verse: Pseudo-Caesarius, no. 76, 'Poor Alan and Rich
Widow,' and no. 77, 'Incest' = SV1, nos. 61-62, and X', nos. 73a and 73. Furthermore pseudoCaesarius' version of 'Incest' should be the original one, for it is more logical than the other
versions. In one of the sources of pseudo-Caesarius, therefore, we should have the prose
originals of the versified series of SV2, but the pseudo-Caesarius yields no other clues. He
could not have had them from the Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux, if my theory of the
relationship between these collections is correct, for Vincent of Beauvais' Mariale version of
'Incest' is definitely not descended from a common source. The source used by pseudoCaesarius for these two legends ought to antedate both APM and SV, and that would make
it a very early one.
161
It should be recalled, however, that the legends of MS Paris 18134 a r e very freely
treated by their author. Carleton Brown, on the other hand, points out essential differences
between the versions of the 'Chorister,' as it appears in MS Paris 18134 and pseudo-Caesarius.
See below, pp. 194-195.
Collections of Mary Legends
59
the presumably older Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux, a probable source
of some of the Cistercian legends of the 'Mariale' collections made at Clairvaux.262 His acquaintance with them could then be attributed to a common
source, as in the case of Caesar of Heisterbach.263 Whatever the relationship, the absence of the series of Mary legends typical of northern France
in these two Cistercian collections from the region of Cologne, made in the
years when the Mariale magnum was taking shape, serves to emphasize the
separate identity in the first half of the thirteenth century of the 'Mariale'
collections made in northern France. Caesar of Heisterbach's reference to
the Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux also confirms our thesis that the
monastery of Clairvaux was an important center for the collection of Mary
legends in the same period.
The Mariale collections, it is clear, were descended from the large compilations of northern France, specifically those with a prologue beginning
Quoniam gloriosissima virgo virginum. Two representatives of this group
existed in the thirteenth century in the monasteries of Paris, one at St. Germain-des-Pres and another at Ste. Genevieve, where John of Garland used
it. A third, MS Paris 17491, cannot be traced to a particular source. One
of these, or another very like it, must have been the link between the
Parisian collections and the Mariale family, the source of the non-Cistercian
legends of the Clairvaux Mariale. That collection, the evidence of the
Stella maris suggests, was John of Garland's source, the collection of Ste.
Genevieve.
8. THE COLLECTION OF STE. GENEVIEVE AND THE Stella Maris
John of Garland says in a note appended to the Stella maris that he versified the legends he tells from a collection which he found in the book-press
of the monastery of Ste. Genevieve.26* Unlike those of St. Victor and St.
Germain-des-Pres, the library of Ste. Genevieve was dispersed in the sixteenth century, so that not a single manuscript or printed book remained
801
1 find no evidence that Vincent of Beauvais used Caesar of Heisterbach or pseudoCaesarius as the source of any of the Mary legends in his collection.
168
The probable relationship between these collections may be illustrated as follows:
[Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux], before 1200
[The Clairvaux Mariale]
[The Mariale magnu?ri], 1200-1247
Caesar of -leisterbach,
1223-1227
Pseudo-Caesarius
MS Bruges $46, fol. 84. Gloriose virginis miracula compendiose a parvitate mea descripta ab armario Sancte Genoveve Parisiensis extracta sum, et a me scolaribus vieis Parisius
ridmificata. . . .
884
60
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
when the monastery was reformed by the Cardinal de la Rochefoucault in
1624.265 It is perhaps for this reason that no collection among those examined can be identified as that which John of Garland had before him. What
has proved to be an important collection in the history of Mary legends in
northern France can be studied only through the verses of the schoolmaster's Stella maris. That it was a much more extensive collection than his
may be inferred from his reference to his own tales as 'a few.'26S
The original of John of Garland must have been a sumvia of Mary legends current in northern France in the first half of the thirteenth century.
Among the 'few' tales of the Stella jnaris are characteristic representatives
of all the collections that have thus far been analyzed. The collection of
Ste. Genevieve began with one or two prologues. The Quoniam gloriosissima virgo prologue, which characterizes the legends of St. Germain-desPres, MS Paris 11491, and the Rouen Mariale was certainly there. It is
chiefly a theological discussion of the Virgin Mary as the immaculate
mother of God and queen of heaven, 'the one hope of mankind after
God.'207 This had been the theme of John of Garland's Epithalamium
beate virginis,266 and it is the involved symbolism of the Epithalamium that
he uses rather than the words of the Quoniam prologue. The author of the
long gloss of the British Museum manuscript of the Stella maris treats the
theme more fully in the manner of the Quoniam prologue.269
It is possible that the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve had also the Mirande
virginis laudes prologue which appears before Quoniam gloriosissima in
the Rouen Mariale, for John of Garland tells one of the legends which distinguishes the only other collection in Latin in northern France which
used it, MS Bibliotheque Nationale 5268 (12th century), from all other
collections investigated.270 Following the prologue, or prologues, the collection of Ste. Genevieve related the life of the Virgin as told in the PseudoMatthei Evangelium, excerpts from which are inserted at the beginning of
the Vendome collection. John of Garland merely suggests the incidents,
to which the Bruges gloss of the Stella maris adds more detail.271 It may
985
R. P. Claude du Molinet, Le cabinet de la Bibliotheque de Sainte Genevieve (Paris,
1692),preface.
*" Stella maris, 11. 25-27.
187
MS Paris 1259}, fols. I I 8 - I I 8 V . Quoniam gloriosissima virgo virginum Maria sancti
spiritus operatione salvo virginee integritatis signaculo mho et ineffabili ordine omnium
peperit salvatorevi. . . . lpsa siquidem regina glorie prima . . . merito pre ceteris sanctis ab
omnibus est honoranda, amanda, et predicanda quibus ipsa sit singulare presidium et unica
spes post deum. . . .
""The Epithalamium was completed in 1220 or 1221. There is a quotation from the first
lines in the glosses on the first folio of the British Museum manuscript of the Stella maris.
"* Below, p. 89.
*™ Mussafia, II, 5. In his analysis of MS Paris $26$ Mussafia calls the Mirande prologue
'otherwise unknown.' Its presence as a preface to the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve would
explain the compiler of Rouen's acquaintance with it. The legend is Stella maris, no. 53.
n
Stella maris, 11. 13-30.
Collections of Mary Legends
61
have included also the De transitu of Melito of Sardis, for that treatise, or
a part of it, appears regularly in other collections related to it.272
The legends of the Stella maris were, of course, derived from a single
source, the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve, but in order to clarify the relation of their source to other collections of northern France, they have
been divided into four groups: those legends which the Stella maris has in
common with (I) the first series of St. Victor (SV1), the first series of
St. Germain-des-Pres (SG1), and MS Paris 17491 (X); (II) the Rouen
Mariale; (III) Vincent of Beauvais; and (IV) the second series of MS
Paris 18134 (Q2)-
I. The nucleus around which the collection of Ste. Genevieve, as well
as many other Latin collections of northern France, was built is clearly the
first series of St. Victor. Of the sixty-one legends of the Stella maris,
thirty-seven 273 are the same legends in the same versions as those of the
twelfth-century SV1. The only miracles of SV1 conspicuously absent from
the Stella maris are those which are versified.274 One of these, 'Incest,'
John of Garland tells, but his version is not the same as that of SV1.
The relationship of the collection of Ste. Genevieve to the first series of
St. Germain-des-Pres, a Quoniam collection, is even closer. The Stella
maris and SG1 have in common, not only thirty-four of the thirty-seven
legends of SF1,275 but also nine more narratives. Forty-three of the sixtyone legends which John of Garland versified at Ste. Genevieve might have
come, therefore, from the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres. One of the
additional tales, 'Mare,' is significant, because it occurs, among the collections examined, only in those with the Quoniam prologue and one other,
defective in the beginning, MS Charleville 168.2™ The nine legends are
arranged in the Stella maris in two well-marked series, nos. 6-8, 15, 26, 2932, in much the same sequence as iruSG1, where they are numbers 29-33,
46-49 (with the exception of 47), 54 and 58.
It is more likely, however, that the collection from which the legends
of Ste. Genevieve emanated was not SG1, but a work which stands in closer
relationship to the first series of MS Paris 17491. There are in the Stella
878
The collections of St. Victor, MS Paris 17491, Vincent of Beauvais, and the Vendome
collection. The manuscript of Ste. Genevieve probably did not include St. Elizabeth of
Schonau, which seems to be a Cistercian addition.
"* Included in the number is the legend 'Mead,' although the version of the Stella maris,
no. I I , is not exactly the same as that of SV1. The modification was probably the work,
either of John of Garland himself or of the compiler of Ste. Genevieve. The SV version of
'Jewish Boy' is the 'Jew of Bourges' redaction, not the Gregory of Tours version which
John of Garland tells (no. 3), even though the rubricated title of SV proclaims it to be from
Gregory of Tours.
" ' T h e versified legends of SV are nos. 19-50, 36, 38, and 61-62.
""The discrepancy is accounted for by the fact that SV includes the work of Hugo
Farsitus of Soissons, while SG does not. The three missing legends are from the collection
of Soissons.
*" Mussafia, II, 48-52, lists the legends.
62
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
1
marts and X , not only the thirty-seven tales of SV1 and the nine additional
narratives of SG1, but also four more legends, not in SV1 or SG1. Fifty of
the sixty-one legends of the Stella marts, then, may be accounted for with
reference to MS Paris 17491 (X 1 ). The character of the four narratives of
John of Garland's collection, not in SV1 or SG1, indicates an intimate relationship between the collection of Ste. Genevieve and the two other
Quoniam collections, MS Faris 17491 and the Rouen Mariale. Two of the
tales have been found together in no other collections investigated:277
'Judas in Hell,' told by the Cistercian monk of Froidmont, and 'Christ
Appears to Monk' from the Cistercian monastery of Savigny. The two
others, 'Jewish Boy' and 'Columns Raised,' are part of the series from
Gregory of Tours reproduced in MS Paris 17491 and the Rouen Mariale.,278
Comparison of the legends of the Stella maris with the second series (X2)
of MS Paris 17491, however, makes it certain that the collection of Ste.
Genevieve was not copied directly from MS Paris 17491. John of Garland
did not use the versified redactions of X2. He tells three of the legends, but
his versions are those of the Rouen Mariale and Vincent of Beauvais in
which they are related in prose.279 The collection of Ste. Genevieve, the
Rouen Mariale, and the Mariale magnum, therefore, probably reach back
into a tradition earlier than MS Paris 17491 or even the collection of St.
Victor, where some of the legends appear in verse. The manuscript which
John of Garland used at Ste. Genevieve could, and probably did, ante-date
the present MS Paris 17491, and the first series of it, X1, was older in its original form than the Ste. Genevieve collection.280
II. Analysis of the legends of the Stella maris to this point has disclosed
•"The first narrative, 'Judas,' does appear in the third series, Chc, of MS Charleville 168,
no. 21, but it is not accompanied by 'Christ Appears to Monk.' Mussafia, II, 50 (21).
Stella maris
X1
R1
3. Jewish Boy
9
10
13. Columns Raised
7
7
27. Judas in Hell
65
1
40. Christ Appears to Monk
65a
2
The Cistercian legends stand at the beginning of the Rouen Mariale, probably not their
original position. In MS Paris 17491, the sequence is 'Judas' (65), 'Christ Appears to Monk'
(65a), 'Orleans' (68), and 'Mare' (68a); in the Stella maris 'Judas' is between 'Orleans' and
'Mare' (nos. 26, 27, and 29). In three other similar collections 'Orleans' and 'Mare' are not
far separated: SG, nos. 30 and 33; MS Charleville 168, nos. 3-4; and in the Rouen Mariale
itself, nos. 20 and 18. The primary position given to the two Cistercian legends in the Rouen
Mariale may be an argument for the Cistercian origin of its source, the Clairvaux Mariale.
879
Stella maris
R1
Vincent of Beauvais
14. Chaste Empress
34
chs. 90-92
20. Incest
—
93-95
37. Jewess
—
99a
•"The prose versions should, on general principles, be older than the versified versions.
There is, in the case of 'Incest,' some further indication of the greater age of the prose
version. In its versified form, details have been added to the father's departure patterned
after Joachim's retirement to the hills before the birth of the Virgin.
Collections of Mary Legends
63
incidentally certain important similarities between the Rouen Mariale and
the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve, John of Garland's exemplar. They
shared the Quoniam prologue and one legend, 'Mare,' characteristic only
of the collections it prefaced. The two Cistercian legends, furthermore,
have been the means of distinguishing certain of the Quoniam collections
from others. The work of St. Germain-des-Pres lacks both of them;
MS Charleville 168 has only the first ('Judas'); three collections only include them both: MS Paris 17491, the collection of Ste. Genevieve, and the
Rouen Mariale. The collection of Ste. Genevieve has thirty legends altogether in common with the Rouen Mariale; and the larger collection,
MS Paris 11491, relates forty of the same legends as are narrated in the
Rouen compilation. Obviously the three collections are an intimately related group. The first series (X1) of MS Paris 17491 was probably one of
the sources of the collection of Ste. Genevieve. Where shall the Rouen
Mariale be placed with reference to the other two?
The first two collections, X1 and the collection of Ste. Genevieve, seem
to be earlier in origin than the Rouen Mariale. Of the legends that can be
dated, the most recent occur in the Rouen Mariale.281 The Rouen Mariale,
then, probably descended from one of the two earlier collections. Comparison of the three collections suggests that the first series (R1) of the
Rouen Mariale might have been drawn either from MS Paris 17491 (X1)
or from the collection of Ste. Genevieve, with the probability in favor of
Ste. Genevieve. Only three of the legends of Rl, except 'Musa,' lack in
MS Paris 17491 (X 1 ): (1) chapter 18 of the In gloria martyrum of Gregory of Tours (no. 8); (2) 'Chaste Empress' (no. 34); and (3) 'Bonus'
(no. 36). The two latter, however, are important in the differentiation of
the Quoniam collections. They belong to the versified series of X2. With
the exceptions of MS Paris 17491 and MS Charleville 168, the Quoniam
collections, including John of Garland and the Rouen Mariale, use the
prose versions of most of the legends.282 Although John of Garland does
181
The only legends of the Stella marts, except those clearly unique, which relate incidents
later than the middle of the twelfth century are: (i) 'Judas,' recorded by the monk Helinand
of Froidmont under the year 1161; (2) 'Mare,' an incident referred to in a letter of pope
Alexander III, 1159-1181; and (3) 'Christ Appears to Monk,' which occurred when Serlo de
Vaubadon was abbot of Savigny, 1140-1147.
Besides these three legends MS Paris 17491 records an incident (no. 72) which took place
in the youth of Baldwin, abbot of Belleval in Lorraine, who flourished in 1179.
Three legends of the Rouen Mariale bear dates nearer the close of the century: (1)
'Brabantine Blasphemers' mentions the date 1187 (no. 47); (2) Simon, abbot of Loz, the
narrator of 'Cistercian Monk Persecuted' (no. 48) witnessed charters in 1197 and 1201, and
died in 1204; (3) the archbishop of Canterbury, mentioned in 'Five Psalms' (no. 53) has
been identified by Ward (Catalogue of Romances, 11, 633) as Theobald (1139-1161), the
monk as Joscio who died in 1163, and the Cistercian abbot who told the story as Andrew,
abbot of Vaux-Cernay, 1161-1173.
""Bonus' is lacking in the Stella mans also; 'Chaste Empress' is no. 14, though there is
no difference in the details of the prose and the partly versified versions. The other two,
64
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
not relate the first of the legends which differentiate X1 from the Rouen
Mariale, he does include chapter 21 of the same work of Gregory of Tours,
'Christ Image Wounded.'283 The collection of Ste. Genevieve, therefore,
may have included both chapters 18 and 21.281 The Stella maris lacks sixteen of the legends of the first series of the Rouen Mariale, but fifteen of
them are the common tales of the Quoniam collections which ought to have
been in the collection of Ste. Genevieve. The other is 'Bonus,' one of the
series lacking also in MS Paris 17491.
The legends which clearly distinguish the collection of Ste. Genevieve
from MS Paris 11491 (X1) in its relation to the Rouen Mariale occur in the
second series (R2) of the Rouen Mariale. It is, for the most part, made up
of legends which are lacking in both the Stella maris and X1, some of them
local or unique. Only two legends commonly in other Quoniam collections are among them.285 The Stella maris includes one of these and MS
Paris 17491 (X 1 ), both of them. The Stella maris, on the other hand, includes two additional legends of the second series, R2, not to be found in
any other of the Quoniam collections, nor in SV:286 the 'Painter of Flanders' and 'Beirut.'287 The latter is not a Mary legend, either as told by
John of Garland or by the compiler of the Rouen collection, and its presence is exceptional in collections of Mary legends. In other words, the
correspondence between MS Paris 17491 (X1) and the Rouen Mariale ends
at no. 43 (R1), while the similarity of the Rouen collection to the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve continues through the entire work. The lost
collection of Ste. Genevieve was, therefore, nearer to the source of the
Rouen Mariale than is MS Paris 17491 (X 1 ), a conclusion which is substantiated by a study of the legends of the Stella maris which are repeated
in the collection of Vincent of Beauvais.
III. Vincent of Beauvais and John of Garland both extracted legends
from collections using the Quoniam gloriosissima virgo prologue.288 Both
'Incest' (no. 20 of the Stella maris) and 'Jewess in Childbirth' (no. 37), do differ in details.
John of Garland's details are from the prose versions. The collection of St. Germain-des-Pres
includes but two versified legends, nos. 41 and 43, but they are Pez legends. One of these,
the Rouen Mariale also uses in versified form.
"* Stella maris, no. 53.
"* There is some evidence in the Stella maris that these two legends were associated in
collections of Mary legends. Gregory of Tours, ch. 18, was a Mary legend from the beginning, while ch. n in Gregory of Tours and elsewhere was the story of a crucifix. In the
Stella maris the crucifix has become a Mary image with the Child sitting in the Virgin's lap,
and it is the Child that is wounded.
186
Number 54, 'Five Joys,' and no. 55, 'Charitable Almsman,' Pez, nos. 4 and 5. The second legend is no. 48 of the Stella maris.
"• The tale of 'Beirut' does appear on the first folios of the volume of MS Paris 14463,
but it is not a part of the collection itself.
'"Stella maris, nos. 54 and 21, and Rouen Mariale, nos. 44 and 63. The 'Painter' is the first
legend of R* and 'Beirut,' the next to the last legend.
""See pp. 37-38.
Collections of Mary Legends
65
their sources, the collection of Ste. Genevieve and the Mariale magnum,
incorporated 'Mariale' materials of the sort described in the Mirande prologue of the Rouen Mariale, writings of 'the fathers ancient and recent.'289
John of Garland, moreover, gathered from the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve fourteen of the thirty-three legends which Vincent of Beauvais, V\
took from the Mariale magnum, and eight of the ten, V2, which he took
from the Clairvaux Mariale?90 Seventeen of the twenty-two (14+8) are
the tales of the Quoniam collections, St. Germain-des-Pres and MS Paris
17491 (X 1 ). The other five have come to light in the same versions only
in Vincent of Beauvais, or in collections known to be related to his or to
the Mariale magnum:
12.
20.
37.
42.
54.
Stella marts
Woman Revived for Confession
Incest
Jewess in Childbirth
Little Devil in Church
Painter of Flanders
F1
—
93-95
99a
—
104a
V
117
—
—
118
—
R1
—
—
—
—
44
•
Vincent of Beauvais (F 2 ) selected, then, from the Clairvaux Mariale
eight of the same legends which John of Garland took from the collection
of Ste. Genevieve, two of them unusual legends, missing from other
Quoniam collections. From the Mariale magnum he took fourteen of the
legends of Ste. Genevieve, three of them distinctive. Nine of the fourteen
legends common to the collection of Ste. Genevieve and the Mariale magnum, including one distinctive narrative (no. 44), are also in the Rouen
Mariale. Presumably these nine legends, at least, arrived in the Rouen
Mariale by way of its source, the Clairvaux Mariale. Seventeen of the narratives of Ste. Genevieve, then, can be certainly ascribed to the Clairvaux
Mariale (9 in V1 + 8 in V2), among them three significant ones. The number must actually have been much larger for two reasons: (1) John of
Garland merely selected legends from a larger collection at Ste. Genevieve,
and Vincent of Beauvais reproduced in summary form only a portion of
the Mariale magnum. (2) The compiler of the Mariale magnmn, the source
of Vincent of Beauvais, had already eliminated many of the common
""This is clearer in the case of Vincent of Beauvais who makes excerpts from Melito of
Sardis, an ancient father, and St. Elizabeth of Schonau, whose brother, a 'recent' one, related
her visions. John of Garland, besides incidents from the life of the Virgin Mary from the
Pseudo-Matthei Evangelium, incorporates within the work a great deal of matter from
'recent' writers on the seven liberal arts (see pp. 66-68) which he probably regarded as
fitting substitutes for the 'recent' fathers in his source. In addition, there are some references to the Roman writers of the classical period.
""The marked difference in the proportion of legends common to the Stella marts and
V1 (14/33) as compared with V (8/10) supports our thesis (pp. 44 and 55) that the
Mariale magnum comprised only selected legends from the Quoniam collections to which
were added tales of Cistercian origin, while the Clairvaux Mariale was a compilation similar
to the older Quoniam compilations, among which was the collection of Ste. Genevieve.
66
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Quoniam legends. These selective processes tended to reduce the number
of legends common to Vincent of Beauvais and the Stella maris, upon whose
fragments of their originals our evidence must depend. Even if there were
no other confirmation, seventeen legends, therefore, seems a sufficiently
large number upon which to base the conclusion that the collection of
Ste. Genevieve was the source of the non-Cistercian legends of the Clairvaux Mariale. From the Clairvaux Mariale, the Rouen collection had thirty
legends of Ste. Genevieve; and the Mariale viagnum, the fourteen nonCistercian legends related by Vincent of Beauvais (F 1 ). The eight legends
of V2, the Dominican compiler derived directly from that source.
The order of the narratives of Vincent of Beauvais, the Rouen Mariale,
and the Stella maris supports the same conclusion. The Mariale magnum
and the Rouen Mariale, it would seem, inherited it from the collection of
Ste. Genevieve by way of their common source, the Clairvaux Mariale, and
passed it on to Vincent of Beauvais.291 The similarity in sequence extends
only through V1, but V2 is lacking the careful notation, ex Mariali magno
. . . Explicit de Mariali magno. Item alia, which indicates that the compiler was using all the legends between those notes in their original order.
In other words, the series V1 is a portion of the Mariale magnum; the legends of V2 are merely tales selected in no particular order from the Clairvaux Mariale.
The character of the Stella maris as a whole is further evidence of the
relation of its source, the collection of Ste. Genevieve, to the Mariale collections. Besides the incidents from the Pseudo-Matthei Evangelium, a
large amount of matter appropriate to a 'Mariale' is scattered throughout
the Stella maris — medicine, physical geography, and astronomy 'appropriated' to the Virgin Mary,292 a description of the festivals of the Virgin,293
a sequence in her honor,294 and numerous other songs of praise.295 What
John of Garland has composed, in fact, is a Mariale parvum, adapted not to
the uses of monks in a monastery, as was his source, but to young students
m
S e e table, pp. 46-47. The similarities between the collection of Ste. Genevieve, the
Rouen Mariale, and Vincent of Beauvais could scarcely be attributed to descent of all three
from the Mariale magnum. The dates of legends in the Rouen Mariale and Vincent of Beauvais are later than those of the Stella maris, except those legends which were clearly the additions of John of Garland himself. The collection of Ste. Genevieve could, on that basis,
have been made as early as 1161. The Rouen Mariale must have been composed not earlier
than 1187, and probably not earlier than 1197. See p. 63, note 281. All three of the legends of
the Rouen Mariale, upon which these later dates depend, appear also in Vincent of Beauvais,
(chs. 100-iioa and 116b). If, in addition, the legends of MS Additional 1^723, also attributed
to the Mariale magnum, are taken into consideration, then it could not have been compiled
earlier than 1200. The probability is that the collection of Ste. Genevieve was compiled just
before 1200 and the Mariale magnum about a generation later.
""Stella maris, 11. 64-75, 148-213, 670-675, 916-987, 1006-1035.
"»/WJ, 11. 988-1005.
id^ 11. 1036-1053.
Wi., 11. 742-759, 808-825, 844-849,1126-1155.
Collections of Mary Legends
67
learning the seven liberal arts. As such it is a collection unique in the history of Mary legends.
IV. The hypothesis which makes the collection of Ste. Genevieve the
source of the non-Cistercian legends of the Clairvaux Mariale explains the
presence of the 'Chorister' (no. 43) in the Stella marts. Although it is
missing from the Rouen Mariale and Vincent of Beauvais, it does appear in
the second series, Q2, of MS Paris 18134 and the Vendome collection which
are both descendants of the Mariale magnum.296 Comparison of the texts
of the 'Chorister' supports the conclusion that all three were descended
from a common source.297
Three, or possibly only two, of the narratives of John of Garland's
Stella maris are unique. One, the story of the healing of the victims of
ergotism at Notre-Dame de Paris,298 was obviously inserted to enable the
author to pay a compliment to William of Auvergne, bishop of Paris.
Another, the victory of the Parmese over Frederick II, was the latest piece
of news to come to Paris from Italy.299 The third, a tale of a school-boy
saved in a thunderstorm by the singing of Ave maris Stella,300 may also be
unique, though the theme is a common one. It could have been inserted by
the author from memory, because he was preparing a lesson for school-boys.
Almost all the legends and much of the introductory matter, John of
Garland took from his source, but these account for only two-thirds of the
lines of the Stella maris. The author intended to use his collection, as he
did many of the other things he wrote, in the schools. He tells us, therefore, that he has inserted lessons on various subjects, natural science, astronomy, and theology.301 These lessons are, none-the-less, subordinated to
the purposes of a Mariale, or a work in praise of the Virgin Mary. Hippocrates is mentioned in support of the power of the Virgin to heal human disease.302 The author of the British Museum gloss says that it was
John of Garland's purpose to adapt the astrology of Martianus Capella to
the Virgin Mary.303 The constellations, as John of Garland describes them,
**AfS Paris 18134, f°l- '42» n 0 - 3'> a n d Isnard, pp. 194-196 (41). It stands strangely in Q'
among legends whose source is probably Gautier de Coincy. Gautier de Coincy also relates
the anecdote, but the version of Q* is obviously not that of Gautier de Coincy, nor does it fit
properly into the sequence. The Paris version is surprisingly close to that of John of Garland, considering the nature of the other legends of 0".
'""See below, notes on the 'Chorister,* pp. 194-195, and Carleton Brown, A Study of the
Miracle of Our Lady Told by Chaucer's Prioress (Chaucer Society, London, 1910).
** Stella maris, no. 28.
"• Ibid., no. 59, and p. 79.
m
Ibid^ no. 56.
m
lbidn John of Garland's preface, below, p. 87, Et phisicalia et astrologica interserta
[sum].
** Stella maris, 11. 64-66. The author of the gloss of the Bruges manuscript quotes the
words of the Prognostics which he considers the authority for his statement.
**lbid^ 1. 148. Hie adaptat autor quamdam astrologiam Martiani beate virgini.
68
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
each in its own particular way, signify some aspect of the Virgin's dominion or that of her Son.304 The constellation of Virgo, as described by Albumasar, for instance, pictures the Virgin Mary nursing her Child.305 The
Stella maris demonstrates how even the secular learning of the schools was
in the author's classes made to serve the Mary cult.
The Stella maris is significant also in other respects, quite aside from its
connection with the schools and the substance it gives to the personality of
the valuable collection of Ste. Genevieve. John of Garland wrote, not as
a monk, but as a layman interested in the art of writing poetry. So far as
the evidence goes, he is the first lay compiler of Mary legends in northern
France. For the first time he gives a collection of Mary legends the semblance of the literary form of the panegyric. His purpose is not that of the
monk-compilers, to assemble a large number of Mary legends. The marvellous deeds of the Virgin are but examples of her power in heaven and
earth, a power which the learning of the seven liberal arts, medicine, and
theology confirms. The narratives, he merely suggests, and these are followed at intervals by songs in her praise.
In this respect the collection made by Alfonso el Sabio, King of Castile,
1252-1284, resembles the Stella maris. The Cantigas de Santa Maria309
was written in the second half of the thirteenth century in the Galician
language. Of the four hundred and twenty-two canticles set to music,
three hundred and fifty-three are Mary legends. The narratives are at
times very brief, and songs in praise of the Virgin are interpolated at regular intervals. Although it could not be maintained that the author owes the
particular form to the Stella maris, there are some important similarities between the two collections.
The legends of the Cantigas were gathered from many sources, most of
them written sources.307 The author mentions a book of the miracles of
Soissons,308 and he had also the Speculum historiale, sent him by St. Louis
of France. One of the collections he used, he says had nearly three hundred
legends in it.309 To add to these, he sent to shrines and had local compilations copied, so that he complains that he cannot write down half of those
he knows.310 The legends fall into two groups, (1) those which are local,
and (2) those widely-known in France and perhaps in Spain. Of the latter,
d^ 11. 148-213. The Galaxy lights the way to the House of God, as does the Virgin;
Dracho, who degraded the first man, Mary treads under foot; etc.
• " 7 « i , 11.975-977.
306
Las Cantigas de Santa Maria, ed. by La Real Academia Espanola, Madrid, 1889.
*" lbid^ pp. 36 (25), 75 (51), 84 (58), 108 (68), 114 (73), and 163 (106), in which there
are references to sources, and Aubrey F. G. Bell, 'The Cantigas de Santa Maria of Alfonso X,'
Modern Language Review, x (1915), 338-348.
109
Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, p. 88 (61).
p4933
id^ p. 168 ( n o ) .
Collections of Mary Legends
69
Mussafia counts ninety-four.311 Although king Alfonso says that he used
collections of many countries,312 all ninety-four are legends commonly
found in the collections of northern France, especially the collection of
Ste. Genevieve and the 'Mariale' collections.313 Of the sLxty-one tales of
the Stella maris, thirty-seven are included in the Cantigas, fifteen of them
also in the Mariale magnum. Particularly significant is the treatment of the
legends of Soissons. They are in the Cantigas, as in the Stella maris, scattered through the entire collection. In both the Cantigas and the Stella
maris the festivals of the Virgin are named and described.314 In addition to
the fifteen legends of the Mariale magnum which are common to the Cantigas and the Stella maris, there are twelve other 'Mariale' legends among
the Cantigas. Clearly either the collection of Ste. Genevieve or one of the
'Mariale' collections, or both, was used in the composition of the Cantigas.
Alfonso el Sabio is known to have visited Paris, where he could have seen
both John of Garland and his source; and it is not likely that his agents
overlooked Clairvaux in their search for Mary legends.
9. THE Stella Maris IN ENGLAND
John of Garland's collection seems to have been more popular in England than in France. To a Frenchman of the thirteenth century, they were
but old familiar narratives; but to an Englishman of the same period many
of them were new tales, while others were unfamiliar versions of anecdotes
he already knew. One. of the manuscripts of the Stella maris which remain,
MS British Museum Royal 8 c iv, belonged in the middle ages to the monastery of Bury St. Edmunds. There is some reason to believe that it was
copied there about 1300 by a monk whose name was Adolf, who supplied
it with certain glosses in addition to those which his exemplar already possessed. A study of the text shows that two manuscripts were used in the
construction of Adolf's text, one from which he copied the text, and another which was used for corrections.315
A manuscript given to the library of St. Augustine's Abbey at Canterbury by one of its monks, Thomas de Wyvelsberge, included both the
Stella maris (or a part of it) and the Epithalamium beate Marie virginis of
John of Garland.316 If he is the Thomas de Wyvelsberge mentioned in the
*"• Cantigas, op. cit^ i, 63.
""The legend which he says was one of nearly three hundred is no. 33, 'Pilgrim in the
Sea,' a legend told both by John of Garland and Vincent of Beauvais.
*" Cantigas, pp. 567-586.
915
See pp. 82-34.
""M. R. James, The Ancient Libraries of Canterbury and Dover (Cambridge, 1903),
pp. 281 and lxxiv. The work is listed as Meditacio bona lobannis de Garlandia de miraculis
beate virginis. Since it is followed immediately by the Epithalamium, it can scarcely be
doubted that the Stella maris is meant, or at the least, one of the prefaces to the Stella maris.
70
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
register of the abbey in documents of 1242 and 1243,3" then his volume
must have contained the earliest known copy of the Stella maris in England.
At the beginning of the fifteenth century John Boston, monk of Bury,
listed a manuscript of the Stella ?naris among the books which he saw in the
monastic libraries of England and Scotland. He uses the title mentioned
in the colophon of the British Museum manuscript and quotes the incipit.318
It is possible that the manuscript he knew was the one which Adolf copied,
the British Museum manuscript we know today; but, on the other hand,
Boston does not give it the number (82) by which he usually designates
a Bury book,319 nor does he mention other works in the same codex.320 The
likelihood is, therefore, that it was not the Bury copy that he has in mind,
but one belonging to another library.
At about the same time that Boston of Bury was noting the presence of
the Stella marts in English monastic libraries, an anonymous Englishman
was using it to produce a remarkable collection in English verse. A considerable fragment of his work is now in the British Museum, MS Additional 39996?21 in script of the first half of the fifteenth century. It includes eighteen legends, breaking off in the middle of the tale of 'Julian the
Apostate,' number 24 of the Stella maris. There can be little doubt that the
Englishman had before him the Stella maris of John of Garland, even
though he stretches the narratives to many times the length of the original.
The order in which he tells the tales is that of the Stella maris, except for
slight alteration:
The same volume contained Compendiosa excerptio de libro qui vocatur Muriate. I should
like to think that the 'compendious excerpt' was from the collection of Ste. Genevieve,
which in all probability was called 'Mariale.' If that should be true, then it becomes barely
possible that John of Garland's hint to the prior of Ste. Genevieve that he ought to 'publish*
the Stella maris was acted upon. (See below, the author's preface.) The catalogue edited
by James was made between 1491 and 1497. The manuscript has been lost.
*" The Register of St. Augustine's Abbey, Canterbury (ed. G. J. Turner and H. E. Salter,
London, 1915), pt. ii, p. 486 and 495. The volume, as it appears in James' catalogue, however, includes a work of master Walterus de Wobume, Egregium carmen de beata virgine
et inclito (?) eius filio. He ought to be the Gualterus de Wiburne mentioned by Leland,
Pits, and Bale as the author of a poem entitled Carmen de beata virgine et eius filio. John
Pits in Relationum bistoricarum de rebus Anglicis, tomus primus . . . (Paris, 1619), p. 500,
gives his floruit as 1367. There is, however, no other evidence in the contents of the volume
and nothing else known about Walter of Woburn that would make it necessary to give him
and the manuscript in which his work appeared such a late date. Furthermore, the work of
Walter of Woburn might have been added to the manuscript presented by Wyvelsberge
at a later date.
"* Thomas Tanner, Bibliotheca Britannico-Hibernica (London, 1748), p. xxxiii. Tanner
prints only a portion of the catalogue of Boston of Bury, pp. xxv-xliii.
*" M. R. James, The Abbey of S. Edmund at Bury (Cambridge, 1895), pp. 34-35.
""That is, not in the portion of the work which Tanner prints, which is restricted to
English authors.
•"•The manuscript is described and the Mary legends are edited by Ruth Wilson Tryon
in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 340-373. The author
points out the relationship of the collection to the Stella maris, although she had not studied
it in detail.
Collections of Mary Legends
MS 39996
Stella marts
MS 39996
10
I
2
—
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
'3
'4
II
2
1
13
12
3
4
5
322
12
7i
Stella marts
6
7?
8
n
'5
*7
>4
»5
20
16
18
»7
19
18
22
'9
24
In many cases the Englishman's tales are spun in alarmingly original fashion
from the meager details of John of Garland. The materials with which he
elaborates his narrative are not all gathered from thin air, however. He
knows, in some instances, the complete versions of the stories;323 and in at
least one case, he seems to have had another collection close at hand when
he wrote.324 Only the first legend of MS Additional 39996, how a monk
was tempted by the devil in the form of a woman and saved by his prayer
to the Virgin has no connection with John of Garland.
In conclusion, therefore, it may be said that the collection of Ste. Genevieve, the source of John of Garland, was a large and significant compilation of materials about the Virgin Alary, chiefly Mary legends. It included
not only those tales which had been gathered together in the monastery of
St. Germain-des-Pres and by the unknown compiler of the first series of
MS Paris 17491 (X 1 ), but also certain significant legends used in the construction of the Clairvaux Mariale. The Cistercian monk who compiled it
had little to do but interpolate groups of Cistercian legends here and there,
and his collection was complete. John of Garland, on the other hand,
adapted the collection of Ste. Genevieve for use in his class-room. He
wrote some verses merely suggesting the content of selected legends, and
then he built his own 'Mariale' by the addition of matter from the arts'
curriculum, intended to show how all the seven liberal arts unite in worship of the Virgin Mary. His little work also gave new form to collections
*" There is a folio missing at this point. It probably had on it no. 7 of the Stella marts.
*"See Tryon, pp. 357-360 (12-14) and 363-365 (»7);
124
The author here reproduces a comparatively insignificant detail almost exactly as in
the Pez version:
Cur dedisti flium quern tarn sceleri morte et sibi et matri subtrahere decrevisti? Set qula
potes suschare mortuum, cut esse cum non esset, dedisti, indubitanter credo, spero, confido
. . . (MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fol. 170').
I hade hym by J>i grace verray
And by J>i likinge he is a-way
And J>ou may %& \n wille be
My sone lyf lene to me.
(Tryon, pp. 352-353,11. 18-22)
72
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
of Mary legends. The entire Stella maris is a panegyric in praise of the
Virgin. The legends are merely cited as examples of her prowess over man
and nature. Whether or not the Spanish king, Alfonso el Sabio, saw the
Stella maris at Paris, he composed a work which used Mary legends in much
the same way, not as pieces to be read in monasteries or told by preachers
to point a moral, but as part of a literary composition glorifying the Virgin.
Before the end of the thirteenth century John of Garland's work was
taken to England, perhaps by the author himself or by one of his students,
and there became the source of a collection in English verse.
The table on pages 74-75 shows the relationship between the Stella maris
and other collections.
The last quarter of the twelfth century and the first half of the thirteenth
century was, as this study shows, a period of importance in the development of the Mary cult, one of the chief features of which was the collection and popularization of legends about the Virgin Mary. The collection
of anecdotes of universal rather than merely local interest had got well
under way by the beginning of the twelfth century with the compilation
of HM, the Elements-series, and TS. They included not more than seventeen legends. Possibly the number had mystical significance in connection
with the Mary cult, or it may have been determined only by the requirements of the services and other uses to which the collections were put.
Just when or where the Pez collection of forty-three legends came into
existence is not certain, but it could not have been much earlier than the
SV1 collections, nor far distant from their home. To Pez, the compiler of
SV1, probably in the third quarter of the twelfth century, added another
series of seventeen or eighteen tales, gathered chiefly from the ecclesiastical
writers of northern France and from monastic and communal records in
the same region. The number of copies of SV1 and the collections descended from it at Paris in the thirteenth century S25 make it probable that
it was compiled in a Parisian monastery.
The compiler of the first collection with the Quoniam gloriosissima virgo
virginum prologue was probably a monk of St. Germain-des-Pres, who
did his work in the last quarter of the twelfth century. To SV1, or a collection like it, he added another group of seventeen tales, nearly all of which
originate in the region of northern France of which Paris is the center.
Other monastic compilers used his to heap up even larger collections to
the glory of the Virgin and to give greater interest and variety to the readings in the monasteries.
•"There were two copies of SV1 at the Sorbonne, one at St. Victor, and probably one at
St. Germain-des-Pres. Two collections descended from SV1 were also at Paris, one at St.
Germain-des-Pres and one at Ste. Genevieve.
Collections of Mary Legends
73
It was still another Paris collection, that of the monastery of Ste. Genevieve, which became the foundation upon which the Cistercians built the
Clairvaux Mariale by the addition of legends gathered chiefly from their
own monasteries. Obviously there was a limit to which the mere accumulation of materials of this sort could go, if they were to be used conveniently. The collection of St. Victor was already a large folio volume, and
it included nothing but legends and two other short treatises about the
Virgin. A collection of three hundred legends, such as Alfonso X mentions, if they were reproduced in full in an easily legible script, must have
been an unmanageable volume. Some drastic sort of selection must take
place when new tales were added, or the legends must be revised to make
them briefer. Both these processes went on in the Cistercian monasteries.
The Mariale magnum used only selected legends from the older collections, and the abbot of Vendome reduced the traditional tales to the briefest
form possible. Even the Cistercian anecdotes were pruned of circumstantial details. The compiler of MS Additional 15723 to save space used
the briefer versions of Vincent of Beauvais, but copied in full other legends
of the Mariale magnum. It remained for the preachers of the Dominican
and Franciscan orders who took the legends out of the monasteries and
into the market squares of the towns to eliminate all the matter which encumbered the narrative.
In the earliest compilations, except in the Elements-series which has a
unity of its own, little care had been given to the form of the collection
itself. There was some attempt in Pez and SV1 to distribute new legends
among the old, probably to give some degree of novelty to each group as
it was used in the monasteries. The compiler of the Quoniam collection of
St. Germain-des-Pres used subject matter to some extent as a principle of
organization in his first series (SG1), and the social status of the individuals
concerned in the second (SG2). The matter, other than Mary legends,
was apparently incorporated into most of the collections of the twelfth and
early thirteenth centuries without much thought as to its position in the
collection. In the collections of Ste. Genevieve and the Mariale magnum,
these materials were placed at, or near, the beginning of the collection and
arranged with reference to the life of the Virgin: (r) accounts of her parents
and her earthly life from the Pseudo-Matthei Evangelium, (2) her assumption as in Melito of Sardis and Elizabeth of Schonau, and finally (3) the
miraculous deeds she performed after her assumption. Preachers varied the
order of the tales to suit their need to illustrate a moral truth, grouping
those from which a given lesson could be extracted under a single heading.
The collection of Mary legends was in northern France by the middle
of the thirteenth century no longer confined to monks or cathedral clergy.
John of Garland is the first known lay compiler of Mary legends in that
Milk: Tongue and Lips
Abbess
Jewish Boy
Son Restored
Devil in Beasts' Shapes
Barns Filled
Saracen and Mary Image
Ring on Finger
Toledo
Pilgrim in the Sea
Mead
Woman Revived
Columns Raised
Chaste Empress
Nativity
Mother of Mercy
Libia
Mary Image Insulted
Jew Lends to Christian
Incest
Beirut
Clerk of Chartres
Hours Sung Daily
Julian the Apostate
Priest of One Mass
Orleans
Judas
25
24
84
38
9
26
66
64
58
31
28
26
3'
10
n
86
—
—
—
—
68a "I
67 )
14
—
119b
29
16
32
—
—
23
70
21
—
—
79
48
5
37
27
72
—
—
3
73
102
10
3°
—
40
45
—
7]
-
6}
'7
1}
29
—
—
10
28
59
2
'3
68
65
6
39
—
—
n
—
—
—
—
- —
87
7-
81b
88
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
43
—
—
—
—
—
"7
81a
34
—
'5
119c
17
—
82
93-95
<53
15
39
—
—
20
1
S3
29
90-92
119a
113a
12
0
0
6
—
—
—
—
—
7
5
—
5;
—
—
—
113c
83
—
51
2
—
—
—
—
—
43
—
—
30
—
47
—
7
—
21
7
8
47
9
10
—
11
—
—
12
2
46
42
2
12
33
23
—
1
6
—
187
•3
—
—
—
Additional j
80
—
*o
1
39
0
onsoel Sabio
14
55
—
47
37
—
—
—
41
49
9
—
—
45
—
32
42
26
53
—
—
3
54
70
39
—
—
OS
|
bius
co
§
•S
>
Paris 1
!?•
CO
0
c
u
1
^
CO
I
fBeau
Paris 1
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
Paris i
Stella maris
1 1
riale
.3
231
3
22
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
5
—
—
•3
—
27
'4
3<S
3
—
—
34
16
'7
'5
4
—
—
18
—
—
—
25
17
—
24
—
23
—
—
4
—
15
32
5'
—
4
18
—
>9
—
—
—
28.
29.
30.
31.
32.
33.
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
Alal des Ardents at Paris
Mare
Purification
Sight Restored
Chartres
Maid of Arras
Conception
Transported
Drowned Sacristan
Jewess in Childbirth
Hildefonsus
Mouth of Hell
Christ Appears to Monk
Fire at Mont-St.-Michel
Little Devil in Church
Chorister
Soissons
Nose Restored
T w o Brothers at Rome
Landmark Removed
Charitable Almsman
Bread
Pilgrim of St. James
Foot Cut Off
Boy Devoted to Devil
Christ Image Wounded
Painter
Will for Deed
Ave marts Stella
Freed from Captivity
Saturday
Parma
Theophilus
Ebbo
—
—
—
—
—
58
10
13
2
—
1
15
—
21
—
—
57a
57b
23
16
5
44
18
65
34
—
—
40
—
57c
25
—
8
6
33
49
68c
18
5
4
54
12
46
74
74
23
63
63
20
66
61
18
14
—
—
2
—
1
40
—
16
—
•9
65a
—
—
—
56a
56b
34
1 1 ">
20
12/
53
49
58
35
46
6
28
9
24
62
.
42
—
—
55
—
50
7
21
__
54
—
56c
56
—
71
43
22 J
—
—
—
30
—
—
—
—
2
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
99a
—
—
—
—
19
—
118
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
105
16
8
—
—
3
—
2
9
41
99b
—
—
"5
44
104a
—
—
—
33
—
* —
—
—
—
—
—
—
—
116a
—
22
—
n
89
2
58
39
—
6
—
61
81
—
—
21
—
—
—
—
—
>39
14
46
37
33
—
115
—
—
—
—
—
—
55
38
—
—
—
n
—
3«
27
—
—
6
—
17
—
—
—
—
—
48
20
_
1
4
—
46
54
26
37
74
45
62
—
3
—
•j6
The Stella Maris of John of
Garland
region. He, before the middle of the century, and Alfonso el Sabio in the
second half gave their collections something resembling literary form.
Their verses do little more than to suggest the familiar narratives, and songs
of praise are introduced at intervals between groups of legends. Once the
collection of Alary legends has emerged from the monasteries into the
hands of the mendicant preachers, vernacular writers and laymen, not
only the legends themselves, but the collections into which they were
gathered take on such variety of form that relationships between them are
difficult to establish.
Two centers in northern France emerge in the last half of the twelfth
and the first half of the thirteenth century as scenes of important activity
in the gathering and dissemination of Mary legends in the Latin language:
the monasteries of Paris and the Cistercian monastery of Clairvaux. Of the
collections made at Paris, that of the monastery of Ste. Genevieve was
probably the largest and the most significant; and of those made at Clairvaux, the Mariale magnum was the best-known and most authoritative. If
either collection has survived the middle ages, it has yet to be discovered.
The Stella maris, nevertheless, provides us with a shrunken image of the
former, and MS Additional 15723 with a somewhat more adequate reflection of the latter.
As for vernacular collections, with which this study has not been primarily concerned, the scanty evidence available in print at the present time
suggests that Soissons was an equally important focal point for the production of collections in the French vernacular. At any rate, northern
France, when its full history has been written, must be accorded a place of
prominence in the development of the Mary cult in its popular and literary
aspects.
HAt, Elements-series, 7*S, and local collections*
Pez, 12th cent. (Ad laudem)
MS Paris 14463, SV\ 12 th cent. (Ad laudein)
I
MSParis i2S93*$Gl
(Quoniam)
AIS Paris 11491, X1 (Quoniam)
[Ur-Gautier]
MS Parts 18134, Q1 (Ad/ai/de??;)
MS Paris 17491, X* (versified)
[Bool: of the Aliracles of Clairvattx (Cistercian) ] and oral sources
.1
Gaurier de Coincy,
1223 (vernacular)
[Collection of Ste.Genevieve, probably before izoo
;
Stella marts,
1248—1249
Vincent of Beauvais, V2,
c. 1147
I
[The Mariale magnum,
1200—124^ (Cistercian)]
. - I
Vendome, c. .250 MS. Additional 15723,
(Cistercian)
, - - (Cistercian)
MS Additional iff23,
(Cistercian)
MS Paris 18134, Q 2 ,
1300-1325
1 1
[The Clairvaux Mariale (Cistercian)]
Pseudo-Celestine,
c. 1300
MS Paris 2333A,
14th cent.
MS Additional 39996,
15th cent, (vernacular)
The Rouen Alariale (Quoniam')
Vincent of-Beauvais,—VJt __
c. 1247 (Dominican)
X.
Caesar olf Heisterbach,
^1223—1227 (Cistercian)
Pseudo-Caesarius
(Cistercian)
~~
v c / i 300
'(Dominican)
^Rosarius^ 1325—13*50
' (Dominican)
^
A1
.-K
MS Additional 17920,
c. 1400 (vernacular)
Herolt, 1400—1450
(Dominican)
"* -
Pelbart, 1483
(Franciscan)
Speculum exemplor
1481 (Franciscan)
• The diagram attempts to illustrate only roughly the relationship between certain collections made in northern France
and their descendants. An analysis of other manuscripts and a minute comparison of texts must be made before a definitive
study can be undertaken. In many cases probable common sources and intermediary collections, even some of those suggested in this study, have been disregarded. The brackets mark collections which are not extant, or at least have not been
T,
Tfi~J
identified.
II
INTRODUCTION TO THE TEXT OF
THE STELLA MARIS
i.
THE AUTHORSHIP AND DATE OF THE
Stella Marts
J
OHN OF GARLAND himself acknowledges the authorship of the
Stella marts. In the midst of an apostrophe to the Virgin interpolated
between two legends he writes,
In hiis ridmis quasi cannis
Stridulis planctum Iohannis
Audi de Garlandia.1
His contemporaries knew it as one of his minor works. In the Ars lectoria
John of Garland finishes the enumeration of his works with the line, Hiis
scriptis alia poteram conjungere multa, and the author of the Bruges gloss
comments, Ut Commentarium, Stellam marts, Assertiones fidei, Morale scolarium, Georgica sphitualia.2
The Stella maris is not, as has been suggested,3 to be identified with another work which John of Garland mentions as his own in the Morale
scolarium,
Edita sunt annis in paucis Mira Iohannis,
Transversis pannis promptis ad bella tirannis.
Sarra molestatur ab Agar, dolet et lacrimatur;
Set pius armatur deus ut vindicta sequatur.*
The Morale scolarium was, in the first place, written in 1241,5 seven or
eight years before the Stella maris. Moreover, the content of the Mira or
Mirabilia, as John of Garland describes it, is in no way suggestive of the
Stella maris, nor is there anything in the work that would make reference to
it apt in the situation which he is discussing in the Morale scolarium.
The date of the work may be determined with considerable accuracy by
means of internal evidence. The author, recounting a miracle which took
1
Stella marts, 11. 820-822.
'MS Bruges $46, fol. 76-76*. The author of the gloss of MS Cambridge 38;, fol. 139
writes, Ut Novum dictionarium, Stellam maris, Assertiones fidei. Morale scolarium. L. J.
Paetow prints these glosses in his edition of the Morale scolarium (Berkeley, 1927. Memoirs
of the University of California, iv, 2), pp. 107-108, and A. De Poorter, 'Catalogue des manuscrits de grammaire latine mcdievale de la Bibliotheque de Bruges,' Revue des bibliotheques,
xxxn (1926), 126-127.
• Paetow, op. citn p. 115. In the introduction to the Morale scolarium Paetow gives all the
biographical details that are known about the author.
*/«rf, p. 190,11. 33-36.
*lbid p. 152.
78
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
place in the church of Notre-Dame at Paris, mentions a certain bishop
Guillaume as a witness,
-.
Est in templo virginali
Virgo, medicina mali
Ardentis Parisius.
Fertur ignis infernalis,
• ••
O Gwillelme, presul pie,
Qui conservans es Marie
Oves et ovilia.
Ista vides et testaris.6
Guillaume d'Auvergne was bishop of Paris from 1228 until his death,
March 30, 1249.7 During his episcopacy there was a recrudescence at Paris
of the plague of ergotism, commonly known in the middle ages as sacer
ignis, or as John of Garland calls it, ignis infernalis. In an act of the bishop
and the chapter of Notre-Dame it was ordered in March 1248 (1249) that
the entrance before which the sick and dead were laid, especially those
suffering with sacer ignis, should be illuminated by means of six lamps.8
Still another passage in the Stella maris itself confirms the date, March 30,
1249, as the terminus ad quern,
Ista mira quando scripsi,
Tune scripture favet isti
Studium Parisius.
Hoc magister tune Galterus
Pie rexit, prudens erus,9
Pius cancellarius.
Gautier de Chateau Thierry became chancellor of the University of Paris
in 1244 and was made bishop of Paris after the death of Guillaume d'Auvergne, March 30, 1249.10 If the Stella maris was composed, then, when
Gautier de Chateau Thierry was chancellor of the University and Guillaume d'Auvergne was bishop of Paris, it must have been written before
March 30,1249.
A terminus ex quo is provided by a reference in legend no. 59 to a battle
between the Parmese and Frederick II,
De Frederico a Parmensibus superato et quo tempore factus liber iste
Dum Parmenses invaserunt
Fredericum, detulerunt
Virginis ymaginem.11
* Stella maris, 11. 484-499.
'P. B. Gams, Series episcoporum ecclesiae catholicae (Ratisbon, 1873), p. 596.
•Benjamin Guerard, Cartulaire de Veglise de Notre Dame de Paris, 1 (Paris, 1839), 466.
J0
• Stella maris, 11. 910-915.
Gams, op. cit^ p. 596.
"Stella maris, 11. 904-906. The tide, whether written by John of Garland- or not, indicates that the date of the work is revealed in this legend.
Introduction to the Text of the Stella Maris
79
12
The battle mentioned was the siege of Victoria by Frederick II of February 12, 1248. Matthew Paris describes it in the Chronica majora, and
there are numerous references to it in the annals of the north Italian towns.13
Nothing is said in these accounts about the miracle, although the victory is
generally attributed to divine aid. It is Fra Salimbene, the gossipy Parmese
chronicler, who not only reveals the source of John of Garland's miracle,
but also gives the clue as to the manner in which the news reached John of
Garland in Paris and the length of time it took it to get there. The friar says
that in the year his city was besieged by Frederick he went to France,
first to the pope at Lyons, then to Paris where he stayed eight days from
the festival of the Purification of the Virgin, and finally to Sens. As he was
lying ill at Sens early in March, some French brothers from the Franciscan
convent at Parma came to him telling the news of the victory. The letter
which he mentions was written by the Parmese themselves to Pope Innocent IV at Lyons, a sort of official account of the saving of the city. Salimbene intended to include it in his Chronicle,1* but it has not been preserved.
There is, however, in the Chronica majora of Matthew Paris a similar letter
written by the podesta of Parma to the people of Milan through their
podesta, telling of the same event.15 The story which this official account
tells of the battle is the one which John of Garland puts into verse. Parma
was saved by a picture of the Virgin painted on its standard, and the enemy
suffered great losses. Doubtless the same French Franciscans who brought
the letter to Salimbene at Sens had visited Paris as well. John of Garland
might have had it from a sermon preached by one of the friars, or he may
have seen the document itself.
It is possible to conclude, then, that the Stella marts was completed between February 12, 1248, the date of the siege of Parma and March 30,
1249, the date of the death of Guillaume d'Auvergne and the end of
Gautier de Chateau Thierry's chancellorship of the University of Paris.
It could have been finished as early as March, 1248, for the letter which
was the basis of one of the last three legends had reached Sens, and presumably Paris as well, early in that month.
"Victoria was a camp built near Parma as a base for the siege of Parma. The Parmese
on February 12, 1248 made an attack upon this stronghold and won a decisive victory.
"Matthew Paris, Chronica majora (ed. Henry Richards Luard, London, 1880), v, 13-14.
Annales Parmenses maiores (ed. G. H. Pertz, M. G. H , Scriptores, XVIII, Hanover, 1863),
674-675 and Annales Flacentini Gibellini, ibid-, pp. 496-497.
"Cronica fratris Salimbene de Adam Ordinis Minorum (ed. Oswald Holder-Egger,
M. G. H., Scriptores, XXXII, Hanover, 1913), pp. 212-213.
"Matthew Paris, op. cit^ vi, 146-147; and M. G. H , SS, XXVIII, 297-298.
80
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
2.
THE MANUSCRIPTS OF THE
Stella Maris
There are but two known manuscripts of the Stella maris of John of
Garland: 16
I. MS Bruges 546 = B
The manuscript now in the Public Library of Bruges is the most significant of all the known manuscripts of John of Garland because of its early
date, the richness of the marginal and interlinear glosses, and the bulk of the
work of John of Garland it contains.17 It once belonged to the Cistercian
monastery of Dunes in western Flanders, which was burned by the Gucux
in 1560 and re-established in Bruges in 1624.18 De Poorter has deciphered
an inscription on the first folio which names a certain knight, Henry Sumi,
as an ancient owner.19
The volume, written in an irregular script of the second half of the thirteenth century on vellum, comprises 174 folios, many of which have been
damaged. With the exception of the first number and the various brief
items which fill in the blank spaces, it is devoted to the works of John of
Garland.20 The Stella maris is written in three columns of thirty-eight to
forty-four lines each. The text has been so frequently corrected that it is
more accurate than the British Museum (M) manuscript, which was originally written with more care. Some of the corrections are in the book
hand of the text, while others are in the semi-cursive of the gloss. Titles
appear in faded red ink. Space has been left for rubric initial letters, but
they have never been added.
Numerous interlinear and marginal glosses, probably by a single hand,
accompany the text, some of them of considerable length. There is some
evidence that John of Garland himself wrote much of the gloss. The note
at the bottom of the first folio is clearly his own, written in the first person.
Certain other comments on the legends themselves must have been made
by some one who had seen and read the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve,
John of Garland's source. In the case of fourteen legends appropriate
details are added by the gloss, especially accurate references to the scene of
the incident,21 which would not have remained long in the memory of some
" T h e third manuscript which Paetow mentions in the Morale scolarium, p. 114, MS Cheltenham Phillipps 448, no. 2, is a collection of Mary legends in prose, not the Stella maris. The
manuscript is now in the Staatsbibliothek in Berlin, Theol. Q 369. Information as to its
whereabouts I owe to the kindness of Seymour de Ricci.
" T h e best description is by De Poorter in Revue des bibliotheques, xxxvi (Paris, 1926),
119-133. See also P. J. Laude, Catalogue des manuscrits de la Bibliotheque Publique de
Bruges (Bruges, 1859), 478-485, and Paetow, op. cit^ p. 149.
"Leopold Janauschek (ed.), Originum Cisterciensium, 1 (Vienna, 1877), 51-52, and Henri
Pirenne, Histoire de Belgique, in (Bruges, 1907), 449.
M
De Poorter, op. cit*, p. 133.
" De Poorter lists the numbers in detail.
a
Stella maris, nos. 8, n . 11,14, 17, 19, 27, 32, 34, 37, 41, 43, tf>, and 57.
Introduction to the Text of the Stella Maris
81
one who was only generally familiar with the tales. The author of the
gloss as a whole betrays a particular interest in the natural sciences, as does
the Stella maris and many other works written by John of Garland.22 At
the top of folio 88 is the only existing reference to an unidentified work of
John of Garland, a Liber elegiarum.23
Other glosses must have been written for young boys learning the Latin
language. They are intended to explain the meaning of difficult words,
the gender of nouns, the particular conjugation to which a verb belonged,
to point to an antecedent of a relative pronoun, or to identify a figure of
speech. In the latter part of the manuscript some Latin words have been
given French equivalents.24 The gloss is, therefore, evidence of the use of
the Stella maris in the schools, the purpose for which the author composed it.
II. MS London British Museum Royal 8 c iv = M
The Stella maris is the only work of John of Garland in the British Museum manuscript25 of 210 folios, vellum in 4 0 , comprising miscellaneous
numbers in hands of the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries. The volume
consists of two collections which have been bound together since the fifteenth century.26 The first collection comprises twenty-four numbers,
including the Stella jnaris, and bears the press mark of the abbey of Bury
St. Edmunds, R. 42. The second is a medical collection with the Bury press
mark, M. 35.27 The codex was one of seventeen manuscripts known to have
been acquired by John, Lord Lumley, from the abbey in the late sixteenth
"Paetow, op. cit^ p. 84. Hippocrates (1. 64), Johannitius (1. 113), and Albumasar (1.
976) are quoted. There is a diagram which has to do with the signs of the zodiac, intended
to accompany a long astronomical gloss following 1. 558.
" The lines which are quoted from it have not been found in any of the known works of
John of Garland. It reads Hee sunt dotes hominis glorificati sicut habentur in libro tnagistri
J. elegiarum instead of Hee sunt . . . in libro magistri ]. de Gar., as De Poorter has it (op.
cit^ p. 129).
" Stella maris, 11. 725, 739, 818, 856, 859, and 1076.
" T h e manuscript is described by George F. Warner and Julius P. Gilson, Catalogue of
Western Manuscripts in the Old Royal and King's Collections (London, 1921), 1, 220-232.
" T h e codex, as it stands to-day, reflects the varying fortunes of the library of Bury St.
Edmunds. In 1429 when William Curteys became abbot and John Boston was a monk there,
the library had fallen into decay. Curteys complains that books given out to the brethren
for study have been lent, pledged, or even sold. To restore the situation, he had a library
built, and probably with John Boston as librarian, they made an effort to recover the lost
books and put them in order. Montague Rhodes James, The Abbey of S. Edmunds at Bury
(Cambridge, 1895), p. 41, thinks that the construction of the library was Boston's project.
It was he, in all probability, who reorganized the Royal manuscript and bound the two collections together. An erased table of contents on folio 41* proves that the first collection,
that is R. 42, included at least two other works now missing, De disciplina scholarium, an
anonymous work attributed to Boethius, and Egidius' De verbis Latinis. Both of them are
school-books, as was also the Stella maris and certain other numbers in the collection. The
Stella maris probably began on folio 101 of the original volume, for Roman numerals ci-cv
are written in the lower right-hand corner of the first five folios.
" The letters refer to the contents of the book. The letter 'R' is for Robert Grosseteste
of Lincoln, whose Summa beginning Templum Domini is the first number; and 'M' is for
medical. See James, op. cit^ p. 2.
82
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
or early seventeenth century. King James I purchased it for the Royal
Library along with Lumley's collection.28
John of Garland's Stella maris, the seventh article in the first collection,
begins on folio 16 and is concluded on folio 23* with the colophon, Explicit
liber magistri I. de G. de miraculis beate virginis. The script, a hand of the
thirteenth century, perhaps about 1300, is more careful than that of the B
manuscript. It is possible that the same scribe wrote both text and glosses,
for they are contemporary hands, and some of the corrections of the text
are in the semi-cursive hand of the gloss.29 The scribe who copied the
commentary, and perhaps the text as well, has left his name on the top
margin of folio 2ov at the close of some verses which are pen-trials.30 The
first lines have been trimmed off the margin,
Est stilus equivocus, quia dat. . . .
Columpne medium qualitas Carmentis habet,
Cum ipsum carmen sit officialisque poete,
Est instrumentum quo scribit scriptor Adulfus.
Adolf was probably an Englishman, perhaps even a monk of Bury. Most
of the gloss he must have copied from the text he had before him, for it is
at some points identical with that of the Bruges manuscript. Some of the
glosses were, however, composed by an Englishman who did not know the
legends current in northern France. The legend 'Ring on Finger' is unfamiliar to him, for he names 'Eadmundus' as the hero, thus connecting it
with a similar English tale told about Edmund Rich, archbishop of Canterbury in the reign of Henry III.81 Apropos of the disease of the tongue of
the clerk of the 'Milk' legend, he writes a cancero devoratam, a remark
which proves that he is thinking of 'Twenty-three Plants in Flower,' a
legend of English origin, rather than John of Garland's 'Tongue and Lips
Restored,'S2 current in northern France. The English glosses which appear
on several folios are probably his also.33 Two proper names in the text
itself, 'Willelme' (1. 496) and 'Walterus' (1. 913) are spelled in English
style. Several other spellings of the text and gloss probably indicate English origin. In five instances 'e' is used where 'i' would be expected: 'palleo'
for 'pallio' (I. 84); 'incendeo' for 'incendio' (1. 87); 'vexit' for 'vixit' (1.
87); and 'descraseas' for 'discrasias' (1. 117).
* Warner and Gilson, op. «f, 1, pp. XVIII-XIX.
" Stella maris, 11. 67, 72, 165, 244, 266, 276, 343, etc.
" Another scribbling at the top of the same folio seems to connect Moses, Cadmus, and
the Greeks with the invention of the 'Carmentis notule.'
" Stella marls, notes on no. 8.
"Ibidn notes on no. 1.
**/W<f, 11. 94, 155, 559 and 675. Whoever he was, Adolf the Scribe had the soul of a
goliard, for he concludes some skeptical verses about the gifts of the Virgin with the complaint,
Set mihi sancta parens nihil prestat preter egere.
On the same folio is an uninteresting couplet about ebony. The top of this folio, 19*, has
also been trimmed.
Introduction to the Text of the Stella Maris
83
The text of the M manuscript is written in two columns of thirty-three
to forty-four lines each with the exception of the first and last folios. The
first has but one column and the last three. The chapters are marked by
the use of crude red and blue initial letters. Most of the titles appear in the
margin in the semi-cursive hand of the gloss, the first seven in hands which
differ from that in which the others are written. Two kinds of corrections
have been made. The scribe did some in book-hand presumably when he
copied the text.84 Others were done in semi-cursive from a manuscript
related to B, if not B itself, when the titles and glosses were written.85 Several peculiarities of spelling, besides those mentioned above, differentiate
M from B. Occasionally 'liquor' is spelled 'licor' (1. 218), 'quondam' appears as 'condam' (1. 604), and 'quedam' as 'cuedam' (1. 868). The same
peculiarity extends to the gloss and the titles of M: 'pertorcuens' (p. 89),
'secuntur' (1. 42 and title, p. 89) and 'licor' (1. 219). In two cases 's' is
written for 'c': 'Sedit' for 'Cedit' (1. 391) and 'selis' for 'celis' (gloss to
I.148).
As for the relationship of M and B, the evidence is not entirely conclusive.
There are some indications that a manuscript of the M type was used in the
correction of B, and conclusive evidence that B itself, or a manuscript close
to B, was used in the rubrication and probably the correction of M.
After the text of B had been completed the same scribe, or possibly another who was a contemporary, corrected it and wrote the titles with the
help of a second manuscript. His second exemplar was not M, but it had
some of the characteristics of M. Writing in semi-cursive, the scribe introduced four of Af's readings, all of them verbs, into the text of B as alternative readings.36 He created new and appropriate chapter divisions on folios
87" and 88, writing the titles in the margin or squeezing them in between
the columns.37 He made a sign opposite line 1005 on folio 88 to mark the
omission in B of twenty-four lines which appear in M, and wrote the title
which belongs to them between the columns.38 Using a pair of the same
signs, he indicated the transposition of six lines of the B text to a more suitable position, the position which they occupy in M.39
The nature of these corrections suggests that the scribe's second manuscript, one of the M type, was a later revision of the Stella marts made by
** Stella maris, 11.14, 40, 245, 318, etc.
" / W i , 11.67, 72,165, 244, 266, 267, 343, 361, etc.
" Stella marls, 11. 78, 93, 287, and 703.
" The titles in B ordinarily stand between the lines in spaces left for them by the scribe
of the text. One of the new titles is written vertically between the columns. The new chapter divisions do not, however, agree exactly with those of M.
" The missing lines were never added to the B text. M has no titles on the corresponding
folio. The titles of B and those of M which do appear on the first folios agree sufficiently in
diction that it must be assumed that the archetype had titles. Titles are lacking on the last
three folios of M because they were written along with the gloss.
"Lines 124-129 originally followed 1. 147 in B.
84
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
the author himself. The twenty-four lines of M, omitted in B, have a unity
of their own, one of a series of brief pieces in praise of the Virgin covered
by the title, de eius ?nagnificentia usque ad finem libri. The verses thus interpolated in M are, in all probability, from the pen of John of Garland.
They are similar in form and theme40 to others included under that title
and elsewhere in the Stella maris. He may well have written them after the
completion of the Stella maris and incorporated them into a 'second edition,' which was the parent of the M text.41
A striking case of agreement in error proves that either B, or a manuscript of the B type, was used in the rubrication of M. When B was copied,
there was a thin place, or perhaps a tiny hole, in the vellum of folio 86
exactly where the red initial belongs at the beginning of legend no. 34
(1. 538). The rubric was never made; nor was there a guide to the rubricator. The first word of the line in B, then, is [A]bbas. With use the weak
spot wore into a hole with thin edges until it framed exactly the first letter
of the line beneath on the next folio. The letter was 'P,' and the word to
the casual reader even today appears to be Pbbas. Just so the rubricator of
M copied it, quite oblivious of the fact that the correct letter 'a' had been
written there for his guidance.42 The scribe of the M text has, moreover,
sometimes failed to provide for a rubric where one is clearly needed. The
rubricator of M may have had the assistance of B when he marked the beginning of those chapters with a red paragraph sign.43 Certain corrections
and one alternative reading may also be the result of contact between
B and M.
The M manuscript, except for the last three folios, is even more liberally
supplied with interlinear and marginal glosses than is B. The character of
the commentary as a whole is similar to that of B and sometimes identical.44
Several long glosses, however, distinguish it from B. A theological discussion on the first folio, similar to that of the Quoniam prologue prefixed to
the collection of St. Germain-des-Pres is followed by more details from
the Pseudo-Malthei Evangelium than John of Garland gives. Both these
glosses, together with the reference to a 'register at Rome' as the source of
some of the legends, imply acquaintance with John of Garland's source,
the manuscript of Ste. Genevieve.
The author of the glosses of M, however, was primarily interested in
grammar and the natural sciences, not in theology. He has written a
40
The conception of Our Lord, using figures drawn from meteorology.
" Other works of John of Garland have been similarly revised.
"U the rubricator of M had, however, consistently followed the guide letters of B in
preference to those of his own text, he might have corrected at least two errors, one of them
on the very folio on which he made the unfortunate mistake. Cf. 11. 50S and 808.
"Stella maris, 11. 382 and 529.
Ibid 11. 19, 26, 56, 58, 61, 113, 172, etc.
Introduction to the Text of the Stella Maris
85
rhetorical preface to the Stella maris, pointing out how the principles of
the Clavis Compendii of John of Garland have been applied in the composition of the Stella maris.46 He knows also the Epithalamium beate Marie
virginis and the Compendium graitrmatice of the same author, from both of
which he quotes.46 The most interesting of the glosses are those on 'spiritual
astronomy,' to use the words of the title of the chapter.47 These are but the
counterpart of the glosses on Albumasar's De naturis signorum in B.48
In fact, a comparison of the glosses of M and B leaves the impression of
two students sitting in the class-room listening to their master lecture on
the Stella maris who have decided to divide the labor of taking notes between them. Certain of the briefer remarks are identical, but the long
glosses supplement each other. The M manuscript, it should be noted, has
no French glosses after line 663; and B, none before line 725. At least, it
can be said, that the bulk of the commentary of B and M must have emanated from the same general source. It is just possible that John of Garland
himself wrote a great deal of the M gloss also to go with his 'second edition.'
3.
THE EDITING OF THE
Stella Maris
John of Garland's collection of Alary legends is usually referred to as
Miracula beate Marie virginis or Stella maris.*9 The latter title has been
adopted for this edition, because it is the author's title, and he attached a
particular significance to it. Just as the star of the sea, Virgo, shows itself
in the north to sailors in danger, so his little book by means of the miracles
of the Star of the Sea spreads forth the way of salvation amid the bitterness
of the world to him and his students there in the studium at Paris.50
The two known manuscripts of the work have been used in the preparation of the edition. The Bruges manuscript is designated B and the British
Museum manuscript M. Because it is earlier in date and more adequately
corrected, the aim has been to present as accurate a picture of the Bruges
manuscript, as is consistent with the making of a legible text. In cases of
garbled words, omissions, and errors in B, the readings of M have been
adopted. Lines 1006-1029 are lacking in B. They have been included in
the text, nevertheless, for two reasons: because there is a device in B at the
end of line 1005 which the scribe who made some of the corrections has
pp. 87-88. The work is inedited.
11. 23 and 361. Neither work has been edited.
, 11. 148-213.
"/AW, I.976.
"Paetow, Morale scolarium, p. 114 and elsewhere. The colophon of the M manuscript
reads Explicit . . . de miraculis beate virginis.
""Below, pp. 87-88. In the apostrophe to his work in the poem itself John of Garland
calls it Stella maris (11. 124-126). The same title is used whenever it is mentioned by the
author's contemporaries (above, p. 77).
86
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
used before to indicate an omission, and because the missing lines were
almost certainly written by John of Garland.81
The titles are those of the Bruges manuscript with the exception of that
which prefaces the verse prologue and one other.62 These have been borrowed from M. The assistance of M has also been required in arranging the
sub-divisions of the text. Numbers have been given to legends only, even
though other sub-divisions have titles. The spelling is that of the Bruges
manuscript with a few exceptions, and these have been noted. No distinction has been made between 'ci' and 'ti,' between the long and the short 'i,'
or between V and V.'
The prose preface which introduces the work as it has been edited is in
reality a note at the bottom of the first folio of the Bruges manuscript. It
has been used as a preface to the text for the following reasons: (i) It is
indisputably by John of Garland himself. (2) It explains the circumstances
under which the work was composed and serves as a sort of grammatical
preface. (3) And it helps to solve the mechanical difficulty which results
from the number and length of the glosses at the beginning of the work.
The corresponding preface of the M manuscript has been placed in a parallel position as a gloss.
AH the glosses are included as they appear in the manuscripts, except for
such words as 'dico,' 'id est,' and 'scilicet' when they are not required to
make the meaning clear. Interlinear notes are given without reference to
their position on the folio; the location of others is indicated. Several of the
verses quoted in the glosses have not been identified. Presumably they are
from contemporary works.
The Latin texts of the original versions of the narratives which John of
Garland used could not be reproduced in the notes because of their bulk.
Instead, brief English summaries have been placed at the beginning of each
of the notes on the legends. So far as possible the texts of MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593 have been employed for this purpose.83 The lists of
parallel texts included in the notes take into account only those which are
available in print, and they are rather strictly limited in scope. No attempt
has been made, for instance, to include tales which are merely similar in
theme or in a few details.
81
Above, pp. 83-84.
"See titles preceding 11. 1 and 124.
" T h e differences between these texts and those which the manuscript has in common
with MSS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 1446} and 17491 are negligible, so far as the purpose
for which they have been used, is concerned.
JOHANNIS DE GARLANDIA
STELLA MARIS
Ill
STELLA MARIS
LIBER PROPTER MISTERIA MIRACULORUM QUORUM
CAUSAM PREFACIT*
G
LORIOSE virginis miracula compendiose a parvitate mea descripta
ab armario Sancte Genoveve Parisiensis extracta sunt, et a me
scolaribus meis Parisius ridmificata quam exemplar vivum, per manum
domini prioris eiusdem abatie publigandum ad nostre speculum honestatis.
Seneca dicit non aliter vivas in solitudine et aliter in foro [Epis. vwr., V,
2] ut igitur equaliter vivamus in secreto et in publico in Dei servitio.
Factus est liber iste qui est nobis vivendi positus exemplar, cuius causa
materialis est miracula gloriose virginis. Et phisicalia et astrologica et teologica interserta [sunt]. Et sequitur modus agendi et causa formalis. Causa
•Preface, bottom of jollo [cf. supra, p. 86], B; corresponding preface without
title, marg. M: Quoniam beata virgo est generalis omnium catholicorum invocatrix, ideo ab ea nomen illius libri autor intitulavit. Est enim titulus talis,
Incipit Stella maris. Contingit autem reperire tria per titulum: scilicet materiam,
causam, et fructum, prout dicitur in Clave Compendii:
Materiam titulo causam, fructum retinemus,
Hec tria, si titulus bene ponitur, inveniemus.
[Clavis Compendii of John of Garland, MS Bruges $46, fol. 4OV]
Unde sciendum quod beata virgo Maria non fortuitu aut solo placito parentum
set divina dispositione et dispensatione nomen accepit, ita ut ipsa vocabuli sui
figura magum quoddam innueret sive demonstraret. Interpretatur nomen Maria,
Stella maris, unde quid misticum hec interpretatio generat per similitudinem
ostendamus: Nautis quippe mare transeuntibus opus est notare stellam iuxta
cardinem celi sive iuxta polum articum [MS ardicum corr. articum] coruscantem,
et ex regula illius stelle estimare atque dirigere cursum suum ut portum possuit
apprehendere destinatum [MS destinare corr. destinatum]. Similiter oportet
universos christicolas in fluctus huius seculi remigantes attendere hanc stellam
maris, id est Mariam, que suppremo rerum cardini, id est Deo, proxima est, et
regula exempli eius cursum vite dirigere ut ad portum claritatis eterne valeamus
pervenire. Et quamvis autor iste in omnibus suis carminibus fecerit mentionem
de beata virgine et eius filio omni carente crimine, prout dicit in Clave Compendii:
Principium vite, proles benedicta Marie,
Virginis intacte, sine te nihil ordiar umquam
[Clavis Compendii of John of Garland, MS Bruges 546, fol. 33]
cum maximo affectu compositus illo modo librum totaliter de miraculis beate
88
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
vero finalis est in Christi fide stabili permanentia. Unde teologie supponitur,
et etiam phisice et astronomice. Titulus talis est ab interpretatione huius
nominis, Maria, quod est Stella maris, quia fit denuntiativus stelle maris; et
alia ratione, sicut Stella maris, Virgo, se offert versus septentrionalem plagam
navigantibus et periclitantibus, sic libellus iste per miracula stelle maris viam
salutis pandit in huius mundi amaritudine ut veram pacem mentis hie et in
studio contra vitia conitimur. Unde Iohannes Crisostomus, Vera pax est
contra vitia litigare et virtutibus concordare [Chrysos. in Matth. XXXV al.
XXXVI (Aligne, P.G., LVII, 405). Cf. Morale scolarium (ed. Paetow),
I.441]. In principio concinetur prefatio.
virginis, prout in registro Rome et etiam alibi comprobantur. Proposuit compilare quia prout dicitur in Ecclesiastice, reverentia que matri defertur [Vulg.
Ecclesiaticus, 3,5] illi etiam qui earn talem fecit ut virgo et mater esset exhibetur. Materia ergo presentis opusculi sunt miracula de virgine Maria que est
sola regina mundi, scala celi, ianua paradisi, letabilis angelis, sanctis optabilis,
necessaria perditis, congrua profugatis. Intentio sua sic et autorum versatur circa
materiam. Intendit enim ilia miracula compilare et cleris volentibus placare et
sic patet causa formalis sive modus agendi. Fructus vero sive utilitas et etiam
causa finalis est ut, istis miraculis in cleris et retentis stabiles, in fide Christi de
Maria incarnati stabiles maneamus. Titulus autem, ut predictum est, sumitur ab
interpretatione huius nominis Maria que interpretatur Stella maris. Et ita
patet quod per titulum inveniuntur ista tria: materia, causa, et fructus, ut aperuit.
Servat compromissum et dicitur titulus a 'Titane,' id est a 'sole,' quia [sicut] sol
illuminat totum mundum, similiter titulus illuminat totum librum. Unde versus:
Est a 'Titane' titulus dictus [MS ductus] nee inane,
Quo res clarescit, quo libri causa patescit.
[Clavis Compendii, MS Bruges 546, fol. 40*]
Set ne eronia alicubi incurrat disgressio, set ut fine respondente principio, condigna sit operis consummatio, ad trinum et unum primo fiat invocatio, prout in
Clave Compendii cernitur revolutio:
Vis patris eterna, sapientia nate paterna,
Spintus interna penetratus nos, sancte, guberna.
De rosula verna flos, Christe, marisque lucerna,
Que sunt externa purga virtute superna.
[Clavis Compendii, MS Bruges 546, fol. 25. Cf. also fol. 42* at the close of the
same work, and Morale scolarium (ed. Paetow), 11. 249-252.]
PREFATIO AD MIRACULA QUE SECUNTUR
Fecit Deus mirus mirum,
Dum flos virum nee pro virum
Aliro partu protulit.
Sub-title, lacking B
i. [F]ecit B
Prefatio, In principio huius libri facit autor prefationem ad miracula beate Marie
virginis subsecuta ut secundum apostolicam disciplinam ewangelicamque doctrinam patris et filii et spiritus sancti, unam divinitatem sub pari maiestate et sub
pia trinitate, credamus. Et etiam confiteamur dominum nostrum Ihesum Christum,
unigenitum Dei filium et unum Deum et dominum nostrum, ante secula et sine
tempore de patre natum, in ultimis diebus descendisse de celis et ex spiritu
sancto incarnatum et sancta atque gloriosa virgine et Dei genitrice Maria natum,
et hominem formatum et pro redemptione nostra crucifixum, unum essentie et
substantialis trinitatis coadorandum et glorificandum patri et sancto spiritui.
Nee enim alium Verbum nee alium Christum congnoscimus, set unum atque
eundam ipsum consubstantialem patri secundum divinitatem et substantialem
nobis, eundam ipsum secundum humanitatem passibilem quam inpassibilem
divinitatem. Ut enim in divinitate est perfectus, ita idem ipse in humanitate
est perfectus. Non enim dicendum quod Deus Verbum principium ex Maria
sumpserit, set in ultimis diebus de celis descendit et ex ipsa incarnatus est et
homo factus et natus gemina quidem natura set una persona. Dicit ergo autor
in principio quod ipse Deus, omnium creator et animarum recreator, mirabiliter
se humiliavit quando pro nostra redemptione in beata virgine sese humanavit,
qui si sibi placeret totum genus humanum sola voluntate redemisset. Set noluit
quia sit violentia diabolo. Intulisset et ideo iudicio et non posse suo totaliter
procedebat. Sic enim diabolus, pertorcuens serpentem, femine, scilicet Eve,
suasit ut gustaret pomum vetitum. Eva etiam viro suasit ut gustaret ex quorum
gustu deperditum fuit genus humanum. Similiter per contrarium Deus nuntiavit
ut beate virgini Marie quod conciperet filium Dei qui salutem et redemptionem
humano generi repararet. Sic etiam per fructum ligni totum genus humanum
Adam subpediavit; similiter Christus mortem patiendo in ligno humano generi
salutem repararet marg. M; Materia huius libri sunt miracula gloriose virginis
marg. B
1. Deus, Deus sic diffinitur: Deus est substantia spiritualis, causa inestimabilis
suavitatis, causa ineffabilis pulcritudinis quod angeli qui solem septuplo sua vincit pulcritudine iugiter dilectent sive desiderent in ipsum aspicere. Secundo
modo sic: Deus est summum bonum. Tertio modo sic: Deus est sphera indivisibilis, cuius centrum est ubique, circumferentia vero nusquam. Et Deus dicitur
ethimologice, quasi 'dans eternam vitam solus' marg. M; mirus, mirabilis BM;
mirum, miraculum B
2. Dum flos, dum Maria virgo M; flos, virgo Maria B; virum, filium Dei B,
filium suum M; nee pro virum, sine semine M, id est per virile semen prout
dicitur in Ecclesiastice [Vulg. Ecclesiasticus, 44, 11; 46, n ] . Quid igitur mirum
si sine coruptione nascitur qui sanctificatione concipitur? Non enim decebat ut
90
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
5
Fons in rivum est deductus,
Nectar fundens, siccans luctus
Quos vir primus intulit.
io
Est in fontem versus rivus,
Mater Dei, rivus vivus,
Fons misericordie.
Hec est Stella, mater solis,
Sol de sole, nata prolis,
Lux, regina glorie.
8. vivus rivus corr. rivus vivus B
n . celo M
ille qui nobis efferebat salutem matri preriperet integritatis dignitatem. Nam
qui terra, mari celoque non capitur, in terra unius corpusculi membra suscipitur.
Circumdat enim [virum] mater Maria angelo fidem dando, quia Eva perdidit
virum serpenti consentiendo,
Numquam natura mutavit sic sua iura
Ut virgo pareret, nisi virginitate careret,
Isti sunt versus demonis ad angelum.
Lumine solari nescit vitrum violari
Nee vitrum sole, nee virgo puerpera sine prole,
Isti sunt versus angeli demoni respondentis. [Hans Walther, Das Streitgedicht
(Munich, 1920), p. 103, note 4] marg. M
4. Fons, Deus BM; Fons in rivum, fons est versus in rivum quando Deus, fons
misericordie, suscepit humanitatem in virgine marg. M; rivum, hominem B;
deductus, rivus est deductus in fontem quando gloriosa virgo suscepit Deum
salvatorem [cf. Epithalamium beate Marie virginis of John of Garland, MS
British Museum Cotton Claudius A x, fol. 1,
Culta nites viva speculans in ymagine, vivus
Fons de fonte nitet; natus, ymago patris.
Tu, vite splendor, de fontis ymagine vivi,
Tu, solis radius, quern, radiosa, paris]
marg. M
5. Nectar, dulcedine B, dulcedinem M; fiindens, fons B; siccans, ille BM
6. Quos, scilicet luctus BM; vir pr'mrus, Adam B
7. in fontem, in matrem creatoris, scilicet B; rivus, Maria B
8. vivus, per duramen, propter septem dona spiritus sancti, que habuit beata
virgo B, hec sunt septem virtutes beate Marie: casta, tacens, humilis, residens,
comparans, pia, prudens top of folio B
9. Fons, ilia B
10. Hec, gloriosa virgo B, Maria M; solis, Christi M
11. Sol, ilia B, unde Job: in sole posuit tabernaculum suum [Vulg. Job, 18, 6],
id est in Maria; sole, Deo B; nata, ilia BM; prolis, filii B
12. Lux, ilia B; regina, ilia B; glorie, gloria est frequens fama cum Iaude marg. M
Stella Marts
15
20
91
DE PATRE E T MATRE GLORIOSE VIRGINIS
Ioachim, vir venerandus,
Sanctus, iustus, memorandus,
Florem florum genuit.
Anna sancta, florens ortus,
In quo crevit flos exortus,
Lilium exeruit.
Sponsa Dei perornata,
A prophetis premonstrata,
Ab Anna concipitur.
Hec in templo conversata,
In conclavi salutata,
Genitrix efEcitur.
Sub-title, Sequitur in prefatione commendatio patris et matris beate virginis M
IJ.
[IJohachim B, Ioachim corr. M
14. venerandus corr. memerandus B, memorandus corr.
M
18. exseruit M
22. Hec corr. M
13. Ioachim, pater beate virginis B, in hoc prohemio facit autor commendationem patris et matris gloriose virginis, scilicet Ioachim et Anne, qui cum per
annum, ut scribitur, sic stetissent matrimonio copulanti nullam prolem poterant
procreare. Unde cum Ioachim quodam die festivo oblationem, sic solebat, in
templo obferre volebat, sacerdos illam coram toto populo resistebat [AIS resitabat] quia nullam prolem procreabat, qua de causa Ioachim maximo dolore compunctus simul et pudore adsit pastores suos in deserto qui ibi cum eis per
quatuor menses perhendinavit marg. M
14. Sanctus, quia divisit omnia que habuit in partes tres, et unam dedit pauperibus, et aliam templo, tertiam domui, hoc est ad sustentationem suorum [cf.
Ps-Matthei Evangelium (ed. Tischendorf, Leipzig, 1876), pp. 54-55] B; memorandus, dignus memorari M
15. Florem, Alariam M
16. Anna, mater gloriose virginis M; ortus, est curtil M
17. quo, orto, BM; flos, virgo gloriosa B, Maria M
18. Lilium, virginem M; exeruit, emisit BM
19. Sponsa, Maria M; perornata, perfecte ornata BM
20. premonstrata, per prophetias B, ante — M
21. Anna, a matre sua M
22. Hec in templo, beata virgo ab infantia B; Hec, Maria M; conversata,
manens M
23. In conclavi, in thalamo suo M, dicitur talamus, ubi nullus intrat nisi ipse rex,
unde Maria virgo erat conclave spiritui regis. Huic concordat in Ephalamico,
dicens versus:
Stella maris, de fonte fontemque regingnis,
Nectareum rivus, nil nisi nectar habens.
Alveus est alvus fontis tua quern nequis orbis
Orbita tarn largo claudere tota sinu
[Epithalamium B. Marie virginis of John of Garland, MS British Museum Cotton
Claudius A x, fol. 1 ] marg. M; conclavi, thalamo B-t salutata, ab angelo Gabrieli B
24. Genitrix, quando respondit angelo: fiat mihi secundum verbum tuum [Vulg.
Luc., 1, 38] M
92
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
25
30
'
Mira mater est Maria,
Mira facit in hac via
Quorum pauca recito.
Mira nati, mira matris
Sunt vicissim, sunt et patris
Cum honore debito.
1. DE LINGUA CLERICO RESTITUTA
35
40
Clerus matrem salutavit,
Linguam quam hie devoravit
Hec lacte restituit.
Formam gerit pietatis
Dulce lac et ubertatis,
Que de celo defluit.
Lac est vere virginale,
Nectar vite spiritale,
Quo mors victa corruit.
Sicut eger coniectabat,
Rose celi supplicabat
31. [ C] lerus B, Celerus corr. Clerus M
39. Quor corr. Quo B, coruit M
iectabat corr. M
41. Rore corr. Rose B
40. con-
25. Mira, quia mater et virgo simul et semel M
26. Mira, miracula B, -cula M; in hac via, in hoc mundo BM
27. Quorum, miraculorum BM; recito, et sic patet materia huius libri M
28. Mira, -bilia B, -cula M; nati, Christi B, filii M; mira, —bilia B
29. vicissim, vicissitudine quadam B, aliquando M
31. Clerus, clericus unus M; matrem, Dei BM
32. quam, linguam M; hie, clericus M; devoravit, habuit a cancero devoratam M
33. Hec, mater Dei M; restituit, reparavit B, de celo alia tarn M
34. • Formam, quia ipsa est mater pietatis et plenitudinis gratie M
35. lac, lac potest hie sumi ad literam vel mistice. Ad literam est quia sibi videbatur quod beata virgo lac virginale ori suo inposuit. Si mistice sumatur tune
dicatur lac, dulcedo vite spiritualis marg. M; ubertatis, plenitudinis M
36. Que, ubertas BM
37. vere, in rei veritate M; virginale, virginis Marie B, lac virginis M
38. spiritale, lac M
39. Quo, lacte M; mors, mors aliquando dicitur peccatum, aliquando diabolus,
et aliquando dicitur mors ultimum continuitatis in tempore. Unde Oracius:
mors ultima linia rerum est [Hor. Ep., I, 16, 79] marg. M; mors victa, diabolus
victus M; corruit, decedit B
40. eger, clericus B; coniectabat, probabat per argumenta B, considerabat in
sompnis M, 'conicio, conicis,' id est quod estimo, et facit in supino 'coniectum,
-tu; 'u' mutata in 'o' fit frequentativum, 'coniecto, -tas' marg. M
41. Rose . . . , Marie virgini pro salute clerici M
Stella Marts
45
93
Angelus pulcherrimus.
Eius f uit sub tutela,
Et servatus sub cautela
Surgendo sanissimus.
2. DE ABBATISSA QUAM BEATA VIRGO LIBERAVIT
AB INFAMIA
50
55
Abbatisse, culpam flenti,
Fetum alvo deferenti,
Crimen clemens diluit.
Lacrimosas preces capit
Dulcis fons qui nectar sapit,
Qui devotos imbuit.
Palmis puer angelorum
Deportatus est duorum,
Heremite traditus.
Puer servit purus Deo
Rationis in tropheo
Sancta vita preditus.
42. pulcherimus M
Sub-title, abatissa M
B, Abatisse M
47. defetenti B
51. inbuit Af
54. Eremite Af
46. [Albbatisse, guide to rubricator V
48. clemens corr. M
49. cap Jit Af
42. Angelus, nota quod unumquemque hominem secuntur duo angeli, unus
bonus, alius malus. Bonus notat facta bona, malus facta mala. Unde ad bonum
possunt dirigi isti versus:
Angele, quivis es custos virtute superna,
Ale tibi commissum [MS commissat] defende, salva, guberna
[cf. Morale scolarium (ed. Paetow), 1. 1 ] marg. M
43. Eius, angelus M; fuit, clericus ipse B, clericus M; tutela, custodia B
44. sub cautela, sub protectione angeli M; cautela, eius B
45. Surgendo, ille B
46. flenti, de — B
47. Fetum, puerum BM; alvo, ventre M
48. Crimen, corruptionis B; clemens, Maria M; diluit, lavit B
49. preces, abatisse M; capit, Maria M
50. Dulcis fons, fons dulcedinis B, Maria M; nectar, dulcedinem B
51. Qui, fons B; devotos, in omnibus M; imbuit, humectat M
52. Palmis, a B, in manibus M
54. Heremite, cuiusdam B, heremita dicitur cultor heremi et est heremus locus,
scilicet desertus; et habet mediam copiam vel productam, set in diversa significatione, unde versus: Nobilis est heremus sine habentia, horemus adire marg. M;
traditus, puer M
55. purus, omni vitio carens M
56. tropheo, victoria BM
57. preditus, -dicatus B, ille BM
94
60
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Sic salutis fluunt stille,
Due fundunt quas mamille,
Amor et dementia.
Amor pronus prius audit
Postulantes, post exaudit
Illos clemens gratia.
PRONOSTICUA1 ARTIS MEDICINE VIRGINI
APPROPRIATUM*
65
70
Ipocrate, docto teste,
Accedendum est celeste
Quoddam adminiculum.
Salus egro reparatur
Stella maris quern solatur,
Pium flectens oculum.
Rationes phisicales
Et effectus naturales
Nostra vincit medica.
58. stille corr. B
59. fluunt corr. B
Sub-title, virginis adaptatum M
64.
[Ilpocrate, guide to rubricator 'i' B, Ypocrate M, docte M
65. Accendendum B
66. ad miraculum M
67. egro corr. B, ergo corr. egro in hand of gloss M
68.
quem corr. B
69. flectens corr. B
70. fisicales M
72. vivit corr. vincit in
hand of gloss M, madica corr. medica M
58. Sic, a isto fonte M; stille, gutte BM
59. quas, guttas BM
60. Amor, caritas [MS caries], scilicet Dei B, quem habet ad hominem M;
dementia, pietas B, qua respicit genus humanum M
61. Amor, suus M; pronus, ad audiendum BM
62. Postulantes, rogantes B, homines ipsam rogantes M; exaudit, perfecte
audit M
63. Illos, postulantes M; clemens, ilia M; gratia, gratia cum dementia B
64. Ipocrate, in Pronosticis dicit ita: est etiam quoddam celeste in quo previdere oportet cuius si tanta fuerit providentia, admirabilis est et minima stupenda [cf. Hippocrates, Prog., I, MS British Museum Royal 12 B xii, fol. 223]
B; docto, et hoc M
65. Accedendum, considerandum B, circa egros M
66. adminiculum, auxilium B; ad miraculum, ad divinum auxilium M
67. egro, homini egrotanti M
68. Stella maris, Maria BM; quem, egrum M
69. Pium, pietatis B; flectens, ilia, scilicet ad nos M; oculum, pietatis M
70. Rationes, regulas rationales in phisicis B, rationes que considerantur [MS
considerantes] in phisica At
71. effectus, sunt virtutes herbarum B, effectus nature M; naturales, nature B
72. vincit medica, beata Maria B, Maria M
•Liber 2 in box between columns in hand of gloss B
Stella Marts
75
95
Quod virtutis est divine
Non humane medicine
Iactitat theorica.
3. DE FILIO IUDEI AB INCENDIO LIBERATO
80
85
90
Missus puer in fornacem
Et in flammam comminatem
Est saluti redditus.
Ad doctrinam literarum
Primitivam latinarum
Puer f uit positus.
Ussit pater hunc Iudeus,
Quern protexit Christo Deus,
Et Maria pallio.
Salus illi, Christus sumptus
Fuit, per quern inconsumptus
Vixit ab incendio.
Hie cum parvis corpus Christi
Sumpsit, et a patre tristi
Missus, ignem subiit.
75. teorica M
76. [M]issus B
77. cominatem M
78. salute corr. saluti M,
deditus B, redditus alternate reading in hand of gloss B
79. Transposition of lines 79
and So corr. B
84. palleo M
85. Christo corr. Christus M
86. Inserted in
the margin B, quam M
87. Vexit M, incendeo M
88. parvjis Af
90. ignem
corr. M
73. Quod, hoc M
74. Non, et M
75. Iactitat, non iactanter profert B, iactitando ostendit M; theorica, speculativa
scientia a 'theorio' quod est 'speculatio' B, ars medicinalis M
76. Missus, a patre M; puer, Iudaicus B, quidam Iudaycus M
77. Et, puer M; comminatem, valde ardentem M
80. Primitivam, a, b, c, d et cetera B ^
82. Ussit, combussit, id est comburere voluit M; hunc, puerum M
83. Quern, puerum M; protexit, cooperuit et salvavit M
84. pallio, de son mauntel M
85. Christus, corpus Christi B, corpus Christi assumptum M
86. quern, Christum BM; inconsumptus, non B
87. Vixit, ille puer Iudaycus M
88. Hie, puer M; parvis, pueris Christianis M; Christi, in die Pasce M
90. Missus, ille puer M; ignem, in fornacem M; subiit, set permansit illesus ut
predictum est Quern protexit Christo Deus, et cetera M
96
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
In fornacem missus pater,
Factus erat cinis ater
Et infernum iniit.
95
Hec est umbra ederina,
lone mitis medicina,
Extinguens incendia.
Hec est nubes grati roris,
Cella favi, fons dulcoris,
Salutaris pluvia.
4. DE MULIERE STERILI QUAM BEATA
VIRGO FECUNDAVIT
100
105
Infecundam fecundavit
Virgo sponsam, et ditavit
Sterilem hanc filio.
Sic Maria maternali
Eademque virginali
Pollet privilegio.
Set hunc virgo quern donavit,
Mors a vita spoliavit,
Non tamen detinuit.
92. fuit M
93. subiit alternate reading in hand of gloss B
100. [I]nfecundam B, no rubric M
106. quem corr. B
108. Inserted in right margin B
Sub-title, respexit M
107. a vita corr. B
91. missus, a populo Christiano superveniente M; pater, illius pueri M
92. ater, niger B, niger, -gra, -grum M
93. iniit, intravit M
94. Hec, virgo Maria M; ederina, edere quam Deus creavit contra estum supra
caput lone B, umbra edere, Anglice ivodebind, quia sic edera semper viridis
perseverat; similiter beata virgo omni tempore exaudit ipsos devotis precibus
exorantes M
95. lone, prophete B, illius prophete M; medicina, ilia M
96. Extinguens, ilia M
97. Hec, Maria M; roris, refrigerii vel spiritus sancti B, refrigerii M
98. Cella, domus B, ilia M; favi, misericordie B; fons, ilia M\ dulcoris, receptaculum omnimodi dulcoris At
99. Salutaris, -Iutis B, ilia M
100. Infecundam, quia sterilis erat B, sterilem M; fecundavit, fecunditavit M
101. Virgo, Maria M; sponsam, quamdam mulierem disponsatam M
102. hanc, sponsam M
104. Eademque, Maria pollet M
105. Pollet, ea, Maria B
106. hunc, puerum M; quem, puerum M
107. a vita, ab hoc mundo M; spoliavit, puerum M
108. Non . . . , mors quia virgo gloriosa eum suscitavit M
•
/
.
.
'
• ' .
•"
' •
Aindtmf «dmtif^7.
4
ftfr«&'
F
4
trtlem
jttiatt
fi
,J nftmta mt(Srmet,
t J
'• . . " ' " ' v • . • > "
Citlf
U1
ma
Gftti
"
.'..-••'-'-'.;-
.-,
Stella Marts
97
Mortis nodum denodavit
Rosa, Deum que portavit
Et lac Deo prebuit.
110
Calor est innaturalis
Febris, et a corde talis
Exit in arterias.
Animarum mediatrix,
Delet vite renodatrix
Febriles discrasias.
115
5. DE DEMONE VERBERATO A BEATA VIRGINE
Forma hostis in taurina,
In canina, leonina
Monacum terruerat.
Hostem virgo bis fugavit,
Tertioque verberavit
Virga quam tenuerat.
120
HIC APOSTROPHAT AD LIBELLUM
125
O libelle, Stella marts,
A contentis nuncuparis
Tu, stelle miraculis.
i n . Inserted in right margin B
117. descraseas M
Sub-title, verberato demone M
118. [FJorma 6
119. camina B, canina corr. M
120. Monachum M
Subtitle, lacking B. Lines 124 to 129 appear after 1.147 B, corr. in hand of gloss B
125. contemptis corr. M, numcuparis B
110. Rosa, Maria M
i n . Et, que M
113. Iohannitius, in primo Medicine: fibries est calor innaturalis cursum supergrediens nature, procedens a corde in arterias, suoque sedens effectu [cf. MS
British Museum Royal 12 B xii, fol. 213] top of folio B; talis, calor innaturalis M
114. arterias, arterie dicuntur quasi 'arte aeris vie' et dicuntur aliter 'canales'
[cf. ibid., fol. 210] marg. B, et etiam in venas totius corporis M
115. mediatrix, Maria M
116. renodatrix, ilia M
117. Febriles, febrium B; discrasias, distemperantias BM
118. hostis, diabolus M
119. canina, et forma M; leonina, et in forma M
121. Hostem, diabolum M; virgo, Maria M
122. Tertioque, tertia vice M; verberavit, diabolum M
123. quam, virgam M
124. Stella, tuB
125. contentis, miraculis B, in te M; nuncuparis, vocaris B
126. stelle, beate virginis M
98
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Ve dat Eva, set hec Ave
Per quod salvat nos hec a ve
Et a mortis iaculis.
HIC RESPONDET A U T O R ANTIPOPHORE, ID EST
TACITE OBIECTIONI *
130
135
Ubi, quando, si queratur,
Hec sunt facta, teneatur
Basis firma fidei.
Que sunt digna laudum, lira
Infinita micant mira
Operis virginei.
Pauca, cum sint infinita,
Emundetur ut hec vita,
Tanguntur miracula.
6. DE MONACHIS DITATIS A BEATA VIRGINE
140
Hec implevit mendicorum
Farre domos monachorum
Ad famis pericula.
128. hec inserted above line B, ave corr. a ve B
title, lacking B
130. [U]bi B, no rubric M
139- [H]ec B, no rubric M
129. amortis corr. a mortis B
Sub137. Emendetur corr. Emundetur B
127. Ve, dolorem BM; Eva, prima mulier M; hec, Maria M; Ave, salutem B,
salutem et gaudium M
128. quod, gaudium BM; hec, Maria M; a ve, a dolore BM
129. mortis, inferni M; iaculis, a telis vel a penis M
130. Ubi, in quo loco M; quando, in quo tempore M; si queratur, si questio
fieret M
131. facta, beate virginis miracula M
132. Basis, firmum fundamentum B, firma columpna M; fidei, sufficit sic
credere M
133. Que, facta B, miracula M; lira, denuntiatione B, modulatione et diversitate
M
134. mira, -cula BM
135. Operis, Marie virginis M
136. infinita, miracula de beata virgine M
138. Tanguntur, et sic invenitur utilitas huius libri et finis M
139. Hec, Maria M
140. Farre, plenitudine B
141. Ad, contra BM, et sic est facta prothesios paralauge, scilicet prima prepositio pro alia [Diomedes, Ars gramm., (ed. Heinrich Keil, Granrmatici latini, I,
Leipzig, 1857), p. 443] M
*[cf. Jul. Rufin. Schem. Dian., 4-5 (ed. Karl Halm, Rhetores latini minores,
Leipzig, 1863), pp. 60-61, and Morale scolarium (ed. Paetow), 11. 76 and 356]
Stella Mans
99
In Elya civitate
Ex mellita pietate
Matris istud accidit.
In hac enim plenitudo
Exundat, et gratitudo
Bona large dividit.
145
ASTROLOGIA SPIRITUALIS QUE PROPRIETATES
SIGNORUM VIRGINI ATTRIBUIT*
Signa celi bonitatem
Signant et sublimitatem
142. Elia M
[Sligna B
145. Im corr. In M
Sub-title, spiritalis M, stellarum M
148.
142. Elya, Ierusalem B, in civitate Ierusalem M
143. mellita, suavissima B, dulce M\ pietate, Marie B
144. istud, miraculum B
145. hac, Maria BM; enim, quia B; plenitudo, summi boni BM
146. Exundat, habundat BM; gratitudo, gratia dandi B, gratia ipsius M
Sub-title, Astronomia est scientia secundum veritatem, scilicet de astris; astrologia secundum opinionem top of folio B
148. Signa celi etc. Hie adaptat autor quamdam astrologiam Martiani beate
virgini, dicens quod signa firmamenti signant beate virginis sublimitatem, et
prodit quod beata virgo designatur per galaxiam. Est enim galaxia circulus
quidam albus in firmamento qui dirigitur ab [MS ad] septentrionali plaga, id est
boriali, ad australem regionem, per aliud emisperium rediens ad punctum firmamenti a quo incepit. Et dicitur a 'galao' quod est 'lac,' et 'xios,' 'via,' quasi
'lactea via,' de qua loquitur Ovidius in primo Metamorphosios, dicens:
Est via sublimis celo manifesta sereno,
Lactea nomen habet candore notabilis ipso,
Ac iter est superis ad magni tecta Tonantis.
[Ovid, Meta., I, 168-170]
Sicut igitur galaxia, quam Ovidius notat lacteam, fabulose est iter ad tectum
Iovis; similiter beata virgo est iter et mediatrix veraciter ad summum creatorem.
Dicunt enim quidam quod galaxia est quedam impressio in firmamento; contra
quos respondet Aristotiles in libro Meteorerum {ere in principio, dicens quod
galaxia est incessus celis fMS selis] et non impressio [Meteorics, I, MS British
Museum Royal 12 G ii, fols. 230-231]. Dicunt etiam quod galaxia est quedam
congregatio stellarum mobilium; contra quos respondet Aristotiles, dicens ibidem
quod galaxia est in omni hora in uno loco stellarum notabilium [MS notarum],
id est visu notabilium, cum quibus continuatur lumen solis, non recedens ex illo
loco [Meteorics, I, viii], quoniam sol est maior quam terra et quedam stelle sunt
maiores terra. Dicit quidam commentator, scilicet Algazel, quod sol est maior
terra centies sexagesies quinquies et tertia. Unus etiam dicit id, quod omnes stelle
visu notabiles preter lunam et Mercurium sunt maiores terra. Dicit Aristotiles
•Tertius liber marg. B
ioo
150
155
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Virginis largiflue.
Hec est fulgens galaxias
Que celestes pandit vias
Dei domus ardue.
Arthos tortum ad Draconem
Lucet et ad aquilonem
In figuram virginis.
consequenter nos quod videmus galaxiam de die et de nocte quando possibile in
uno loco videre illam, et inspicimus iterum quod ipsa non est recedens de loco
suo.
lam ergo declaratum est nobis quod galaxia non est ex incessu stellarum
mobilium, videlicet lumen rediens; nos, autem, dicens quod esse galaxie est hoc
modo: quod est quia ingnis purus propinqus orbi lune est inflammatus lucidus; et
in Iocis orbis in quibus videtur galaxia, sunt multe stelle spissim site minute
et magne propinque et luminose quarum lumina propter propinquitatem
equaliter adinvicem et per adiutorium luminis solis efficiunt galaxiam. Cum
ergo procedit lumen earum ex inflammato ignito in eo fit lumen oblongum
quod dicitur galaxia. Et iste quidem stelle sunt fixe quarum quedam tangunt
alias et sunt suscipientes splendorem ex soleque continuatur lumen quarumdam
earum cum quibusdam. Ergo videtur galaxia in loco uno orbis et non recedens
ab eo. Esse autem galaxie simile est esse stellarum comas habentium. Ipse
enim similes sunt per hunc modum in Iocis suis quoniam lumen solis cooperat et
adiuvat [lumen] earum.
Unde sciendum quod ita galaxia representat beatem virginem, quia sic galaxia
semper est in uno loco perseverans et ab eo non recedens, et etiam circuens
totum firmamentum; similiter beata virgo perseverans est interventrix nostra ad
filium suum, omnium creatorem marg. M
150. largiflue, large fluentis bonitate M
151. Hec, Maria M; galaxias, via celi a 'gala' quod est 'lac' et 'ago, -gis,' quasi
'lactea via' B, via alba firmamenti M
152. Que, virgo B, Maria M; pandit, demonstrat et aper[u]it M
153. Dei domus, celi empirei B
154. Arthos, ilia stella marina B, ilia stella et duplex est M; Arthos tortum, hie
adaptat autor quoddam signum quod dicitur Arthos beate virgini, unde sciendum
est congregatio quarumdam stellarum numquam tendentium ad occasum, set
semper agitantur circa polum articum, que stelle [MS stella] dicuntur maior ursa;
scilicet viginti septem, secundum Tolomeum, parve stelle propinque in
parte boriali prope polum articum, ut plenius dicetur consequenter. Unde sicut
stelle sempiterne sunt apparitionis et numquam tendentes ad occasum; similiter
beata virgo est stella nostra que nescit occasum marg. M; tortum, ivrong M; ad,
contra M; Draconem, duo sunt Archi, scilicet maior ursa et minor ursa, signa
planete B, ad illud signum M; tortum ad Draconem, ad sciendum quid sit Draco,
scilicet illud signum de quo loquitur hie: Est primo notandum quod quilibet
planeta preter solem habet tres circulos, scilicet equantem, deferentem, et epiciclum. Equans qui dicitur June est circulus concentricus cum terra, cuius
deferens est circulus ecentricus, et una cuius medietas declinat versus septen-
Stella Marts
160
165
160. Booete M
101
Hec draconem conculcavit,
Qui livore degradavit
Primi scatum hominis.
Cum Boote sublimatur
Nobis polus, quo monstratur
Marie stabilitas.
Stella maris lapsum nescit,
Offert sese, nee torpescit
Benigna serenitas.
165. Benigne corr. Benigna in hand of gloss M
trionem, alia versus austrum, et intersecat deferens equantem in duobus locis, et
figura intersectionis appellatur Draco, quoniam lata in medio et angustior versus
fines. Intersectio ergo ilia per quam movetur luna ab austro in aquilonem appelatur capud draconis. Reliqua vero intersectio per quam movetur a septentrione
in austrum dicitur cauda draconis. Et adaptatur illud signum beate virgini quia
ipsa est mediante et filium Dei Verbo concipiente. Potestas draconis, id est
diaboli, draconi comparabilis, est adnichilata et vita sempiterna nobis reparata
marg. M
155. ad, contra M\ aquilonem, norht M
156. virginis, Marie M
157. Hec, Maria M; draconem, diabolum BM; conculcavit, calcavit M
158. Qui, draco M; livore, per B, invidia M; degradavit, deposuit M
159. hominis, Ade BM
160. Cum Boote, cum ilia Stella M, Boetes est quedam stella distincte sita iuxta
polum articum que semper ostendit se nobis, nee intendit ad occasum, et apparet semper in eodem loco propter cursus sui brevitatem. Et dicitur stella
nautica cui beata virgo est comparata, ut prenotatum est in materia marg. M;
Boote, ilia parva stella B
161. Nobis polus, duplex est polus, scilicet polus articus et polus antarticus.
Polus articus semper apparet nobis versus partem borealem, set polus antarticus
semper nobis occultatur, videlicet penes partem australem. Unde Virgilius:
Hie vertex nobis semper sublimis; at ilium
Sub pedibus Stix atra tenet Manesque profundi
[Georg., I, 242-243]
marg. M; Vertex, id est polus articus; ilium, scilicet polum antarticum. Sicut
enim polus articus et etiam stella nautica iuxta polum articum sita in eodem loco,
semper sunt apparentes; similiter benignitas beate virginis non torpescens, semper se ostendit ipsam pura mente exorantibus marg. M; Virgilius:
Maximus hie flexus sinuoso elabitur Anguis
Circum perque duas in morem fluminis Archos
Artos Occeani metuentes equore tingi
[Georg., I, 244-246]
top of folio B; polus, articus BM; quo, polo BM
163. Stella, Maria M; lapsum, vicii B, occasum M
164. nee, pro 'et non' M; torpescit, non est torpida nee incidit in tenebras M,
lentescit [MS [ljentevit] M
100. Infecundam, quia sterilis erat B, sterilem M; fecundavit, fecunditavit M
102
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Adriagne in corona
Designatur ferre dona
Honoris et glorie.
Athlantee septem stelle
167. Demonstratur M
166. Adriagne, illius stelle ad modum corone B, illius circuitionis stellarum,
circuitus M, Adriangne corona, Adriagne est dispositio quarumdam stellarum in
septentrionali plaga admodum corone in circuitu. Et per illud signum designatur
virgo gloriosa que in celo coronatur corona honoris et glorie et que nobis
Iargitur honorem et gloriam marg. M
167. Demonstratur, beata virgo M
168. Honoris, corona B, quantum ad hanc vitam M; glorie, quantum ad vitam
futuram M
169. Athlantee, stelle Atlantis B, septem stelle que dicuntur fuisse filie Athlantis
M; hie facit autor adaptationem Athlantidum, id est illarum septem stellarum
versus partem meridionalem apparentium que secundum fabulas dicebantur
fuisse filie septem Athlantis que fabulose dicebantur celum sustinuisse passione
Athlantis patris earum, quod Athlas celum sustinuit; cuius rei veritas est quod
ipse Athlas in suis temporibus optimus erat astronomus et ideo fingebatur celum
sustinuisse. De istis stellis loquitur Virgilius in primo Georgicorum dicens:
Ante tibi Eoe Athlantides abscondantur
Gnos[i]aque ardentis discedet Stella Corone [Corona corr. Corone],
Debita quam sulcis committas spuma [sic]
Quamque invite properes anni spem credere terre.
[Georg., I, 221-224]
Eoe, id est in orientali parte orientis et per partem meridionalem usque ad partem
occidentalem tendentes; Gnosia, id est Cretensis; anni, id est 'annone future'.
Quidam enim dicebant quod iste septem stelle dicerentur maior ursa, unde in
rei veritate sciendum secundum Tolomeum in suo Magno Almagesto quod iste
Athlantides nee sunt maior ursa nee minor, quia maior dicitur quedam congregatio stellarum viginti septem secundum Tolomeum, ut predictum est, et hoc in
formam quadranguli ex parte boriali iuxta polum articum. Minor ursa est congregatio septem stellarum, set in modo quadranti, et etiam versus partem
borialem. Et sunt sempiterne apparitionis quia sunt in septentrione circa polum,
ita quod minor est propinquior polo et ursa maior est a polo remotior. Unde
iste septem stelle adaptantur beate virgini que est repleta septem donis spiritus
sancti, septem dona, scilicet que sunt donum sapientie, donum intellectus, donum
consilii, donum fortitudinis, donum scientie, donum pietatis, et donum timoris
domini. Versus: Sap, intel, con, for, sci, pi, ti, collige dona marg. M and the
same verse, bottom of folio B
Ante tibi Eoe Athlantides abscondantur
Gnosiaque ardentis descendat Stella Corone [MS Corona],
Debita quam sulcis committas sonima [sic].
[Virgil, Georg. I, 221-223]
Solima dicta [MS Sonima luca] salem; Ierosolima, Iebus, Helya,
Urbs sacra Jerusalem dicitur atque salem
[cf. supra, 1. 142] bottom of folio B
Stella Marts
170
175
180
185
103
Signant quod est plena melle
Septiformis gratie.
Hec est celum, Christus axis,
Ad quam vestra dum sinaxis
Pervenit, suscipitur.
Celi, terre sustentator,
Terre factus habitator,
In celum regreditur.
Ille Stellas qui formavit
Se per illas annotavit
Admirandus artifex.
Admiranda nam iunctura
Fit plasmator plasmatura,
Homo, matris opifex.
Stelle proles figuratur
In Vervece qui mactatur,
173. quos M
170. est, ilia B, beata virgo M; melle, dulcedine BM
171. Septiformis, septem donorum bonorum B, septem donorum spiritus
sancti M
172. Hec, Maria M; axis, Virgilius [sic]: stabilisque manet dat cunta movere
B, quia dicit Boitius: stabilisque manens dat cunta moveri [Boethius, Cons,
philos., III. 9, 3] M
173. quos, Christum et Mariam M; sinaxis, vespertina oratio B, oratio finalis M
174. suscipitur, exauditur M
175. Celi, secundum quod Deus M; terre, secundum quod homo M; sustentator,
secundum quod Deus B
176. Terre . . . , quia descendit in uterum virginis et ibi fuerat incarnatus M;
habitator, secundum quod homo B
IJ-J. In celum . . . , per formam deitatis sue B, regressus unde venerat M,
secundum formam sue deitatis M
178. Ille, summus artifex B
179. annotavit, demonstravit B, designavit M
180. Admirandus, ille BM; artifex, operarius M
181. Admiranda, per -dam B, admirabili M; nam, pro 'quia' B
182. plasmator, formator B, Deus omnium formator M; plasmatura, creatura B,
creatura ut homo M
183. opifex, ille creator B, ille operator M
184. Stelle, filius Marie B, Marie M; proles, filius M; figuratur, significatur BM
185. Vervece, Ariete B; in Vervece, in Ariete M; qui, Vervex M; mactatur, sacrificatur ut contingit in antiqua lege et similiter Deus pro nostra redemptione M,
sicut legitur de Abraham qui sacrificabat arietem domino. Vervex rapitur qui
cornibus heret in dumis; aries, similiter Christus sacrificatus est per nos in cruce
marg. M
104
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Et in Tauri robore.
Geminus est Deus homo,
Cancro conversivum promo
Hunc ad nos in tempore.
190
195
Sane sic intelligatur,
Per se Deus operatur
Signatus in opere.
Creaturis dominatur
Omnibus, nee coartatur
A subiecto sydere.
Est de tribu Iuda Leo,
Gloriosus in tropheo
Et carne virginea.
Libra iudex designatur,
186. Tauri corr. M
196. Iuda corr. M
188. pono corr. promo B
193. Creaturus M
195. sidere M
186. Et in Tauri . . . , proles virginis B, Taurus mactabatur in veteri lege unde
Salomon optulit domino tauros et oves et sacrificabant. Et similiter Christus pro
nobis est oblatus marg. M
187. Geminus . . . , hie ponuntur xii signa in quibus signatur Christus marg. M,
gigas gratie sublime B, ipse filius Marie M; Deus, et M
188. Cancro, per, signo B, per Cancrum M; conversivum, Deum conversum B,
conversantem ad nos pro nostra redemptione M
189. Hunc, Deum M
190. Sane sic . . . , hie respondet autor antipophore quia posset astrologus
credere quod quia Christus signatur per Stellas nihil posset operari sine stellis.
Hoc removet, dicens Per se Deus etc. marg. M; sic, sic, id est, sicut dicam M;
intelligatur, illud quod signatur per signa et per Stellas M
191. Per se, per divinam potentiam et sine naturali effectu stellarum B, sine
ofBcio stellarum M
192. Signatus, Deus M; opere, in stellis et in omnibus aliis creaturis M
193. Creaturus, Deus M; dominatur, ille dominium habet B, ipse Deus M
194. nee, pro 'et non' M; coartatur, ab aliis B
195. subiecto, subposito sibi M
196. Iuda, indeclinabile B, quando vicit diabolum M; Leo, Christus BM,
Christus comparatur leoni quia sicut leo est animal primitive nature et victor animalium, sic Christus victor fuit in cruce diabolum devincendo et de morte ad
modum leonis resurgendo M
197. Gloriosus, leo B, ille M; tropheo, victoria sancte crucis B, in victoria contra diabolum M
198. virginea, tanquam in clipeo BM
199. Libra, per Libram BM, quia sicut libra ponderat eque, sic Christus iustus
est iudex et equs, qui nee prece nee preda a via veritatis obliquat vel recedit
marg. M; iudex, esse, Justus M; designatur, Christus B, ille M
Stella Marts
200
205
210
206. et Af
105
Scorpione demonstratur
Vincere tartarea.
Vincit quasi Sagittator,
Quasi Capricornus, dator
Elongati luminis.
Urnam fundens sacri roris,
Preco mitis est caloris
Quasi Piscis fluminis.
Christus, sol eternitatis,
'
Annum dat infinitatis,
Suo natus sydere.
Mater Dei moderatrix
Est, post Deum et salvatrix
Dei largo munere.
208. Christo M
210. sidere M
200. Scorpione, illo signo, id est per -nem B, Ihesu fili David, ut quid venisti
torquere nos [Vulg. Matth., 8, 29] B, per illud signum quod dicitur Scorpio M,
Scorpio vermis est subito pungens et per illud signum designatur Christus qui
cruce pungendo adusta ewlsit infernalia, et demonem devicit et dicitur scorpio,
quasi 'carpio,' a 'carpium' marg. M; demonstratur, ipse Deus M
201. Vincere, ad vincendum Al; tartarea, tempestates inferni BM
202. Vincit, ipse Christus Al; Sagittator, id est Chiro, -rius B, dum respondit
intentionibus Iudeorum, in Sagittario M
203. Quasi, ipse vincit M; dator, Capricornus M
204. Elongati, a nobis, scilicet per peccatum primi parentis B, a nobis per peccata primi parentis vel ad litteram quia in Capricorno, id est, in illo signo in quo
est sol in Decembre, elonga[n]tur dies artificiales Al
205. Urnam, ollam M, Christus datur intelligi per Aquarium quia sicut Aquarius
in quo sol est in Ianuaria frequenter pluvias demittit et hec inferiora humectat,
similiter Christus rore spiritus sancti quos diligit quasi rorat marg. At; fundens,
ipse B, Christus quantum ad Aquarium Al; sacri roris, spiritus sancti BM
206. Preco, denuntiator BM; mitis, suavis B; caloris, ignis spiritus sancti B,
spiritus sancti et principii estatis M; dominus: veni ignem mittere in terram: et
quid volo nisi ut ardeat [Vulg., Luc, 12, 49] marg. B
207. Piscis, quantum ad illud signum quod dicitur Pisces M, quantum ad illud
signum, sol in Piscibus, quia sol in Piscibus accendens versus nos, maiorem
calorem inter hec inferiora demittit, et pisces percepto calore se multiplicand
sic Christus per suam divinam calorem spiritus sancti, id est, ignem amoris inter
Christianos demittit marg. M; fluminis, ipse B
209. infinitatis, eternitatis B, annum qui non habet finem M
210. Suo, Christo M; natus, ille B; sydere, de Maria sibi electa BM
211. Mater, Maria M
212. Est, in omnibus hiis signis M
213. largo, ex divina gratia M, versus est:
106
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
7. DE YMAGINE QUE OLEUM FUDIT A MAMILL1S
215
Hec convertit Sarsacenum
Per stupendum, per amenum
Oleum ymaginis.
Sunt in carnem mamme verse
Quibus stillat liquor per se,
Signans partum virginis.
8. DE CLERICO QUI YMAGINEM VIRGINIS
DESPONSAVIT
220
225
Adolescens yconie
Anulum dedit Marie
Sub pacto coniugii.
Hunc in sompnis castigavit
Et a pacto revocavit
Carnalis consortii.
Sub-title, effudic M, a mamillis lacking M
214. [H]ec, guide to rubricator 'h' B, Saracenum M
217. mame B, versus mamme corr. mamme versus Af
218. licor stillat
M
Sub-title, virginis lacking M
220. [A]dolescens, guide to rubricator 'a' B,
Aadoloscens ycenie M
bra, ete [MS ariete], pione, ro, gittario, no,
li, ari, scor, tau, sa, iemi;
corno, cro, one, quario, ce, gine,
capri, can, le, a, pis, vir.
Sol est in istis signis [The second and fourth lines, intended as mnemonic verse,
are made up of the first syllables of the names of the signs of the zodiac. The
remaining syllables appear above them (cf. supra, gloss on I. 169 and infra, gloss
on 1. 304) ] bottom of folio M
214. Hec, beata virgo B, Maria M
215. Per stupendum, per admirabile M; stupendum, admirabile B
216. Oleum, et per M; ymaginis, Marie M
218. Quibus, mammis M; per se, sine artificio B, sine administratione alicuius M
219. Signans, licor M
220. Accidit Rome marg. B; Adolescens, quidam iuvenis, scilicet Eadmundus
[Edmund Rich, archbishop of Canterbury, 1234-1240 (cf. supra, p. 82)] M;
yconie, ymagini Marie B, statue M
zzz. pacto, et dicitur pactum, quasi 'pacis actum.' Est pactum equivocum, unde
versus: Est [MS Cum] [pactum] ratio conditioque lucrarum
[cf. Morale scolarium (ed. Paetow), Prologue, 1. 36] marg. M
223. Hunc, iuvenem M; castigavit, Maria M
225. consortii, uxoris B
Stella Maris
107
9. DE QUERELA BEATE VIRGINIS DE IUDEIS
230
In Toleto, dum Iudei
Signo cere natum Dei
Instant crucifigere,
Est Marie vox audita
De Messye carne trita,
Renovato vulnere.
10. DE PEREGRINO SUBMERSO
235
240
Mersum mari palliavit,
Salutantem hec salvavit
Quern ad portum duxerat.
Celi potens imperatrix,
Maris moti mitigatrix
Famulo subvenerat.
Stella maris vis in mari
Habet suo singulari,
Celesti dominio.
Hec in terra dominatur,
Hec inferno comminatur
Virtutis imperio.
226. [I]N, guide to rubricator T B, Iin M
227. Signum corr. Signo M
230. Messie M
Sub-title, submerso peregrino M
232. [MJersum, guide to rubricator 'M'
B, no rubric, but sign in margin indicates paragraph At
243. inperio M
226. Toleto, in ilia civitate M
227. Signo cere, in yrnagine de cera facta M
228. Instant, contendunt B; crucifigere, ad crucifigendum M
229. audita, ab archiepiscopo cantante missam B, per totam civitatem M
230. De, pro M; Messye, Christi B, salvatoris M; Messias, Ebreum est, et interpretatur 'salvator' marg. M; trita, crucifixa B, crucifica et vexata M
231. Renovato vulnere, quia sanguis effluxit in terram M
232. Mersum mart, peregrinum crucesignatum B, quemdam peregrinantem M;
palliavit, Maria B, hec, scilicet Maria, id est, cooperuit M
233. Salutantem, ilium dicentem assidue 'Ave Maria, ave Maria' M
234. portum, pretento pallio B, salutis M
235. potens, Maria est M
236. Maris moti, per procellam M\ mitigatrix, temperatrix B
237. Famulo, ne esset submersus in mari Af; subvenerat, ausilium tulerat M
238. Stella maris, Maria M; vis, potestatem BM
239. singulari, unico dato in celo M
241. Hec, Maria M
242. comminatur, dicens: redde cartam B, diabolo existente in inferno; sic accidit de Teophilo quando gloriosa [virgo] dixit ut cartam redderet [cf. infra,
no. 60] M
108
245
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
11. DE DOLEO VINO INPLETO
Mulieris vas implevit
Vino, quod abesse flevit
Hospites dum paverat.
Cum sit mater summi boni,
Sui largitatem doni
Petenti contulerat.
12. DE MULIERE SUSCITATA U T CONFITERETUR
250
Era quedam salutabat
Maris stellam, set errabat, •
Occultato vitio.
Non aperte confitetur,
Cuius vita dum deletur
255
Iminet dampnatio.
Mens ad corpus remeavit,
Confitentem se purgavit
Mulier per virginem.
260
13. DE MACHINA QUAM IPSA VIRGO OSTENDIT
Per hanc rotas machinandi
Et columpnas elevandi
Vir sumpsit originem.
244. [MJVlieris, guide to mbricator 'm' B, no rubric, but guide to rubricator M
245.
abesse corr. M
250. [E]rat corr. [E]ra, guide to rubricator 'e' B, HEra M, quidam corr.
quedam in hand of golss M
Sub-title, virgo lacking M
259. [P]er B
244. vas, doleum scilicet B, dolium M; accidit in Anglia marg. B; implevit, ipsa,
scilicet Maria M
245. quod, vinum M; flevit, mulier M
247. Cum, ipsa B, Maria M; summi boni, Dei qui dicitur summum bonum a
Boitio [Boethius, Cons, phil., Ill, 12, 89] M
248. largitatem, hoc quod habet a summo bono B
249. Petenti, mulieri M
250. Accidit in Anglia marg. B; Era, bona domina M
251. stellam, Mariam M
252. Occultato, in confessione B, celato in confessione M\ vitio, hoc M
253. Non..., dum ilia mulie[r] non erat confessa M
255. Iminet, apparat M; dampnatio, ei a summo iudice B, a summo iudice M
256. Mens, anima BM; corpus, mulieris ad preces gloriose virginis M
259. hanc, Mariam M; machinandi, componendi rotas quasdam et dicitur de
'ruo, ruis,' M; bige dico, rota: tu lapide que rota marg. M
261. Vir, artifex B, quidam artifex M; originem, doctrinam originalem B, principium M
Stella Marts
265
109
Machinalem erexerunt
Molem virum dum iuverunt
Tres de scolis pueri.
Caste placent Deo scole,
Ubi sunt percusse vole
Et domantur teneri.
14. DE INPERATRICE ROMANA QUAM IPSA
VIRGO SALVAVIT
270 -
275
Imperatrix acusata
Rome fuit et dampnata
Livoris aculeo.
Lepras curat, pauper vixit,
Virgo clemens, ut predixit,
Effectu gramineo.
Lepra lesos delatores
Expurgavit, et honores
Mundi, celi meruit.
Dolus tandem apparebat,
Et ad tempus que latebat
Veritas enituit.
263. virum corr. M
266. vole corr. B
267. pueri M, teneri in hand of gloss M
Sub-title, Romanorum quam virgo M
268. [I]mperatrix, guide to rubricator 'i' B
271. curans M, vixit pauper corr. pauper vixit M
274. lepros corr. lesos M
276.
Mundi corr. in hand of gloss M
279. emicuit M
161. Machinalem, ponderositatem cuiusdam machine M; erexerunt, elevaverunt
quia beata virgo iussit ut eligeret in scola tres pueros et virgines. Isti ausiliarentur
ipsum istis circum coadunatis, statim ipsum consequebatur propositum M
263. Molem, ponderositatem B
265. scole, scolastes B
266. vole, palme BM
268. Imperatrix, mulier quedam M; acusata, a fratre imperatoris B; hie narrat
qualiter fuit primo dampnata, dicens quod frater imperatoris petiit ipsam de
illicito amore et quia ipsa noluit consentire, ideo acusabat earn penes inperatorem
qui earn dampnavit, ea innocente marg. M
270. aculeo, stimulo B, stimulo fratris ipsius inperatoris M
271. curans, ilia sanans M; pauper, ipsa, scilicet inperatrix M
272. Virgo, Maria M; ut, pro 'sicut' M
273. Effectu, effectu cuiusdam herbe M; gramineo, -nis B
274. Lepra, a M; delatores, acusatores B, incusatores M
275. Expurgavit, ipsa sanavit M
276. meruit, et ipsa M
277. Dolus, fratris ipsius imperatoris M
278. que, veritas M
110
280
285
290
295
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Frater hanc imperatoris
Esse loco corruptoris
Optans, acusaverat.
Hinc in silvam spiculator
Duxit illam, set venator
Liberans salvaverat.
Nutrix fit, set hec amatur
A quodam, quo properatur
Celeris audacia.
Puerile resecabat
Guttur, et hanc acusabat
Invida vesania.
Rursus casta condempnatur,
Set a nautis conservatur
In navis regimine.
Nautis ilia stans rebellis
Est relicta in rupellis
Dei sub tutamine.
Mater Christum que portavit
Herbam illi demonstravit
281. coruptoris M
283. Hanc M, silvam corr. B
286. hec set M, amator corr.
amatur M
287. perpetratur M, perpetratur alternate reading in hand of gloss B
289. reserabat M
295. rebella corr. rebellis M
280. hanc, imperatricem quia noluit ei consentire M
281. corruptoris, adulteri B, adulterii M
282. Optans, frater M
283. Hanc, imperatricem M; spiculator, tortor B, tortor qui deberet earn decoIasse M
284. illam, imperatricem M
285. Liberans, et ille M
286. Nutrix, ipsa B, ilia, scilicet imperatrix M; hie narrat quomodo fuit secundo
dampnata marg. M
287. quodam, in domo ipsius venatoris M; perpetratur, facta est M
289. Puerile, pueri B; resecabat, et ille iuvenis M, ecce scelus [MS celus] quod
perpetravit M
290. Guttur, et dicitur guttur quasi 'gutte iter' marg. M; hanc, inperatricem M
291. vesania, per B, invidioso furore M
292. casta, ilia imperatrix, M; hie narrat qualiter tertio fuit dampnata marg. M
295. ilia, in castitate M; rebella, ilia M
296. in rupellis, in saxis M
297. sub tutamine, sub protectione et defensione M
298. Mater, Maria M; que, Maria M
299. ////, mulieri B
Stella Marts
300
305
31Q
303. lepra corr. B
111
Qua lepras mundaverat.
Vixit arte medicine,
Hostes suos post in fine
A Iepra sanaverat.
Lepra cedit leonina,
Sua victa medicina,
Cedit elephancia.
Tyriaque condeletur,
Condeleri perhibetur
Putris allopicia.
Sicca prior exardescit,
Sequens friget et arescit,
Friget, humet tertia.
307. Tiriaque M
309. alopicia M
300. Qua, herba M; lepras, omnes species lepre, tamen cum omnis lepra sit incurabilis M
301. medicine, particularis B
302. Hostes, illos duos acusatores B, illos duos acusatores qui prius earn acusaverant M
303. sanaverat, et M
304. cedit, imperatrici M; leonina, nomina Ieprarum B, ilia species lepre M; hie
ostenduntur quatuor species lepre secundum quatuor humores: et est prima
species, leonina, et fit ex colera; secunda est elephancia, et fit ex malencolia;
tertia est alopicia, et fit ex sanguine; quarta est tiria, et fit ex fleumate. Et notentur
isti versus Clavis Compendii:
Sunt species lepre quas sillabice retinebis,
Participes fiant quibus ex humoribus: ipse
Ele, melan; leo, co; san, alopi; tiria, fleu, sit
[Clavis Compendii of John of Garland, A1S Bruges J46, fol. 42 ]
marg. M
305. victa, lepra M
306. elephancia, atra species lepre B, et, secunda species M
307. Tyriaque, tertia species B, et, ilia species lepre M, tyria est serpens unde fit
tyriata marg. B
308. perhibetur, wlpecula [cf. vulpecula and alopecia] B, dicitur M
309. Putris, putrida M; allopicia, ilia quarta species M
310. prior, leonina B, prima species, scilicet leonina M; exardescit, calida est et
sicca ex colera M
311. Sequens, secunda lepra elefancia B, secunda species quedam elephancia M;
arescit, melancolia B, desiccat, id est, frigida est et sicca ex melancolia M
312. Friget, fleumati B, frigida et humida ex fleumate M; tertia, tyria B, species
quedam tiria M
112
315
320
325
330
315. Maternali Af
corr. scelera B
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Quarta calet et humescit,
Tamen eger convalescit
Matronali gratia.
Sanitas non potest geri,
Nisi prius confiteri
Velit hie qui patitur.
Sic infantis iugulator
Est peccati demonstrator,
Et sanus efficitur.
Fratris hec imperatoris
Lepram sanat, delatoris
Confitentis scelera.
Imperator ius uxoris
Papam petit, set pudoris
Ilia vovit munera.
N
Vitam sanctam terminavit
Et ad celum transmigravit
Papali consilio.
318. hie suprascribed
329. Set M
M
322. inperatoris M
324. celera
313. Quarta, species lepre, id est allopicia B, species quedam alopicia M; calet,
est calida et humida ex sanguine M; humescit, sanguineus B
314. Tamen, quamvis iste species lepre sint incurabiles quantum ad auxilium
humanum M; convalescit, factus est sanus B, sanus fit M
315. Matronali gratia, data sibi a beata virgine B; gratia, data inperatrici a
virgine M
316. geri, haberi M
317. confiteri, peccata sua B, omnia peccata sua M
318. patitur, morbum B, lepram M
319. Sic, per confessionem BM; iugulator, strangulator M
320. peccati, per confessionem B
322. hec, matrona B, inperatrix M
323. delatoris, acusatoris BM
324. scelera, peccata M
326. Papam, a B; pudoris, castitatis M
327. Ilia, imperatrix M; vovit, Deo et beate Marie M
328. terminavit, ilia inperatrix M
329. transmigravit, ilia, scilicet inperatrix M
330. Papali consilio, consilio pape M
Stella Marts
i13
Hec est nuptis in exemplum
Ut sint sanctum Dei templum
Casto sub coniugio.
335
Castitatem hec dilexit,
Casta mater quam protexit
Castam nee deseruit.
15. QUOMODO FESTUM NATIVITATIS BEATE
VIRGINIS FUIT INVENTUM
Vir audivit angelorum
Cantum per girum annorum,
Res querenti claruit.
340
345
Vox respondit, 'Celebratur
Ortus floris ut colatur
Festum in ecclesiis.'
Festum ita virginale,
Nate rose speciale,
Hiis cepit indiciis.
Ita primo celebrata
Virginis et venerata
Est sancta nativitas.
332. sanctum corr. B, line appears in margin M
336. Nee castam M
Sub-title,
festum lacking B, nativitas B, beate Marie M
337. [V]Ir, guide to rubricator in margin
V B
338. gyrum M
340. respondet M
343. Festum corr. in hand of gloss M
331. Hec, matrona B, inperatrix Al; nuptis, uxoribus At; exemplum, ille
nupte Al
332. Dei templum, secundum illud Pauli: templum Dei est quod estis vos At,
apostolus Paulus: templum Dei sanctum est quod estis vos [Vulg. Cor., I, 3, 16]
marg. B
334. hec, inperatrix M
335. Casta, Maria Al; quam, inperatricem Al; protexit, defendit At
336. Castam, inperatricem Al; deseruit, dewerpit M
337. Vir, quidam M
338. girum, circuitum B, per circuitum M
339. Res, rei veritas M; querenti, illi viro causam ab angelis querenti M
340. Vox, angeli B, angelica M; celebratur, in celis M
341. Ortus floris, nativitas Marie BA1; colatur, observetur M
343. Festum, festum virginis Marie M; virginale, -nis B
344. Nate, ab Anna Al; rose, Marie Al; speciale, proprium B, pulchrum Ai
345. cepit, incepit BAI; indiciis, demonstrationibus AI
346. primo, ab angelis et argangelis in celo et postea in terra Al
114
350
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Esse debet festivalis
Toti mundo virginalis
Et materna puritas.
16. QUOMODO IPSA VISITAVIT QUENDAM IN EXTREMIS
355
Iustum quemdam est affata
In extremis, consolata
Miris in deliciis.
Hie reginam comitatur,
Et per illam sociatur
Celi contuberniis.
17. DE YMAGINE FACTA MIRACULOSE CONTRA IUDEOS
360
Domo quadam virginalis
Forma rose specialis
Facta fuit celitus.
Templum fit apostolorum,
Illis illud Iudeorum
Furor linquid penitus.
Sub-title, Quod ipsa visitabat quemdam in extremis M
352. [IJustum, guide to rubricator 'i' B
354. deliciis corr. B
Sub-title, per miraculum facta M
358.
[D]omo, guide to rubricator 'd' B
361. Templum corr. in hand of gloss M
363.
linquit At
350. Toti, omnibus hominibus mundanis Al
351. puritas, claritas Al
352. Iustum, hominem M; est affata, Maria M
353. In extremis, in morte BA1; consolata, Maria M
354. Miris . . . , ille existens B, Maria existens Al
355. Hie, vir Al; reginam, celi Al
356. illam, virginem M
357. contuberniis, hoc contubernium est consortio militum in expeditione, de
'con' et 'tabula' marg. B, contubernium est proprie societas militum in expeditione et dicitur de 'con' quod est 'similis,' et 'yberno, -nas' marg. M
358. Istud fuit in primitiva ecclesia, Ierusalem accidit marg. B; quadam, Iudaica
M; virginalis, Marie virginis M
359. Forma, ymago B; specialis, Marie Al
360. celitus, miraculose BM
361. Templum, monasterium M, Templum dicitur quasi 'teos platos,' id est
divina latitudo, unde in Compendio:
Exponens templum sic esse 'theos platos' illud,
Hie quia 'platea theos,' vicus divinus habetur
[Compendium grammatice of John of Garland, MS Bruges $46, fol. 126]
marg. Al; fit, ilia domus Al
362. Illis, apostolis BA1; illud, templum Al; et accidit istud miraculum, gloriosa
virgine inveniente marg. Al
Stella Marts
115
18. DE IUDEO RAPTO A DEMONIBUS
365
Vir apella dum abiecit
Formam sanctam, mox defecit
Raptus a demonibus.
Christianus illam lavit,
Oleum de qua manavit
Palam admirantibus.
19. QUOMODO YMAGO CHRISTI FIDEIUSSIT
PRO MERCATORE
370
375
Forma talis, mercatori
Testis, dixit creditori
Quod solvit denarios.
Mari tradit hos mercator,
Quorum hoc est deportator
Ad Iudeos impios.
Fideiussor Christus fuit,
Mercans fraudem nullam struit
Dans mari marsupium.
364. [V]Ir, guide to rubricator V B, appella Af, eiecit M
365. factam M
Subtitle, Quod ymago fideiussit pro Christiano M
370. [F]orma, guide to rubricator T
B, FOrma M
374. reportator M
364. Vir apella, Iudeus [cf. Horace, Sat., v, 100-101] BM
365. Formam, Marie virginis M; mox, consequenter M
366. Raptus, ille M
367. illam, ymaginem M
368. qua, ymagine BM
369. Palam, coram B; admirantibus, omnibus hie ineuntibus M
370. In Constantinopolis civitate illud acidit marg. B; Forma, ymago Christi et
beate Marie B, quedam ymago Christi M
371. creditori, Iudeo BM
372. Quod, mercator M
373. hos, denarios B, denarios ad diem statutum M
374. Quorum, denariorum BM; hoc, mare BM
376. Fideiussor, mercatoris M; Christus, ilia ymago B, plegius M
377. Mercans, mercator BM; struit, parat B
378. marsupium, marsupium dicitur a 'manu' et 'supino, -nas' quod est 'elevo,
-vas' marg. B; bursam cumnumis M; et dicitur de 'manus, -nus, -nui,' et 'supino,
-nas' quod est 'elevo, -vas,' quia marsupium manu supinatur, id est elevatur dum
evacuatur marg. M
116
380
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Abscondebat hoc Iudeus,
Set in forma sculpta Deus
Dixit viri vitium.
20. DE PECCATRICE ACUSATA A DEMONE IN
SPECIE CAUSIDICI
385
390
395
Peccatricem acusare
Presumebat et dampnare
Demon vultu clerici.
Hec cum nato concumbebat,
Set flens nephas diluebat
Rore summi medici.
1111 stetit lateralis
Virga Iesse triumphalis,
Tamen invisibilis.
Cedit hie imperatrici,
Cruci, plebi, peccatrici,
A conspectu labilis.
Oves Christi salvant tria,
Christus et crux et Maria,
Propulsatis hostibus.
379. hos M
Sub-title, accusata M, causitici M
382. [P]eccatricem, guide to mbricator 'p' B, no rubric initial, but large rubric paragraph sign M
384. wltu M
388.
lateralis corr. B
391. Sedit M
392. phebi M
379. Abscondebat, sub tapite sera B; hoc, marsupium B; hos, denarios M
380. Deus, id est forma Dei M
381. viri, Iudei B, illius Iudei M; vitium, fraudem B
382. Peccatricem, quamdam mulierem M; acusare, quia habuit filium cum filio,
vir f uit Rome B
384. vultu, habitu BM; clerici, causidici B, cuiusdam causitici M.
385. Hec, mulier peccatrix a demone accusata M; cum, dixit B
386. flens, ipsa [MS ipsam] B, ilia mulier, id est peccatrix accusata At; nephas,
peccatum B; diluebat, peccatum suum lavit M
387. Rore, per misericordiam Dei B, misericordia Dei M
388. ////', mulieri accusate M; lateralis, col— M
389. Virga, Maria M; Iesse, Marie B, hie Iesse, indeclinabile, fuit pater David
regis prout dicitur in genera [librum generationis]; Iesse autem genuit David
regem marg. M; triumphalis, virgo B
390. invisibilis, Maria, scilicet hominibus M
391. hie, acusator M; imperatrici, Marie BM
392. Cruci, signaculo crucis M; peccatrici, accusator cedit M
393. labilis, ille BM, evanescibilis B
394. Oves, fideles Christianos M
396. Propulsatis, iectis B
Stella Marts
117
Crux est scutum et karacter
Pastoralis, quod audacter
Dico Christi gregibus.
21. DE YMAGINE QUE SANGUINEM FUDIT
400
405
Formam fecit salvatoris
Nichodemus ad honoris
Perennis memoriam.
Hanc Iudei perfoderunt,
Amphoramque submiserunt
Ad cruoris copiam.
Vix Iudei crediderunt,
Ad baptismum concurrerunt
Leto tandem pectore.
22. DE CLERICO IN ORE CUIUS FLOS INVENTUS ERAT
410
Hanc peccator salutavit,
Ore cuius flos vernavit
lam sepulto corpore.
Est a campis hoc relatum,
Et decenter est humatum
• Iustorum in atrio.
397. caracter M
398. quod], et M
400. [F]ormam, guide to rubricator T B
401. Nichomedus corr. Nichodemus B, Nicodemus M
402. Perhennis M
405.
corpoream M
Sub-title, inventus flos fuit Al
409. [H]anc, guide to rubricator
'h' B
412. campo M
397. Scutum, defensio B; karacter, crucis signum B, signum, hie caracter crucis
est signum a pastore ovibus impressum; unde crux Christi est noster caracter, id
est nostrum signum contra demonem et numinem Al
398. Pastoralis, Christus B
399. Dico, ego B; gregibus, fidelibus in ecclesia M
400. Formam, ymaginem BM; salvatoris, Christi M
401. ad, propter, proteseos paralauge [cf. supra, gloss on I. 141] M
403. Hanc, ymaginem At; perfoderunt, perforaverunt M
404. Amphoram, dicitur ab 'am' quod est 'circum' et 'fero, ferrs' B, ollam capacem Al, amphora dicitur de 'ansa, -se' et 'phoros, ferre,' quia manibus est portabilis sive contrectabilis, igitur maniabile marg. Al
405. cruoris, sanguinis emanantis Al
409. Hanc, Mariam Al; peccator, clericus B
410. cuius, peccatoris [AIS peccatricis] Al; vernavit, floruit BA1, accidit Carnoti B
412. hoc, corpus B, corpus clerici mortui Al
413. humatum, sepultum Al
414. atrio, catholico B, in cimiterio Al
118
415
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Carnotensi nam beata
Virgo viro cominata
Fuit de rusticio.
23. DE QUODAM SALVATO PER HORAS VIRGINIS
Scripto quidam memorandus
Ante Deum iudicandus,
420
Sompno raptus, steterat.
Propter horas virginales,
Cruciatus eternales
Dimissus evaserat.
425
430
Istud virgo gloriosa
Fecit, semper vernans rosa,
Electa in Ierico.
Balsamum, thus, cinnamomum
Vincit nardum et amomum
Odore vivifico.
24. DE MORTE IULIANI APOSTATE
Iulianus perforator
A quodam qui suscitatur
A beata virgine.
416. comminata M
417. Fuit ore rustico M
Sub-title, virginales M
418.
[S]cripto, guide to rubricator V B, commemorandus corr. memorandus B
419. indicandus corr. iudicandus in hand of gloss M
427. cinamomum M
Sub-title, apostote B
430. [IJulianus, guide to rubricator 'i' B
415. Carnotensi, de Chateris Al
416. viro, canonico B
417. ore rustico, quia nondum sepultus erat servus eius in cimiterio Al; rusticio,
turpius, rusticio, nihil est effrontius animo bottom of folio B
418. quidam, homo M
419. iudicandus, ille Al
422. Cruciatus, penas inferni M
423. Dimissus, ille M\ evaserat, eschapa M
425. vernans, ilia Al
426. Ierico, hec Ierico est vallis et indeclinabile, in hoc loco delectabili M
427. Balsamum, hec balsamus est arbor, hoc balsamum est liquor eius M; cinnamomum, canel M; cinnamomum dicitur quasi 'canna amomi' bottom of folio M
428. Vincit, ipsa Maria Al; nardum, talem arborem preciosam Al; amomum,
illud unguentum Al
430. Iulianus, apostata B, imperator qui primo erat monachus [sic] Al
431. A quodam, qui vocabatur Mercurius Al; suscitatur, a morte B
Stella Marts
119
Hoc peracto bustum petit,
Iulianum mors irretit
Inferni voragine.
435
Gaudet urbs Cesariensis,
Virgini doxis inpensis
A sancto Basilico.
Mira res est volitante
Equo, hasta sanguinante,
Vincente Mercuric
440
25. DE SACERDOTE LIBERATO AB EPISCOPO SUO
445
450
436. Sesariensis M
Hec succurrit sacerdoti
Puri cordis et devoti,
Literato modicum.
Semper 'Salve sancta parens'
Vir cantabat, arte carens,
Semper cantans unicum.
Hec prelatum exterrebat
Qui ministrum suspendebat
Laudis ab officio.
438. Basilio M
Sub-title, ab episcopo liberato M
442.
[H]ec, guide to rubricator V B
433. Hoc, postquam perforavit Iulianum M; bustum, sepulcrum BM; petit, Mercurius M
434. irretit, -tio, -tis M, illaqueat BM
436. urbs Cesariensis, Roma [sic] M
437. doxis, gloriis, hec doxa, id est gloria B, laudibile M; inpensis, donis B,
datis M
438. Basilico, qui fuit episcopus Remensis [sic] B, qui tune fuit episcopus
Cesariensis, id est papa Romanus [sic] M
439. volitante, currente M
440. Equo, et hoc M; hasta, hoc M; sanguinante, sanglaunt [MS sanglaung corr.
sanglaunt] M
441. Mercurio, equite illo B, Mercurius vocabatur miles ille qui eum interfecit M
442. Hec, Maria M
444. Literato, sacerdoti M; modicum, parvum M
445. Salve . . . , illud officium, scilicet missam de beata virgine M
446. Vir, ille sacerdos M
447. cantans, ille M; unicum, cantum, scilicet 'Salve, etc' M
448. Hec, Maria M; exterrebat, fortis terrebat B, espuntat M
449. ministrum, ilium sacerdotem M
450. Laudis, ab officio celebrandi missam M
120
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Sublimavit preses ilium
Et constantem et tranquillum
Matris in servitio.
26. DE YMAGINE VULNERATA
455
Esset pugna et immanis,
Sagittam Aurelianis
Ymago susceperat.
Civem ictu dum protexit,
Et crus lesum dum erexit,
Hostes id sedaverat.
27. DE MONACHO QUI VIDIT PENAM IUDE
460
465
Penam Iude proditoris
Pandi mater salvatoris
Monaco permiserat.
Rota Iudam inflammata,
Nunc depressa, nunc levata,
In profundum merserat.
Descendebat cum frangore,
Animarum plebs clamore
Iude maledixerat.
Sub-title, wlnerata At
454. [Elsset, guide to rubricator 'e' B, pungna M
457. Cive
M
458. crux corr, eras B, de corr. dum M
Sub-title, Iude lacking M
460.
[PJenam B
461. Monacho promiserat M
463. Iuda B
464. Hunc corr.
Nunc M
466. in M
467. amore corr. clamore M
451. preses, episcopus M; ilium, sacerdotem M
452. tranquillum, et non fatigabat ilium postea B
453. Matris, gloriose virginis M
454. immanis, terribilis B, magna et terribilis M, ab 'in' quod est 'sine,' et 'manu'
quod est 'bono,' quasi 'sine bono' marg. B
455. Aurelianis, accidit Aurelianis B, illi civitati M
456. Ymago, beate virginis M
457. Civem, quemdam burgensem M; protexit, ymago BM, quia ymago ilia
suscepit ictum pro burgense vel pro cive M
458. crus, a se M\ erexit, ymago BM
459. Hostes, inimicos M; id, miraculum B; sedaverat, pacificaverat BM
460. In Anglia accidit marg. B; proditoris, qui tradidit dominum Iudeis M
461. Pandi, monstrari B, ostendi M\ salvatoris, Christi M
462. Monaco, Anglie B, cuidam Anglicano M; promiserat, concesserat M
463. inflammata, ardens M
464. Nunc, aliquando M; depressa, a vale M; nunc, aliquando M; levata, exaltata M
466. Descendebat, rota BM; frangore, cum tumultu M
467. plebs, multitudo BM
Stella Moris
470
475
480
121
Omnes ilium percusserunt
Inpellentes, devoverunt,
Rota dum corruerat.
Ave, que tot mira facis,
Templum Dei, turris pacis,
Salutis refrigium.
Ave, flos suavitatis,
Lilium es castitatis,
Gaudii solsequium.
O flos, ave, sponsa solis,
Solem sequens, nove prolis
Genitrix et filia.
Dulcis odor violarum
In te spirat et rosarum
Exundat fragrantia.
28. DE MIRACULO QUOD FIT PARISIUS DE
IGNE PESTIFERO
485
Est in templo virginali
Virgo, medicina mali
Ardentis Parisius.
469. percursserunt corr. percusserunt M
472. Rubric paragraph sign in left margin M
482. In te corr. B, Inte M
Sub-title, quod fiebat ingne pestrfero M
484. [E]st,
guide to rubricator V B, EEst M
469. Omnes, ibi pendentes B, pendentes ibi M; percusserunt, Iudam M
470. devoverunt, maledixerunt B, maledixerunt Iudam M
471. corruerat, descenderat B
472. Ave, O gloriosa virgo M; mira, miracula M
473. Templum, tu BM; turris, tu M, a qua dependet omnis armatura fortior B
474. refrigium, tu M
475. flos, O Maria M
477. solsequium, sicorea, alter flos calendula B, tu, solsekel, flos est quidam M
478. solis, Christi M
479. nove prolis, filii Dei incarnati B
480. Genitrix, tu, quia portasti filium Dei M; filia, quia Deus creavit omnia et
sic beatam virginem M •
481. violarum, illorum florum, violette Gallice M
482. spirat, redolet BM
483. Exundat, abundat M; fragrantia, redolentia BM
484. templo, in ecclesia beate Marie apud Parisius B, in ecclesia beate virginis M
485. Virgo, est B; mali, morbi M
12 2
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Fertur ignis inf ernalis,
Arms urit ignis talis
Intus et exterius.
490
495
500
Hec est Stella paradisi,
Quia celum ab hac dysi
Rutilat lucifera.
Ex hac natus est salvator,
Sol iustorum, consolator
Luce salutifera.
O Gwillelme, presul pie,
Qui conservans es Marie
Oves et ovilia.
Ista vides et testaris,
Et de visis iocundaris
Miris in ecclesia.
29. DE YMAGINE N O N COMBUSTA
505
Igne stans inviolata
Remis fuit et salvata
Ymago virginea.
Mater sic est illibata,
Stella maris obumbrata
Dei nube nivea.
491. disi M
496. Willelme M
502. [IJgne, guide to rubricator T B
Sub-title, lacking M, appears following I. J07 B
487. Fertur, illud malum B, ilia egritudo Al; ignis inf ernalis, herisipula B
488. Artus, membra M
490. Hec, Maria Al; paradisi, a 'para' quod est 'iuxta' et 'disis,' 'stella' B
491. celum, empirium ubi sunt angeli et archangeli Al; dysi, stella, scilicet Maria
B, stella M
492. lucifera, dysis B
493. hac, dysi B, stella, id est Maria Al; salvator, Christus Al
494. Sol, ille Al
498. Oves, animas Al; ovilia, ecclesias in istius dioceseos B, ecclesias et monasteria Al
499. vides, tu B; testaris, testimonium peribes M
501. Miris, -aculis [A1S oculis] B, miraculis Al; ecclesia, beate virginis Parisius Al
502. inviolata, non B, non corupta At
503. Remis, illi civitati B, apud illam civitatem Al
504. Ymago, ymago virginis Al
505. Alater, Dei Al; sic, hac similitudine Al; illibata, non degradata nee corrupta
B, intacta ab omni voluptate carnali Al
506. Stella, ilia M; obumbrata, tecta B, cooperta Al
507. nivea, alba vel Iactea quod id est Al
Stella Marts
113
30. DE INSTITUTIONE PURIFICATIONS
51 o
Strata gens mortalitate
Et morborum novitate
Fuerat Bysancii.
Ypapanti est statutum,
Et exultat vulgus, tutum
A peste contagii.
31. DE CECO ILLUMINATO PRO RESPONSORIO
515
Cecum hec illuminavit
Qui iocundum elimavit
Cantum responsorii.
Dolet mens hereticorum,
Et meretur mors eorum
Puteum flagitii.
32. DE CAMISIA VIRGINIS
520
In hac celi rex vestitur
Velo carnis et unitur
Sumpto Deus homini.
Per hanc terra sublimatur,
Sub-title, lacking M
508. [S]trata B, guide to rubricator V B, Grata genus M
510.
Bysan corr. Bysansii in hand of gloss M
Sub-title, lacking M
514. [C]Ecum B,
guide to rubricator 'c' B
515. iocundus M
516. Tantum M
517. ereticorum
M
520. [I]N, guide to rubricator T B
508. mortalitate, igne infernali B
510. Bysancii, Constantinopolis B, apud illam civitatem Constanopolitanam
[MS Constantinopolitatam], et declinatur hoc Bisancium [MS Bisansium corr.
Bisancium], —cii M
511. Ypapanti, representatio B, illud festum Purificationis beate virginis M; est
statutum, festum Purificationis B
513. peste, pestis est corruptio elementorum B; contagii, ab illo calore generali
M
514. hec, Maria M
515. elimavit, solemniter composuit B, elimate composuit, id est nobiliter M
516. responsorii, 'Gaude Maria virgo cuntas hereses' B
517. Dolet, quod virgo fuit et mater M
518. Accidit Rome B, eorum, hereticorum M
519. flagitii, tormenti B
520. Carnotensis accidit B; hac, Maria B, gloriosa virgine M; rex, Christus M
521. Velo, coopertorio M
522. Sumpto, velo, id est humanitati sumpte de beata virgine M
523. hanc, Mariam M; terra, corpus hominis B
124
525
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Per hanc celo dominatur
Iunctus homo numini.
Hostes urbis Carnotensis
Stravit, frangens vires ensis
Virginis camisia.
33. DE VIRGINE VIOLATA CONTRA VOTUM SUUM
Nimphe plagam integravit
530
Quam cultello resecavit
Iuvenis malitia.
535
540
Contra votum violata
Per virtutem integrata
Est a matre, virgine.
Incorrupta mens manebat,
Mater Dei respondebat
Caste menti femine.
34. DE ABBATE PERICLITANTE IN MARI
Abbas quidam maris stellam
Invocavit, et procellam
Hec stravit equoream.
525. homo insened above the line in hand of gloss M
526. Carnotensis corr. Cornotensis M
Sub-title, deflorata M
529. [NJimphe guide to fabricator 'n' B, no
rubric, rubricated paragraph sign M
530. reseravit M
535. Incorupta M
537. menti corr. M
Sub-title, albate B
538. [A]bbas, hole in MS where letter 'A'
should be and letter 'P* on next folio appears through it; Pbbas, although guide to rubricator
is 'a' M [cf. supra, p. 84]
539. Invocabat M
540. stravit corr. B
524. hanc, Mariam M; celo, celestibus creaturis M
525. numini, Deo B, deitati M
526. Carnotensis, Chartris M
527. Stravit, acravanta M; frangens, camisia BM; ensis, gladius B
528. Virginis, Marie M; camisia, et dicitur camisia quasi 'carni missus' quia propinqus mittitur carni et id dicitur hec interula marg. M
529. integravit, Maria integram fecit, sanavit M
530. Quam, nimpham vel plagam B, plagam M; reseravit, aperuit M
532. violata, virgo ilia, corupta M
533. integrata, integram facta M
535. mens, puelle deflorate Al
537. femine, illius puelle M
538. In Anglia accidit B; Abbas, de Ramisseya M; maris stellam, Maria[m] M
539. procellam, tempestatem M
540. Hec,MztizM
Stella Mans
125
Lux in mali summitate
Cereali claritate
Virgam pandit Iesseam.
Inde festum inchoatur,
Et a multis celebratur
Virginis Conceptio.
In alvo sanctificata
Matris est, et celebrata
Est sanctificatio.
545
35. DE CLERICO A NUPTIIS REVOCATO
550
555
Nuptialem voluptatem
Integrando castitatem
Clericus dimiserat.
In remotam regionem
Ilium ad religionem
Regina transtulerat.
Lucet stella progressiva,
Mundi salus tempestiva,
In celum regrediens.
545. multis corr. B
rubric M
550. [Nluptialem, guide to rubrkator
'n' B
556. L is
541. mali, hie malus B
543. Iesseam, Iesse B, gloriosam virginem, signatam per virgam Iesse quia quasi
cerei [MS cerey] apparuerunt in summitate mali M
544. Inde, ex hoc B, hac de causa M; festum, Conceptionis B
546. Virginis, ante natale domini M; Conceptio, nota quod duplex est conceptio, scilicet spiritualis et carnalis. Carnalis conceptio est quando semen inmittitur in matneem et ita conceptio non celebratur; spiritualis conceptio est
quando anima infunditur ipsa masse carnee, et de hac conceptione est hie intelligendum M
547. sanctificata, ipsa B, Maria M
548. Matris, Anne M
551. Integrando, integre servando castitatem quam voverat Marie M
552. Clericus, quidam M
554. Ilium, clericum M
555. Regina, celi et terre B, celi M
556. stella, Maria M; progressiva, quia B
557. Mundi, hominis qui dicitur minor mundus M; salus, ilia M; tempestiva,
seisunabilis [MS seisunabile] B
558. regrediens, retro B, ilia M; Circulus concentricus cum terra dicitur equans;
circulus vero ecentricus cum terra dicitur deferens. Parvus circulus epiciclus
nominatur per cuius circumferentiam defertur corpus planete et centrum epicicli
126
560
565
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Austrum, arcon, orientem,
Lustrat hec et occidentem,
Orantes exaudiens.
Quam ad plenum exaltare
Nemo potest, hanc laudare
Stili temptat brevitas,
Ut a clero memoretur
Et ad laudem revocetur
Marie benignitas.
36. DE MONACHO SUBMERSO
570
Monacus submersus erat,
Causam rei si quis querat,
Erat carni deditus.
Pia matre succurrente,
Pio Deo discernente,
Vite fuit redditus.
559. [A]ustrum, guide to rubricator 'a' but no sub-title B, no rubric M, arc corr. arcon in
hand of gloss B, archon M
563. [h]anc B
568. [M]onacus B, Monachus M
569. siquis M, requerat M
semper defertur per circumferentiam deferentis. Si autem due linee ducantur a
centro terre ita quod includunt epiciclum, una ex parte orientis, alia ex parte
occidentis, punctus contactus ex parte orientis dicitur statio prima. Punctus
contactus ex parte occidentis dicitur statio secunda, et pars utrabique existens
dicitur stationarius. Arcus superior epicicli dicitur directio et planeta ibi existens,
directus. Arcus vero inferior dicitur retrogradatio et planeta ibi existens, retrogradus between lines $$8 and 559 B. There is a diagram illustrating these remarks on fol. 88" B.
559. Austrum, sout M, plagam meridionalem M; arcon, septentrionalis B, nort
M, plagam septentrionalem M
560. Lustrat, illuminat BM; hec, Maria M
561. exaudiens, ilia M
562. Quam, Mariam Al
563. hanc, Mariam M
564. Stili, qualitas carminis B, carminis M
565. Ut, in memoria cleri M
566. Et ad laudem, ad hunc finem facio librum M
568. Monacus, quidam M
569. Causam, quare erat submersus Al
570. carni, deliciis carnalibus et luxurie M; deditus, subditus B
571. Pia, et hoc M
572. Pio, hoc Al; discernente, iudicante Al
57.3. redditus, ille monachus M
Stella Marts
575
580
585
127
Nam per noctes exeundo,
Et a luxu redeundo
Mud Ave dixerat.
Per hanc celi restauratur
Denus ordo, reportatur
Ovis que perierat.
Virgo mater est pastoris,
Servans oves a raptoris
Faucibus pastoria.
Mi cedunt lupi fortes,
Per quam prede sunt exsortes
Noctis in vigilia.
37. DE MULIERE IUDAYCA VIRGINEM INVOCANTE
590
Hec Iudeam parientem,
Tandem fere morientem,
Luce lustrans iuverat.
Baptizatur liberata,
Per baptismum proles nata
Ad vitam pervenerat.
578. reparatur M
584. exortes B
M
586. [H]ec B
585. in corr. M
Sub-title, Iudaica muliere
576. lllud Ave, salutationem virginis M; dixerat, monacus B, ille monachus M
577. hanc, Mariam M
578. ordo, angelorum B, angelorum et archangelorum M; reparatur, ad ovile
per Mariam virginem M
579. Ovis, anima M
580. Virgo, Maria M; pastoris, Christi B, Christi qui dicit: Ego sum pastor
bonus [Vulg. Luc, 1, 30] M
581. oves, Christianos M; raptoris, diaboli M
582. pastoria, ilia M
583. ////, Marie M; lupi, spiritus maligni B, maligni spiritus M
584. quam, Mariam M; exsortes, expertes B, sine sorte M
585. Noctis, huius mundi qui dicitur nox M
586. In Hyspannia marg. B; Hec, Maria M
587. morientem, Iudeam M
588. lustrans, illuminans B
589. liberata, Iudea M
591. vitam, eternam B, celestem M
128
595
6oo
605
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
38. DE INFULA DATA EPISCOPO THOLETANO
Archipresul Tholetanus
Mentem sacram, sacras manus
Habens, hanc amaverat.
Infulam hec presularem
Dedit illi singularem,
Sacrans quam induerat.
39. DE MONIALI A NUPTIIS REVOCATA
Os inf erni moniali
Pro contractu nuptiali
Dormienti patuit.
Set Maria, fons dulcoris,
Pietatis et honoris,
Hanc celo restituit.
40. QUOMODO CHRISTUS MONACHO APPARUIT
Misse quondam in secreto
Vultu comparebat leto
Christus uni monaco.
Christi matrem honorabat,
Christus ilium confortabat
Radio Elyaco.
Sub-title, donata archiepiscopo Toletano M
592. [Alrchipresul B, Toletanus M
593. sacras] sacra M
597. sacras corr. sacrans in hand of gloss M
598. [O]S B
604. [M]isse, guide to rubricator 'm' B, condam M
605. Wltu BM, comparabat M
606. monacho M
609. Eliaco M
592. Toletanus, de Tulus M
593. Mentem, quantum ad bonam cogitationem M; manus, quantum ad bona
opera M.
595. Infulam, chesible M; hec, Maria M
596. ////', archiepiscopo Af; singularem, convenientem illi et nulli alteri M
597. Sacrans, corpus Christi M; quam, infulam BM; induerat, ille, scilicet admissam. Infula dicitur de 'influo, -is,' vel de 'in' et 'philos,' 'amor,' quia denotat
sacerdotem esse in amorem Dei marg. M
598. Os, introitus BM
599. contractu, desponsatione nuptii B, quia voluit nubere M
603. Hanc, monialem M
604. Misse, dum dicebat canonem misse M; secreto, canone B
607. honorabat, ille monachus M
605. ilium, monachum M
609. Elyaco, luce consolari, ab 'elyos' quod est 'sol,' id est Christus, qui est sol
Stella Moris
129
41. ITEM DE YMAGINE NON COMBUSTA
610
615
Templum quoddam fulmen ussit,
Set non ussit nee percussit
Virginalem formulam.
Velum igne non pallebat
Super caput quod tegebat
In templo virgunculam.
42. DE DEMONE SCRIBENTE PECCATA MULIERUM
620
Templo demon Tholetano
Verba scripsit in vesano
Quasi vultu simie.
Ungue, dente dum trahebat
Scripti cartam, hie ruebat
A murali serie.
Clerus ista videns risk,
Set deflevit quod commisit,
Culpatus a presule.
Sub-title, Item lacking M
610. [T]emplum, guide to rubricator 't' B
611. concussit M
Sub-title, mulieris B
616. [T]emplo, guide to rubricator V B, Templum
M, Toletano M
619. tradebat M
iustitie B, solari M, elios igitur 'sol' littere et inde 'eliacus,' id est 'solaris.' Item
de 'elios' igitur sol littere dicitur 'elios,' unde Sedulius loquens de helia dicit:
nam si sermonis Achivi
Una per accentum mutetur litera, sol est
[Paschal, carmin., 1, 186-187]
marg. M
610. Templum, ecclesiam BM
611. percussit, in templo Sancti Michaelis B
612. Virginalem formulam, ymaginem Marie virginis M
613. Velum, quod fuit in capite illius ymaginis M; igne, ab B
614. quod, velum M
615. virgunculam, parvam virginem B, parvam ymaginem de ligno factam M
616. demon, in ecclesia chathedrali Toleti B, en temple de Tulete M
617. Verba, duarum mulierum M.
619. trahebat, simia B
610. cartam, parganum B, percamenum M; ruebat, diabolus M
621. A murali serie, muri B, ab ordinato ordine muri M
623. commisit, ridendo B, deliquit ridendo M
624. Culpatus, ille M; presule, archiepiscopo B
130
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
625
Supra pectus dormientis
Manus stelle miserentis
Prorupsit scriptum cedule.
630
Clericus evigilavit,
Et prelato demonstravit
Scriptum hostis invidi.
Mulieres advocantur
Quarum voces comprobantur
Et sermones stolidi.
43. DE PUERO QUI CANTAVIT DE BEATA MARIA
IN ANGLIA
De Maria quicquid scivit
635
Puer cantans, enutrivit
Maternam inopiam.
Hunc Iudeus nequam stravit
Domo sua quem humavit
Diram per invidiam.
640
Mater querens hunc vocavit,
Hie in terra recantavit
Solita preconia.
627. Prorusit M
Sub-title, beata virgine M
'd' B
637. straavit B
638. quem corr. B
634. [D]e, guide to rubricator
625. dormientis, clerici BM
626. stelle, beatc Marie BM
6zy. Prorupsit, ostendit BM; cedule, quam scripsit diabolus de peccatis mulierum M
630. hostis, diaboli BM
631. advocantur, ad iudicium coram presule M
632. Quarum, mulierum M; voces, dicta B; comprobantur, et concordabant cum
scripto verbo ad verbum M
633. stolidi, stuki B
634. civitas in Anglia B
635. cantans, 'Gaude Maria virgo' B
636. Maternam inopiam, ne deperiret inopia M
637. Hunc, puerum M; stravit, occidit B, interfecit M
639. Dira?n per invidiam, quia cantavit de virgine B, quia cantavit de gloriosa
virgine M
640. querens, puerum suum M
641. Hie, puer M
642. Solita, solitas cantilenas de beata virgine M
Stella Marts
645
650
131
Puer liber mox exivit,
Mortis reos lex punivit
Iudeos in Anglia.
Scriptis hec investigantur
Antiquorum, et novantur
Nostram ad notitiam.
Ut per prisca renovemur,
Et per novam reformemur
Domino munditiam.
44. DE POPULO SANATO AB IGNE PESTIFERO
655
660
Vidit urbs Suessionensis
Morbos graves turmis densis
Accendi funereos.
In celesti maiestate
Virgo venit, potestate
Sanans morbos igneos.
Hie est eius sotularis
Quo sanatur popularis
Diversa pernicies.
Soccum spernit vir bubulcus,
Set def ormat ipsum ulcus
Et distorta facies.
643. Puer followed by erasure M
rubricator V B, Suesionensis M
ilium M
646. 'S' is rubric M
659. sanatus B
652. [V]idit, guide to
661. spernijt M
66u
643. liber, set plage apparuerunt M
644. reos, Iudeos M
646. Scriptis, per -ta B; hec, miracula BM
647. novantur, de novo recitantur B
649. prisca, miracula BM; removemur, unde apostolus: exuite veterem habitum
et induite novum [Vulg. Mar., 15, 20] marg. B
651. munditiam, corporis et anime M
652. Suessionensis, Gallice Sessoins B, Sesuns M
653. turmis, per B; densis, espessis M
654. funereos, mortiferos B, mortales, per id notat quod ilia turba vexata fuit
erisipila, id est igne infernali M
655. maiestate, dignitate B
656. Virgo, Maria M; potestate, divina B
657. morbos igneos, infernales, scilicet herisipila B, ignes infernales M
658. apud Suessionem B, aput urbem Suesionensem M
659. Quo, sotulari BM
660. pernicies, infirmitas B, infirmitas populi M
661. Soccum, sotularis B, sotularem M; spernit, vel sprevit M
662. ulcus, ulceratio vel scabies B, bace M
663. distorta, desturne M; facies, set recuperavit sanitatem B
132
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
45. DE FEMINA CUIUS NASUM BEATA VIRGO
REFORMAVIT
66;
Hec, membrorum reparatrix,
Nasi fuit reformatrix
Quern amisit femina.
Sanat claudos, cecitatem,
Vulneratos, surditatem,
Mutis reddit famina.
QUOD BEATA VIRGO MEDICINALIA VINCIT
E T PREVENIT
670
675
Adsit hec si medicina,
Vas nee pulsus nee urina
Docent nee pronostica.
AfForismi sermo brevis
Hec est, et dieta Ievis,
Ordinans viatica.
664. [H]ec, guide to rubricator V B
668. Wlneratos BM
669. femina corr.
famina M
Sub-title, omnia medicinalia M
670. [A]dsit, guide to rubricator 'a'
B, Assit M
671. Et nos pulsus M, ruina corr. urina in hand of gloss B
664. Hec, Maria est M
666. Quern, nasum BM; amisit, per egritudinem supervenientem M
667. Sanat, Maria M; claudos, clops M; cecitatem, hominem cecum, proprietas
ponitur pro substantivo M
669. famina, verba B, Ioquelas M
670. hec, virgo B, Maria M
671. pulsus, pulsus dicitur motus arterie vite continuus B, pulsus est motus vite
continuus marg. M
672. pronostica, indicia de morte vel de vita, 'pronosticor, -aris,' id est, 'indicio,
-as' marg. B, pronostica sunt indicia de morte alicuius vel de vita marg. M
673. Afforismi, afforismus est sententia brevis grandem comprehendens sententiam marg. B, istius regule phisicalis M; brevis, grandem includens sententiam
B, hec Maria est M
674. dieta, dieta est competens observantia egri, scilicet laxare digesta et non
movere turda marg. B, dieta est competens observantia sani et similiter egri [cf.
Morale scolarium (ed. Paetow), 1.601 ], dieta est sumptus sive iter unius diet, unde
versus: Estque dieta cibus moderatus iterque diei marg. M
675. Ordinans, ilia B; viatica, doctrinas medicinales in potu et cibo B, lirepuup
[MS liresuus] M, hoc viaticum tribus modis sumitur: est enim viaticum, expensa
in via; et viaticum est corpus Christi; et viaticum est ipse generalis doctrinalis,
prout continetur in Libro viaticorum [of Ibn al-Jassdr, tr. by Constantine the
African and others] marg. M
Stella Moris
680
'
133
46. DE REDUCTO AB INFERIS AD PENITENTIAM
Penis Iude traditoris
Dum avari predatoris
Anima committitur,
Redit per triginta dies
Penitendo, inde quies
Anime conceditur.
Laudes huius psalmi grati
Beati imrnaculati
685
690
695
Dicens, celum meruit.
Virgo dedit talem penam,
Salutari melle plenam,
Que perfecte profuit.
47. DE RUSTICO SALVATO QUIA DIXIT
SALUTATIONEM VIRGINIS
Quidam cultor illud Ave
Sepe dixit, vivens prave,
Metas agri transiens.
Hie ab hoste liberatur,
Dum post vitam asportatur,
Veniam inveniens.
IN GENERE DICITUR
Sani gaudent, furiosi
Et contracti et leprosi,
Gaudent paralitici.
676. [P]enis, guide to rubricator 'p' B
682. space bet-ween huius and psalmi M
683. in maculati M
Sub-title, quia salutationem beate virginis dixit M
688.
[QlVidam, guide to rubricator 'q' B
689. iuvens M
Sub-title, lacking M
694. [S]ani, guide to rubricator V B, no rubric M, gaudens M
6jj. predatoris, cardinalis Rome B
679. Redit, predator B, anima ad corpus M
680. Penitendo, dum egit penitentiam, vel sic ut faceret penitentiam M
684. Dicens, ipse B, ille predator M
685. penam, [penitenjtiam B
686. plenam, penitentiam M
687. Que, pena B; profuit, isti restituenti ablata B
688. Ave, Maria etc. BM
691. hoste, diabolo B
692. asportatur, a diabolo B
696. paralitici, a 'para' quod est 'dis' et 'lesus,' 'solutio,' et est mortificatio membri nemenis ex nimia frigiditate marg. B
134
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Sanat membra, sanat mentes
Virgo sancta, que credentes
Celo facit refici.
700
705
710
715
698.
701.
title,
708.
698.
699.
700.
701.
705.
706.
707.
710.
48. DE PAUPERE EROGANTE ADQUISITAS
ELEMOSINAS PRO MARIA
Pauper panem adquisitum
Pro Maria dedit tritum
Aliis pauperibus.
Virgo tandem hunc beavit,
Et ad celum advocavit,
Multis audientibus.
49. DE PUERO VOCANTE PUERUM VIRGINIS
Quedam suum tulit natum
Ad Mariam inclinatum
Et ad suum parvulum.
Panem illi porrigebat,
'Pupa papa,'proferebat,
Addens sonum querulum.
Amplectando simul flendo
Dicit hec, set respondendo
Ihesus tendit brachia,
Tost tres dies tu papabis
sanctaque M
Sub-title, lacking M
700. [P]auper, guide to rubricator 'p' B
beata M
70J. ditavit M, ditavit in band of gloss as alternate reading B
Sublacking M
706. [QlVedam, guide to rubricator 'q* B, tulit suum corr. M
pararvulum B
713. Dicit in hand of gloss B, hie Af
714. Christus M
que, Maria B
refici, reddi B
Pauper, homo B
Maria, amore Marie B; tritum, minutum B
audientibus, ubi moriebatur B
Constantinopolis B; Quedam, mulier B
inclinatum, natum in ecclesia B
papa, comede B; proferebat, dicebat B, Horatius fsic]:
in templo quid facit aurum?
Nemo hoc quod Veneri donate virgine pupe,
[Persius, II, 60-70]
Persius: 'poscit papare minutum' [Persius, III, 17-18] marg. B
713. hec, pupa papa B; respondendo, dicens: post triduum tu papabis mecum B
714. Ihesus, ymago B
715. papabis, comedes B
Stella Marts
135
Pupa, mecum, et cantabis
Ad mea convivia.'
720
Puer mox febricitavit,
Et ad celum transmigravit,
Acta die tertia.
O res mira, celum datur
Propter micam, et pensatur
Infinita gloria.
50. DE PEREGRINO QUI SIBI GUTTUR AMPUTAVIT
E T TESTICULOS
725
730
735
Sibi quidam amputavit,
Sicut demon instigavit,
Guttur et virilia.
Demon dixit quod salvaret
Se sic, set hunc dum dampnaret
Mutantur iudicia.
Iacobus hunc ad Mariam
Duxit sanctus sanctam, piam,
Peregrinum liberans.
Sicut virgo iudicavit,
Mens ad corpus remeavit
Deo se confederans.
51. DE PARTIBUS INFERIORIBUS RESTITUTIS
Quidam pedem amputavit
Cuius sacer concremavit
Ignis crus et tibiam.
722. et] quod M
723. Infinita corr. B
Sub-title, lacking M
724. [S]ibi,
guide to rubricator V B
728. dum hunc M
729. indicia M
730. hunc lacking M
731. sanctus inserted above the line M
734. remavit M
Sub-title,
lacking M
736. [Q]Vidam, guide to rubricator 'q' B
737. Eius M
738.
Iignis B
716.
722.
725.
726.
728.
733.
735.
736.
737.
738.
Pupa,tuB
pensatur, ponderatur B
instigavit, entiza Gallice B
virilia, dependentia B
dampnaret, demon B
iudicavit, autoritate filii sui B
confederans, coniungens B
amputavit, propter dolorem B
sacer, execrabilis B
Ignis, erisupila B
1
136
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
740
Dum in sompnis hunc palpavit
Virgo totum restauravit,
Plenam ferens gratiam.
PRECONIUM GLORIOSE VIRGINIS SUMMO MIRACULO
Ad te, virgo, nos clamantes
Mundi fluctu naufragantes,
Deduc, salva, libera.
745
Stella maris, dux, salvatrix,
Captivorum liberatrix,
Assit tua dextera.
750
Nos in vite portu pone,
In agone spes corone
Christiano populo.
Redde vicem salvatori,
Ne permittas tuos mori
Mortis in ergastulo.
EXORTATIO AD PUPLICATIONEM MIRACULORUM
755
O prelati Gallicani,
Presides et Anglicani,
Hyspani, Teutonici,
Stelle mira predicetis,
Opus breve comportetis
Ponderis hoc modici.
739. Hie corr. Dum M
Sub-title, lacking M, gloriosa B
rubricator 'a' B
743. Alundi lacking M
745. Sstella B
753. mergastulo corr. in ergastulo B
Sub-title, lacking M
rubricator 'o' B
756. Hispane M
739.
740.
741.
743.
745.
746.
748.
749.
751.
752.
753.
755.
757.
758.
palpavit, tasta Gallice B
totum, totum fecit et sanum B
ferens, ilia B
naufragantes, periclitantes B
Stella, O B
Captivorum, in peccatis B
vite, in gloria eterna B
agone, certamine B; spes, tu B
vicem, vicissitudinem B
tuos, qui tibi serviunt B
in ergastulo, in inferno B
Anglicani, persuasio est ad prelatos ecclesie B
Stelle, Mane [MS maree] B; mira -cula B
Opus breve, summam [MS sumum] B
742. [A]d, guide to
751. salvatorei M
754. [O], guide to
Stella Moris
137
52. DE PUERO GENITO IN NOCTE PASCHALI QUEM
MATER DEDIT DYABOLO
760
Nocte quidam in Pascali
Inpulsu demoniali
Uxorem congnoverat.
Uxor rixans ad hunc actum,
Quicquid ibi fuit factum
Demoni concesserat.
765
Generatus est et natus
Puer, gratus et amatus
A cuntis videntibus.
Rem congnoscit hie a matre,
Stimulatus mentis atre
Inclusis doloribus.
770
Papam hie et cardinales
Audit et pontificates
Sensus et consilia.
Ierusalem tandem petit,
Fructum a prelato metit
Et vite solacia.
775
Pape prelatique cartam
Defert, talem ob rem artam
Heremitam adiens.
Sanctus preces heremita
Fundit iuvenis pro vita,
Misse sacrum faciens.
780
Sub-title, lacking M
paragraph sign B
774. consilio M
anas M
761.
763.
770.
771.
774.
776.
779.
780.
783.
760. No rubric provided for; title is interpolated between lines,
763-764. Lines transposed B, rixas M, f ibi M
769. cognoscit M
775. tandem corr. B
778. cartas M
779. ob rem talem
Inpulsu, per inpulsum et instigationem B
rixans, contradicens B; actum, venereatum B
Stimulatus, coactus B; atre, angustiate B
Inclusis, per -sos B; doloribus, -res B
consilia, pontificum B
Fructum, fructuosum consilium B; prelato, Ierosolimitano B
talem, quod petens Ierusalem B; artam, strictam B
adiens, petens B
sacrum, ofiicium B
138
785
790
795
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Inter ipsum et altare
Hostis ausus est raptare
In infernum puerum.
Hunc Maria revocavit,
Et gaudentem reportavit
Sanctum ad presbiterum.
Heremita iocundatur,
Sanctus presul gratulatur,
Papa plausu iubilat.
Redit puer ad parentes,
Viso nato congaudentes,
Set infernus ululat.
53. DE IUDEO QUI PERCUSSIT YMAGINEM CHRISTI
800
805
Formam Ihesu vulneravit
Iudeus, que sanguinavit
In urbe Bisansii.
Captus est, set credit ille
Dum cruoris manant stille
Virginalis filii.
Scriptum legi, deviantes
Hec in silvis et sperantes
In se regit previa.
Aufert hec incarceratos,
Et a nexu liberatos
Collocat in patria.
792. plausau M
Sub-title, lacking M
796. [F]ormam, guide to rubricator T B,
wlneravit At
797. saguinavic M
798. Bisancii M
802. Paragraph sign BM
805. Paragraph sign B
790. iocundatur, quando puer respondit: Amen B
791. presul, Ierusalem B
796. Ihesu, in gremio matris B
797. que, forma B
798. Bisansii, Constantino . . . est adiectivum con . . . [margin is trimmed
here] marg. B
799. credit, et baptizatus fuit B
800. cruoris, a pectore ymaginis B
801. Virginalis filii, filii virginis B
802. deviantes, inter spiritualia sunt miseralia B
803. Hec, Maria B
805. hec, Maria B
Stella Mar is
139
QUOMODO BEATA VIRGO MARIA SUPERAT OMNIA
MUNDI PRECIOSA
Ave, gemma preciosa,
Virtuosa, luminosa,
810
Saphiros exsuperans.
Iaspis tibi comparata
Hebes et discolorata
Erit et degenerans.
815
820
825
Omnem vincit vim gemmarum,
Omnis cedit vis herbarum
Illius imperio.
Velit ergo subvenire
Nobis et nos expolire,
Rudes celi solio.
In hiis ridmis quasi cannis
Stridulis planctum Iohannis
' Audi de Garlandia.
Si tu tamen audis bonos
Quo me vertam tibi, pronos,
Fragiles irradia.
54. DE PICTORE QUI DIABOLUM TURPEM DEPINXIT
Sathaneam yconiam
Turpem pinxit et Mariam
Pictor formosissimam.
Hostis illi comminatur,
830
Quia tantum deformatur
Formam perturpissimam.
Sub-title, lacking M
808. [A]ve, guide to rubricator V B, Que gemma sponsa Af
812. Ebes M
814. vicit Al
816. inperio M
820. rithmis Af
821. Tridulis Af, plantam M
824. vertis Af
Sub-title, lacking Af
826. [SJathaneam,
guide to rubricator V B, Satlianiam M
830. Quia corr. B
811.
818.
819.
821.
822.
825.
829.
comparata, equiparata B
expolire, feit[i]er Gallice B
Rudes, nos [MS vos] B
Stridulis, ridmis B
A udi, beata virgo B
irradia, clarifica B
illi, pictori B
140
835
840
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Post hec furtim tabulatum,
In quo suum pictor statum
Fecit, hostis diruit.
Retinere set ymago
Hunc est visa, ut virago
Que viro non defuit.
Multi factum audientes
Et videntes et scandentes
Novis assunt cratibus.
A lacerto dependentem
Virginali et ridentem
Factis sumunt gradibus.
QUOD VIRGO OMNES SIBI DEVOTOS RECIPIT
845
Audit cetus laicales,
Audit turmas clericales,
Pauperes et divites.
Omnem sexum hec exaudit,
Nee etatem hec obaudit,
Attollens precipites.
55. DE MILITE QUI VOVERAT FACERE ECCLESIAM
VIRGINI
850
855
Quidam miles vixit male,
Templum tamen monacale
Se facturum voverat.
Ante factum infirmatur,
Ante Deum ventilatur
Quod in vita fecerat.
832. furtum con. furtim B
833. pictor suum M
837. non viro M
Sub-title,
lacking M
844. [A]Vdit, guide to rubricator V B
Sub-title, lacking M
850.
[QJuidam, guide to rubricator 'q' B, iunxit M
851. monachale M
855. Quem
corr. Quod B
836.
843.
845.
' 848.
849.
851.
853.
virago, fortissima mulier B, virago quasi de 'viro acta' marg. B
sumunt, ipsi B
clericales, -corum B
Nee . . . obaudit, non male B
precipites, senes B, precipitantes in peccato mortali B
Templum, in honore virginis beate B
Ante, -quam fecit templum B
Stella Marts
860
141
Propter votum cucullata,
Mens in celis est allata
Dei matris precibus.
Voluntatem acceptavit
Deus et hanc compensavit
Pro bonis operibus.
56. DE SCOLARE LIBERATO A PESTE
865
Scolas adit vir scolaris,
Tollit hunc vis procellaris
Areptum in aera.
Cantat 'Ave maris Stella,'
Et dimittit hunc procella
Mente sanum libera.
57. DE PUERO LIBERATO A FENERATORE
870
875
Quedam fuit generosa
Propter natum luctuosa,
Vadem pro pecunia.
Nimis hec depauperata,
Est Mariam deprecata
Ad nati presidia.
Hunc custodit fenerator
In catenis, coartator,
Set puer educitur.
Ducit ilium celi porta,
Ad salutem nostram orta,
Qua mundus redimitur.
857. celum M
861. nobis M
Sub-title, lacking M
862. [S]colas, guide to
rubricator V B, scolaris corr. B
866. dimisit M
Sub-title, lacking M
868.
[QlVedam, guide to rubricator 'q' B, Cuedam Af
870. Vade M
871. Nimis corr.
M
873. subsidia M
875. cathenis M
856.
857.
859.
863.
867.
870.
876.
878.
cucullata, covele B
Mens, anima B
acceptavit, agrea Gallice B
vis, violentia B; procellaris, procelle B
sanum, ilium B
Vadem, fideiussorem B; Gallia, apud Corbi B
puer, per Mariam B
orta, porta B
142
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
880
Orta stirpe de regali,
Fulget dote naturali,
Spiritali predita.
Non est parem habitura,
Per quam nostra iam natura
Ditior est habita.
885
58. DE MIRACULO FACTO BISANCII DE FESTIVITATE
SABATI
Primo fuit conservata
Stelle maris et callata
Illi dies septima.
Quondam urbs Bisanciana
890
Hanc colebat fide cana,
Mente devotissima.
Hie ymago velabatur,
Velum per se tollebatur
Sacrum sexta feria.
Hora nona sabatali,
Tecto vultu virginali,
Admiratur Grecia.
895
Virgo suo cedit nato,
Festo nati celebrato
In die dominica.
Saltern colunt hanc a nona
Qui spem habent ut corona
Detur illis celita.
900
Sub-title, lacking M
886. [P]Rimo, guide to rubricator 'p' B
et callata] condonata M
892. velebatur corr. velabatur M
887. Stella corr. B,
896. Tota M
882. Spiritali, dote B
883. Nonest,ipsaB
884. natura, humana B
887.
888.
889.
890.
892.
893.
894.
901.
callata, et specialiter data B
septima, sabbati B
Bisanciana, Constantinopolis B
cana, perfecta B
Hie, in urbe Bysancii B; ymago, Maria B
per se, sine auxilio; tollebatur, quod erat circa ymaginem B
sexta, die Veneris circa horam nonam, scilicet in sabbato B
colunt, ipsi B; hanc, diem B
Stella Marts
143
59. DE FREDERICO A PARMENSIBUS SUPERATO ET QUO
TEMPORE FACTUS EST LIBER ISTE
Dum Parmenses invaserunt
905
Fredericum, detulerunt
Virginis ymaginem.
Fugit victus et vincentes
Intulerunt, non parcentes
Stragem miserabilem,
910
915
Ista mira quando scripsi,
Tune scripture favet isti
Studium Parisius.
Hoc magister tune Galterus
Pie rexit, prudens erus,
Pius cancellarius.
INTRODUCUNTUR PER PROSOPOPEYAM SUPERIORA
BEATAM VIRGINEM COMMENDARE ET EIUS
FILIUM PER DIVINAM POTENTIAM
Hie si mundus posset fari,
Pars cum toto venerari
Unam non sufficeret.
Artifex qui me firmavit
920
In hac sese humanavit
Firmamentum diceret.
Sub-title, lacking M
904. [D]um, guide to rubricator 'd' B, Parmanses B
905. et
tulerunt M
908. non] in M
909. Stragmen M
911. Tune] Sunt M, favet
corr^ B
913. magistri M, Walterus M
914. herus M
Sub-title, lacking M,
in margin B
916. No rubric provided for, paragraph sign BM, passit B
918-919.
Space between lines for insertion of sub-title B
919. [A]rtifex, guide to rubricator 'a'
B, no rubric M, formavit M
904. Parmenses, cives Parme B
906. ymaginem, in bellum, in loco vexilli B, in Quadragesimo fuit marg. B
907. victus, ipse B; vincentes, illi Parmenses B
909. Stragem, mortem B
913. Quo tempore hoc fuit ostendit per personam autenticam marg. B; Hoc,
studium B
918. Unam, solam virginem B
919. firmavit, stabilivit in continuo motu B
920. hac, virgine B, humanavit, humanum fecit B
921. diceret, proferret [Vulg., Psal., 17, 3] B
144
925
930
935
940
945
^
e
Stella Maris of John of Garland
Motor meus inspiravit
Hanc et ex se fecundavit
Qui comprendit omnia,
Dividendo cristallinas
Aquas, vires per divinas
Sumtenendo media.
Aquas hie qui congelavit
Ubi numquam ventus flavit
Homo nasci potuit.
Hie creator creatura,
Creatoris servans iura
Hominem dum induit.
Nimpham Deus obumbravit,
Et eandem inflammavit
Igne sancti spiritus.
Hie qui celum sublimavit
Aulam ventris adornavit
Virginalis celitus.
Caro Deum palliavit
Quern victorem clipeavit
Ad insultus hostium.
Chxisti caro, sancta, cara,
Deiecit in crucis ara
Demonis dominium.
922. 'M' is rubric M, mens M
928. congellavit M
929. nusquam M
931.
Space provided for rubric by scribe who copied MS and guide to rubricator 'h'; another has
added 'H' in black ink as corr. B, Hie] Sic M, creatura creator corr. creator creatura M
932. Creaturis M
934. inflammavit M
935. obumbravit M
938. adoravit M
941. clipiavit M
943. sacra deleted following sancta B
945. demonium B
922.
923.
924.
925.
928.
931.
934.
935.
936.
940.
941.
942.
944.
945.
Motor, firmamentum dicit qui movet me B
Hanc, Mariam B; fecundavit, fecit fecundam B
Qui, ille B
cristallinas, ab aquis amplioribus [Vulg., Gen., 1, 6] B
hie, Deus B
creatura, Maria B
Nimpham, virginem Mariam B
inflammavit, spiritu sancto B
Igne, amore B
palliavit, texit B
Quern, Deum B; victorem, tertia die qui sursum vivit B
Ad, contra B; hostium, malignorum spirituum B
ara, sanctitate B
Demonis, Luciferi B
Stella Marts
145
ADAPTATUR ORDO PLANETARUM VIRGINI MARIE*
950
955
960
Splendor stupet Saturnalis,
Cuius cursus planetalis
Est love sublimior.
Admiratur Iovis stella
Quod puella, Dei cella,
Est stellis serenior.
Luce sua rubicundus
Vultu velut iracundus,
Rose Mars obtemperat.
Cedit matri creatoris
Sol, estivi fons caloris,
Quo ver flores generat.
Venus, mater venustatis,
Stupet de maternitatis
Dotibus in virgine.
Ridet lux Mercurialis
Quod fert fructum virginalis
Venter sine semine.
Sub-title, lacking M, in margin B
946. No rubric provided for B, paragraph sign M
953. Wltu B, velud M
960. virgine corr. B
949. Iovis, secundus planeta B
950. puella, Maria B; cella, domus Dei B
954. obtemperat, favet B
957. Quo, sole B
958. venustatis, nobilitatis B
960. Dotibus, donis B, hee sunt dotes hominis glorificati sicut habentur in Libro
magistri Iohannis elegiarum [an unidentified work of John of Garland]:
Corpora sanctorum fulgebunt; fortia, sana,
Libera, pulcra, cita letaque semper erunt.
Sensus, amicitia, concordia, plena potestas,
Pax, honor: hee dotes sex animabus erunt top of folio B
961. Mercurialis,-cazu B
* [cf. Epithalamium beate Marie virginis of John of Garland, MS British Museum
Cotton Claudius A x, fol. 46, Virgo comparatur regioni stellarum:
Mira planetarum simphonia pasceret aures,
Si cui transiret ad cor ab aure melos.
Non minus excipitur a nostris motibus alta
Regia virgo Dei, sole serena suo.]
146
The Stella Alaris of John of Garland
Solis lumen habens luna
Admiratur quod lux una
Solem novum pariat.
Luna crescit et decrescit,
Set eclipsim ilia nescit
Lux que circumradiat.
965
970
Corpus est glorificatum
Nostris quod materiatum
Elementis fuerat.
Nunc in terra, nunc in celo
Per momentum pio zelo
Suos hec remunerat.
975
QUOD DISPOSITIONS STELLARUM AD LAUDEM
VIRGINIS ORDINANTUR E T QUOD EAM
E T FILIUM SUUM DESIGNANT
Ut Albumasar testatur,
Inter Stellas declaratur
Virgo lactans puerum.
965. quo B
lacking M
967. 'L' is rubric M
968. Et M
970. est] que M
976. [U]t, guide to rubricator 'u' B, Quod albumas aitestatur M
Sub-title,
964. luna, luna non habet aliquam lucem nisi a sole marg. B
965. lux una, Stella, Maria B
966. Solem, a quo lumen habet B
967. Luna, lux B; decrescit, quantum ad lucem B
968. ilia, lux, Maria B
969. circumradiat, splendet in circuitu B
970. Corpus, Marie B; glorificatum, immortale factum B
971. quod, corpus B
972. Elementis, nostris B
973. Nunc, aliquando B; nunc, ali[a]s existens B
974. zelo, amore B
975. remunerat, dat, munerat B
976. Albumasar, ille astronomus B, Albumasar in capitulo ii [MS i], vi liber, De
naturis signorum: Et que forme stellarum oriuntur per singulos decanos cuiuslibet signi: Dicit Virgo signum sterile est, bipartitum, triforme, in cuius primo
decano, ut Perse, Caldei, et Egiptii omniumque duces, Hermes et Astalius, a
prima etate docent, puella cui Persicum nomen 'seclios die zama' [sic], Arabice
interpretatum 'adre nedefa' ['adhra' nadifah], id est virgo munda, puella dico
virgo immaculata, corpore decora, wltu venusta, habitu modesta, crine prolixa,
manu geminas aristas tenens, supra solium auleatum residens, puerum nutriens ac
in se pascens in loco cui nomen Hebrea, puerum inquam a quibusdam nationibus
nominatum 'Ihesum' signantibus ita, 'Eliza' [Isd], quern nos Greece 'Christum'
Stella Marts
980
985
147
Stellis lux ingremiatur
Per quam homo designator
Moderator syderum.
Mundi parent elementa,
Et in hiis que sunt contenta
Angelorum domine.
Hec in stellis' figuratur,
Supra Stellas coronatur
In Tronorum ordine.
DE FESTIS GLORIOSE VIRGINIS SECUNDUM ANNI
TEMPORA ET DE EIUS MAGNIFICENTIA
USQUE AD FINEM LIBRI
Annum stipant floris festa,
Cuius gesta sunt digesta
990
Per orbis capedinem.
Cuius vernat ver decore,
Flos conceptus est a flore
Per Verbi dulcedinem.
995
981.
987.
988.
996.
Est assumptus ab hoc mundo
In Augusto flos fecundo
Ad celi pallatia.
siderum M
982. 'M' is rubric M
984. domine corr. M
986. Super M
Thronorum M
Sub-title, lacking M, inserted vertically between columns B
No rubric provided for, paragraph sign B, no rubric M
989. Quorum M
palatia M
dicimus [Introductorium in astronomiam (Venice, 1506), VI, 2, fol. 4V. Cf.
Roger Bacon, Metaphysica (ed. Robert Steele, Opera hactenus inedita, fasc. 1,
Oxford, 1905), pp. 8-9 and 46] bottom of folio B
979. ingremiatur, ponitur in gremio B
980. quam, Iucem B; designatur, celis, scilicet esse B
981. Moderator, moderator et creator B
983. hiis, dementis B
984. domine, Marie B
987. ordine, arcangelorum B
988. stipant, suppodiant B; festa, Marie B
989. Cuius, festi B; gesta, facta B; digesta, divisa B
990. capedinem, capacitatem B
991. Cuius, floris B
992. Flos, Christus B; flore, Maria B
993. dulcedinem, per salvationem B
995. flos, virgo Maria B
148
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
In Septembri flos est natus,
In Decembri generatus
Ad humana gaudia.
IOOO
1005
1010
1015
1020
Ignem aque qui ligavit,
Terrain qui confederavit
Aura cum aerea,
Conchatenat virginale
Decus et ius maternale
Stabili concordia.
QUOMODO MARIA CONCEPIT FILIUM DEI DE
SPIRITU SANCTO
Qui producit de tesauris
Suis ventos, flores auris
Vernos pinget levibus.
O Rector, qui cuntos cernis,
"
Ventos claudis in cavernis,
Movens terram flatibus.
Ad impulsum dum ventorum,
Ether inflamatur horum,
Pium fulgur emicat.
Ether inflammatus tonat,
Dum in cana nube sonat,
Dum cum aqua dimicat.
Ascendente nix vapore
Formam capit ex torpore
Venti flantis gelidi.
Si descendat nimbi stilla,
Grando sepe viget ilia
Venti flatu frigidi.
1000. Paragraph sign M, Igne M
1001. Terra M
IOOJ. Concathenat M
1004. matronale M
Sub-title, lacking M, inserted between columns B
1006. Lines
1006-1029 are lacking, but sign following I. too; indicates proposed insertion B
1009.
*O' is rubric M
1011. 'A.' is rubric M .
1015. 'E' is rubric M, Eether M
1018.
'A' is rubric M
1920. geligdi M
1021. 'S' is rubric M
997. natus, Maria B
1001. confederavit, consociavit B
1003. Conchatenat, conligat B
Stella Moris
1025
1030
1035
149
De thesauro deitatis
Spirat flatus puritatis,
Futuorum prescius.
Flavit auster, sacer flatus,
Per quern fuit humanatus
Dei patris filius.
Mater veri salvatoris,
Laudem sumas peccatoris,
Preces non repudians.
Est cum matre bonus Deus,
Post hos homo, lapsus reus,
Plus vel minus devians.
INCIPE SEQUENTIAM HIC
1040
1045
1050
Virgo Deum, rosa rosam
Speciosa speciosam
Concipit angelicam.
Rosa rose maritatur,
Mundi rosa decoratur
Plus per rosam celitam.
Hanc iuncturam admiratur
Et in ilia speculatur
Tota celi curia.
Rosa rosam sibi pingit
In qua decor omnis ningit,
Decens supra lilia.
Chori novem organizant,
Cunta celi citharizant
Matris laudes organa.
1024. 'D' is rubric M
Sub-title, lacking M, inserted between columns in hand of gloss
B
1036. No rubric provided for, paragraph sign B, ' V is rubric M
1041. Inserted
in margin M
1043. illam corr. ilia B
1044. celica corr. curia M
1032. repudians, repellens B
1033. bonus Deus, immo summum bonum B
1039. Rosa, Deus B; rose, Marie quando assumit humanitatem B
1040. decoratur, pulcrior sit B
1041. per rosam celitam, per filium Dei B
1045. Rosa, filius Dei B; rosam, Mariam B; pingit, adornat B
1046. qua, rosa B; decor, corporis et anime B; ningit, habundat de celo, Candida
apparet B
1047. Decens, ille B
1048. Chori, angelorum B
150
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Hanc in terris cordis corde,
Hanc sublimant toto corde
Labiorum timpana.
1055
1060
1065
1070
Arcu celi figuratur,
Quia sole serenatur,
Carnis nubem offerens.
Sacer flatus madet rore
Solem suum, in decore
Velut yris referens.
Deus unus incarnatur,
Trinitas hie operatur:
Pater per potentiam,
Inspiratu sacer flatus,
Per illustrem Dei natus
Suam sapientiam.
Verum student commendare
Sacrum partum stelle clare
Genitor et filius.
Flatus, auris, et legatus
Qui per patrem est affatus
Virginem secretius.
1053. Sequence is concluded with this line
1054. 'A' is rubric M
1056. Carnis
corr. B
1059. Velum iris M
1060. Reus Af
1063. Inspiratum M
1066.
Quemque audunt M
1069. lagatus M
1051.
1053.
1054.
1055.
1056.
1057.
1058.
1059.
1060.
1061.
1063.
1064.
1066.
1067.
1068.
1069.
1070.
1071.
corde, hec corda, id est arterie cordis B
timpana, implementa exteriora B
figuratur, ipsa B
sole, filio B; serenatur, clarificatur B
Carnis, habitati B; nubem, tegimen carnis B
madet, ipsa B
Solem, nlium Dei B
yris, arcus celi B; referens, representans, representat solem B
incarnatur, quamvis ut tres persone B
Trinitas hie, incarnatione B
Inspiratu, inspiratione B; sacer flatus, spiritus sanctus B
natus, filius B
Verum, -re [MS res] B; commendare, ad commendationem convenire B
stelle, Marie B
Genitor, per sapientiam vel potentiam B; filius, per incarnationem B
Flatus, spiritus sanctus B; auris, obedientia; legatus, Gabriel arcangelus B
patrem, autoritatem B
secretius, in secreto loco, scilicet in talamo B
Stella Marts
1075
1080
1085
1090
1095
151
Neupma nimfam inspiravit,
Dum se natus humanavit
Auris obediverat.
Quam legatus salutavit
Hanc ad partum animavit,
Hec assensum dederat.
Hie est amor relativus,
Idem est demonstrativus
Divine dulcedinis.
Quod vult virgo, vult et natus
Matri nee est adversatus
Ad salutem hominis.
Tota fluit pietate
Omni fulta sanitate,
Salus confidentibus.
Nulli manet hec ingrata,
Cuntis bonum operata
Mam venerantibus.
Ore, manu, mente detur
Illi laus, et perhennetur
Omnis reverentia.
Floris cultu mens florescit,
Os cum manu revirescit
Floris ad obsequia.
1072. Neuma corr. Neupma B, nipham M
1075. Se dum M
1076. portum M
1082. conversatus, adversatus alternate reading M
1083. Inserted in margin B
1085. sanctitate B
1087. namet M
1090. datur corr. detur M
1093. mens
corr. M
1072.
1074.
1075.
1076.
1078.
1079.
1082.
1084.
1085.
1086.
1090.
1091.
1093.
1094.
1095.
Neupma, spiritus sanctus B
Auris, obedientia B
legatus, lictorus B; salutavit, Mariam, ne timeas Maria [ Vulg. Luc, 1, 30] B
animavit, acoraga Gallice B
Hie, incarnatione, et in Christo et in virgine Maria B; relativus, mutuus B
demonstrativus, alludit grammatice B
adversatus, ipse B
fluit, ipsa B
fulta, roborata B
Salus, illaB
Ore, verbis B; manu, opere B; mente, cogitatione B
perhennetur, perhennitur, extunditur B
cultu, per honorem B
Oy, sermoB
Floris, Marie B
152
1100
1105
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
60. DE THEOPHILO
Dignitatem presularem
Et honorem secularem
Affectat Theofilus.
Ilium, spreta fide Dei, *
Sibi ligat Sathanei
Blandimenti sibilus.
Set vir orat et perorat,
Pietatem dum inplorat
Virginis nectaream.
Aufert ilia servitutis
Hosti cartam et salutis
Viro reddit lauream.
61. DE CLERICO SUSPENSO QUEM BEATA VIRGO
LIBERAVIT
Hec latronem liberavit,
Et suspensum supportavit
1110
Et fovit per triduum,
Quia dixit illud Ave,
Dulce verbum et suave,
Sanctum et mellifluum.
1115
Quamvis penam renovarent,
Et plus guttur laquearent
Ministri suspendii,
Liber cepit monacari
Sub-title, lacking M
1096. [D]ignitatem, guide to rubricator 'd' B
1098. Theophilus M
1100. legat B, Sathaney M
1107. Virgo M
Sub-title, lacking M
1108. [H]ec, guide to rubricator 'h' B
1109. subportavit M
1115. plus guttur]
illegible M
1117. monachari M
1096.
1100.
1101.
1102.
1104.
1106.
1107.
1110.
1111.
1116.
1117.
Dignitatem, ecclesie, B; presularem, -lis B
legat, obligat B; Sathanei, Satene B
Blandimenti, fallacie B; sibilus, deceptio B
per orat, fecit propositum B
nectaream, dulcem B
salutis, quam ipse amiserat B
Viro, Theofilo B; lauream, coronam B
per triduum, tres dies B
Ave, Maria gratia etc. B
Ministri suspendii, sacelli prepositus B, hoc, viri B
Liber, liberatus B
Stella Marts
153
Et regine famulari
Spe salutis gaudii.
1120
1125
1130
1135
Oves ducis et reducis,
Virgo, mater pii ducis
Et pastoris ovium.
Pia, furem convertisti
Et suspensum dissolvisti
Ad vitam fidelium.
CONCLUSIO OPERIS
O Maria, dulcis, pia,
Vite via, sponsa dia,
Deitatis regia.
Miserere, nos tuere,
Oves gere, remedere
Egris, O pastoria.
Tu vocaris singularis
Stella maris, lux Solaris,
Portus, ratis anchora.
Flos decoris, ver viroris,
Nux dulcoris, vas honoris,
Castitatis camphora.
1119. celestis M
1121. pie B
1124. disolvisti M
Sub-title,
1126. [O], guide to rubricator 'o' B, ducis B
1134. navis M, ancora M
lacking
M
1118. regine, celi B
1120. Oves, fideles ecclesie B
1123.
Pia,tuB
1126. Maria, tu B
1127. dia, divina B
1128. regia, aula B
1130. gere, sustine B
1132. singularis, unica B
1133. lux, data a filio B
1134. anchora, tenens ecclesiam B
1135. Flos,taB
1137. camphora, species aromatica, est gummi cuiusdam arboris valens homini,
fennel, unde versus: Camphora per nares castat odore nares; camphora, scilicet
redolentia B;
Insita vis rebus, bonitas, virtus reditiva,
Complex complexio, Deus et homo, natura vocatur,
Camphora feniculis aqua sit coniuncta rosarum
Vase latens eris, macule remedentur ocelle top of folio B
154
1140
1145
1150
1155
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Tibi stilus inchoatur,
Tibi, virgo, finiatur
Eius inchoatio.
Linter portu defigatur
Que per mare naufragatur
Ventorum litigio.
Mare res est honerosa,
Venti plebs litigiosa,
Linter est ingenium.
Res onustat lintrem gravis, *
Plebs inpugnat verbis pravis
Studia dictantium.
Mens non potest meditari,
Lingue laudem preconari
Marie deficiunt.
Si camenam ars amenat,
Si mens Deo philomenat,
Hec duo sufficiunt.
Explicit liber magistri Iohannis de Garlandia de miraculis beate virginis.
1142. nafragatur B
1147. honustat M
1148. inpungnat M
B
1153. Si camenam corr. M
Colophon, lacking B
1138.
1140.
1141.
1142.
1143.
1144.
1145.
1147.
1148.
1149.
1151.
1153.
1154.
1155.
stilus, qualitafs] carminis B
Eius, mii B
Linter, hec, id est navis B; portu, fine B
Que, linter B; mare, materia[m] B
litigio, rabie B
Mare, gravis materia B
Venti, sunt B
Res, materia B; onustat, gravat B; lintrem, ingenium B
verbis pravis, detractionibus B
Studia, opera B
preconari, denuntiare B
camenam, musam B; ars, poetica B
philomenat, cantat Deo B
Cum vox vitam non remordet, dulcis est simphonia B
1150. mendicari
IV
NOTES ON THE LEGENDS
i. MILK: TONGUE AND LIPS RESTORED
A
CERTAIN worldly clerk was accustomed, upon entering any church
whatsoever, to repeat besides the Ave Maria, also Beatus venter, qui te
portavit, Christe, et beata ubera que te lactaverunt, etc. Once he became so desperately ill that he devoured his own tongue and lips in delirium. As he lay
unconscious, he saw his guardian angel at the head of his bed, beseeching the
Virgin in his behalf. The angel accused her of neglecting her servant whose
tongue had scarcely known how to utter any except her praise. The Virgin
came to the sick man then in haste, as if to compensate for her thoughtlessness,
and thrusting her breast into his mouth, healed him, so that he rose up whole
and well. He abandoned his worldly life and lived in the service of the Virgin.
MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°ls- 141-142*.
John of Garland's legend is only one form of the popular 'Milk' cycle. The
large number of legends employing this theme may be divided into four groups:
I. Monk Laid Out as Dead. In this form the tale is one of the TS series, appearing most commonly in English or Anglo-Norman collections,
A devout monk who besides the canonical hours sang the praises of the Virgin
was about to die with a disease of the mouth and throat. The brothers were administering the last rites when the Virgin healed him with her milk.
Latin. Dexter, pp. 54-57 (34). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, i i o - m (29). Kjellman,
pp. 175-176 (39). Neuhaus, Die Quellen, pp. 32-36; Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 63-65. Pez (ed.
Crane;, pp. 36-39 (30).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 66-72. Kjellman, pp. 176-180 (39).
French. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 126-128.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 79-80 (54).
English. Horstman, Minor Poems of the Vernon MS, pp. 164-166.
II. Fulbert of Chartres. The second version is Norman or Anglo-Norman
in origin,
Fulbert [bishop of Chartres, 1006-1028] caused the nativity of the Virgin to be
celebrated in France. Once when he lay at death's door, the Virgin healed him by
pouring three drops of her milk in his face.
Latin. Isnard, p. 54 (13). Kjellman, pp. 171-172 (38).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 130-135 (21). Kjellman, pp. 172-174 (38).
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta viiracoli, pp. 19-20 (7).
Norse. Mariu saga, 11, 724-725 (77).
III. Tongue and Lips Restored. In the third version, summarized above as
the original of John of Garland's verses, the 'Milk' cycle has joined hands with
15 6
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
another in which the Virgin restores parts of the body that have been lost. In
the late twelfth and early thirteenth centuries, this version is associated only
with collections made in northern France.
Latin. Pseudo-Celestine, p. 201 (3). Gobius, no. 6. Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no.
32. Isnard, pp. 38-40 (5). Kjellman, p. 308 (4). Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major),
pp. 448-449 (2). Pelbart, I, pt. iv, art. 2, ch. 4. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale,
VII (84).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 339-346. Kjellman, pp. 308-309 (4). Mielot
(ed. Laborde), pp. 107-108.
Provencal. Ulrich in Romania, vm (1879), 18-19 (5).
German. Johannes Bolte in Alemannia, xvn (1889), 17-18 (31).
'
Norse. Mariu saga, 11, 767-769.
IV. Twenty-three Plants in Flower. The 'Vision of Paradise' motive has
been added to 'Monk Laid Out as Dead.' Like the latter, the anecdote is English in origin.
Latin. Kjellman, pp. 240-244 (58).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 27-37 (6). Everard de Gateley in Romania,
xxix (1900), 37-44. Kjellman, pp. 245-253 (58).
2.
ABBESS: BISHOP COMES UNEXPECTEDLY
An abbess administered a community with such strictness that the nuns became envious and hateful. When she committed adultery with her steward,
they accused her to the bishop. The prelate arrived at the monastery unannounced. The abbess threw herself upon the floor of her chapel and continued
in tears of remorse and prayer until she slept. The Virgin then delivered the
child and committed him to two angels to be carried to a hermit in the vicinity.
When the bishop was about to expel the accusing nuns, the abbess related tne
miracle. Clerks sent to the hermit reported that a child had been brought by
two youths. He succeeded the bishop in his see. MS Bibliotheque Nationale
12593, fols. i93 v -io5 v .
There are two chief versions of the 'Abbess' legend, one associated with
northern France and the other with England:
I. Bishop Comes Unexpectedly. The anecdote belongs to the Pez collection,
although it is not one of those legends included in the oldest series, HM or TS.
It originated in northern France.
Latin. £tienne de Bourbon, pp. 114-115 (135). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vn, 69-73 (4)Gobius, no. 11. Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 24. Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium,
p. 71 (42). Isnard, pp. 40-42 (6). Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 51-55 (36). Vincent of Beauvais,
Speculum historiale, VII (86). Pelbart, XII, pars ultima, ch. 3 (1). Henmann of Bologna,
Viaticum narrationum, pp. 73-74 (50). Arnold of Liege, Alphabetum narrationum in Archiv
fur das Studium der neueren Sprachen, cxvm (1907), 74-75. Wright, Latin Stories, pp. 3840 (38).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Ulrich in Zeitschrift fur romanische Philologie, vi (1882),
334-339 (2). Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 44-46 (50), 73-75 (70); ed. Laborde, pp. 189-190
(50), 218-221 (70). Meon, Nouveau recueil, 11, 314-330. Langfors, Notices et extraits, xxxix*
(1916), 558-565. Legrand d'Aussy, v, 48-52, and Appendix, pp. i-<5.
English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, pp. n-12 (13). Tryon in Publications of the Modern
Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 349-350 (5).
Notes on the Legends
157
Provencal. Ulrich in Romania, vin (1879), 20-22 (8).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 14-15 (7). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 120-136 (21).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 121-126; 11, 900-004.
Ethiopian. Budge, The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary, pp. 38-40 (25), 68-71 (25); One
Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 75-78 (25).
II. Confidence Betrayed. The first seems to be the original version and the
second, a more dramatic redaction originating in England,
The abbess chooses one of her nuns, makes her stewardess, and reveals her plight.
Her confidant tells the archdeacon, and he reports it to the bishop. The child is
carried to a certain spiritual mother. The abbess confesses when her accusers are
about to be thrown into a fire built to consume her.
Latin. Herbert in Romania, xxxn (1903), 417-418. Kjellman, pp. 60-61 (13).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar, ed. Herbert in Romania, xxxn (1903), 418-421. Kjellman, pp. 62-67
(13)-
English. John Small, English Metrical Homilies (Edinburgh, 1862), pp. 164-171.
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta miracoli, pp. 37-38 (16).
3. J E W I S H B O Y : COVERED W I T H H E R CLOAK
A Jewish boy, the son of a glassblower in the East, was sent to learn his letters
with Christian boys. On a feast day along with his companions, he partook of
the body and the blood of Christ. Returning to his father's arms, he related
what he had done. The horrified parent threw him into his glowing furnace,
heaping in wood to make it hotter still. The mother, hearing of the deed, filled
the city with her cries. When the Christian inhabitants appeared, they saw the
boy sitting in the furnace 'as if on the softest feathers.' They seized the Jewish
father and threw him into the flames. He was so completely consumed that
there were scarcely any traces of him left. The child said that the woman whom
he had seen in the church holding a little child in her arms had protected him
with her cloak. He was baptized and many other Jews of that city with him.
MS Paris Bibliothdque Nationale 11491, fols. 23-23".
The legend of the Jewish boy appears in Latin collections in four chief
versions:
I. Lady Dressed in Purple. The legend which gave rise to this first series
was told in the East in the sixth century by the church historian Evagrius Scholasticus (d. before 601) as happening when Menas was patriarch of Constantinople (536-552)i1
It was an ancient custom that the left-over communion bread should be given to
the children of the primary schools. Among them was a Jewish glassblower's son
who reported what he had done to his father. The mother was standing before the
door of the workshop calling his name, when she heard his voice from the furnace.
He said that a woman dressed in purple had come often, sprinkled the coals with
water, and fed him. The father was crucified at the order of Justinian.
In several Latin versions clearly related to Evagrius Scholasticus, the father
instead of being crucified or stoned to death, as is sometimes the case, is cast
into his own furnace. Such a version is found among the miracles of Johannes
*Eugen Wolter, Der Judenknabe (Halle, 1879), pp. 28-29, prints this Greek text along
with others.
158
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Monachus, translated from the Greek in the ninth century.2 The brief version
printed by Wolter is clearly descended from Johannes Monachus.3
Greek. Evagrius Scholasticus, 'EicicXij<ria<micii UrropU, IV, 36 (Turin, 1748), p . 377. Nicephorus Callistus, Ecclesiasticae historiae, XVII, 25 (Paris, 1630), 11, 71-73. Acta sanctorum, 2$
August (Venice, 1754), p. 170.
Latin. Caesar Baronius, Annales ecclesiastici, anno $$2, x (Lucca, 1741), 82. Johannes Monachus, pp. 44-45 (5). Eugen Wolter, Der Judenknabe (Halle, 1914), p . 55 (15).
French. Hugh of Fleury, Histoire ecclesiastique (Paris, 1740), VII, 432-433.
II. Jewish Boy Baptized. The second redaction goes back also to a Greek
original whose author is unknown. It, too, came to the western world through
the medium of Johannes Monachus. His Latin version is substantially a translation of the Greek version printed by Wolter,4
Some Christian boys pasturing sheep in Lesser Armenia baptized a little Jew with
water they had brought along. The incident became known to the parents by means
of a particularly exquisite odor. They made a bargain with the Jewish keeper of the
baths to burn him in the furnace. The bishop, finding the water cold, began to investigate, and when the doors of the furnace were opened, a boy came forth who
said that he had been protected by a very beautiful lady. And everyone knew her to
be the mother of God.
Greek. Anonymous, ed. Wolter, op. cit^ pp. 36-38 (5).
Latin. Hilka, 111,159-160 (38); Meister, pp. 147-149 (18). Johannes Monachus, pp. 46-49 (6).
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and "Ten Miracles, pp. 217-219 (59).
III. Covered With Her Cloak. The translations of Johannes Monachus gave
the West two fresh versions of the anecdote, but long before it had been
popularized there by the Merovingian bishop, Gregory of Tours. His narrative
is nearer to Evagrius Scholasticus than to the second Greek source. The text
of Agapios Landos, a monk of Crete in the seventeenth century, is a translation
of Gregory of Tours. Gobius attributes his version of the tale to the Mariale
magnum.
Greek. Agapios Landos, ed. Wolter, op. cit., pp. 34-35 (4).
Latin. Gregory of Tours, In gloria martyrum, I, 9 (ed. Wilhelm Arndt and Bruno Krusch,
Gregorii Turonensis opera, 11 [Hanover, 1885], 494). Paschasius Radbertus, Liber de corpore
et sanguine Domini, Migne, PX., cxx, 1298-1299. Floardus, De triumphis Christi sanctorumque
Palaestinae, ibid-, cxxxv, 493-494. Sigibert of Gembloux, Chronica, anno $$2, (ed. L. C. Bethmann, M.GH^ Scriptores, vi, Hanover, 1844), p. 317. Gobius, under Corpus Christi. Hugo
of Trimberg, Solsequium, p. 70 (39). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XXI (78).
Anonymi in Wolter, op. cit^ pp. 50-51 (11), 54 (14), and 57-59 (17).
French. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 101-102. Anonymi in Wolter, op. cit^ pp. 86-107 (22)
and 108-114 (23).
English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, pp. 210-211 (308). Tryon in Publications of the
Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 351-352 (7).
German. Bar, Marienlegenden, pp. 161-162 (22). Bolte in Alemannia, XVII (1889), 24 (45).
Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 237-260 (25); 'Predigtmarlein,' Germania, m (1858), 430-431
(22).
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 156-157 (44).
* The work which Johannes Monachus translated is based in part on the Pratum spirituale
of Johannes Moschos (c. 570-620).
* Theodor Pelizaeus, Beitrage zur Geschichte der Legende vom Judenknaben (Halle, 1914),
pp. 16-18, did not know the version as the work of Johannes Monachus.
* Wolter gives no date.
Notes on the Legends
159
IV. Jew of Bourges. The naturalization of the tale in the West was completed when it was included in the Pez collection with a setting at Bourges.
Here it is related on the authority of a monk of St. Nicholas of Clusa. The
festival is Easter. The calling of the father has been forgotten as well as the
reason for the boy's presence in the church. A picture of the Virgin over the
altar seems to offer the eucharist to the child. In some versions it is the Virgin's
sleeve which protects the boy, in others merely her clothing, and in still others
no garment is mentioned. The treatment of the Jewish father is not always unsympathetic. He is sometimes converted. In the unprinted collection of St.
Germain-des-Pres5 the child preserves the bread in his mouth whole until he
returns to his father, and then the miracle assumes the form of a Jew versus
Christian dispute.
Latin.* Pseudo-Celestine, p. 200 (2). Dexter, pp. 32-33 (19). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII,
68-69 (3). Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 18. Hilka, m, 147-148 (29); Meister, pp.
141-142 (13). Isnard, p. 38 (4). Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse), pp. 515-516 (cxLx, 5). Meyer
in Notices et extraits, xxxvi (1899), 49-50. Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 10-12; Die Quellen,
pp. 52-53. Pez (ed. Gane), pp. 39-40 (31).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 18-27 (5). Wolter, op. cit^ pp. 115-122 (24).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 281-286. Isnard, pp. 313-314. Meyer, op. cit^
pp. 49-50. Mussafia in Zeitschrift fiir romanische Philologie, ix (1885), 412-413.
English. Horstman, Minor Poems of the Vernon MS, pp. 149-154.
German. Anton E. Schonbach, 'Bruchstuck des Jvidel,' Zeitscbrift fiir deutscbes Altertum,
XLVII (1903), 278-280. Karl Bartsch, 'Die Legende vom Judenknaben,' Germania, XXVII (1882),
130-135.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 6-7 (4). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 88-93 (16). Gayangos,
El libro de los enxemplos, p. 495 (200).
Italian. Ulrich in Romania, xm (1884), 54-55 (52).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 71-72; 11, 989-990.
4. SON RESTORED
The sterile wife of a certain knight came frequently to a monastery in France
to beseech the Virgin for a child. A son born to her soon died of a fever. He
was restored when she again visited the monastery. MS Paris Bibliotheque
Nationale 12593, fols. 170-171.
A legend of the Pez collection, the tale is most frequently related in the collections of northern France.
Latin. Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 79-81 (10). Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 29-30 (24).
French. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 28-29 (31); ed. Laborde, p. 172 (31).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 32-33 (21).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 352-353
(8).
Norse. Mariu saga, 11, 977-979.
5. DEVIL IN BEASTS' SHAPES
A sacristan, devoted to Mary, got dead drunk in the cellar of his monastery.
As he was attempting to go through the cloister into the church, he saw the
1
MS Paris Bibliotbeque Nationale 12593, fols. 133-133'* In this list are some texts that have the characteristics of both the Gregory of Tours and
the 'Bourges' redaction, and others so brief as to make a clear choice between one or the other
classification impossible.
160
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
devil in the shape of a great bull. A maiden flourished a white handkerchief
and ordered him away. Then as the monk approached the church, a dog with
terrible teeth leaped at him. Again the girl came and drove the animal away.
Once inside the church he faced a roaring lion ready to spring. This time the
virgin beat the beast soundly and threatened to do worse. Taking the monk
by the hand, she led him up to bed and tucked him in tenderly. In answer to
his anxious questions, she told him that she was Mary, the mother of God. MS
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°k- 168-169.
The legend was, in all probability, suggested by an incident in the mediaeval
biographies of St. Dunstan, how the devil appeared to him in the form of a
bear, a dog, and a fox. Unsuccessful in his attempt to beat him with a stick, the
saint drove him away with a psalm.7 The story, transformed as a Mary legend,
first appears in the TS series. The author of the middle English version of MS
Additional 39996, fol. 70, uses the meager data supplied by John of Garland to
weave a tale for which there is no precedent. There is a folk flavor in the power
of the rod which the Virgin gives the monk,
A monk was followed by the devil, now transformed as a bull with big black
hoofs, now a raging lion, again a mad dog. No writing which he could obtain would
save him. He appealed to the Virgin. One night as he slept, he saw her holding a rod
in her hand and heard her say that if only he should have faith in the rod, the devil
would flee before it. Wherever the monk went he carried it with him. When the
devil showed himself in the form of a mad dog, the monk set upon him with the
magic weapon. The demon roared so loudly that all the inmates of the monastery
came to witness the miracle, and the devil 'sank to hell right in that place.'
Latin. Dexter, pp. 46-48 (31). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vn, 104-105 (25). Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 4. Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, p. 69 (37). Kjellman, pp. 188189 (42). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 61-62; Die Quellen, pp. 37-39. Pez (ed. Crane),
pp. 27-29 (23).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 50-55 (9). Kjellman, pp. 189-193 (42).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 315-332. Kjellman, pp. 303-304 (69), 309-310
(5). Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 111-112.
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 353354 <9>Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 70-71 (47).
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta mrracoli, pp. 39-41 (18).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 115—117; 11, 842-844.
Ethiopian. Budge, The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary, pp. 72-73 (38), 136-137 (38);
One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 135-136 (37), 172 (48).
6. BARNS FILLED
,
It happened that a wealthy monastery in Jerusalem fell upon evil times, so
that there was not even food for the monks. After a night of devotion they
found their barns bursting with grain, so that they could scarcely lock the door.
Many years afterward the same situation arose again, and after their prayers
they found a great quantity of gold upon the altar. With this they bought food
and divided it among the people. These miracles are ascribed to the Virgin.
MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°l- "So.
'William Stubbs, Memorials of St. Dunstan (Rolls Series, London, 1874), pp. 273-274.
Notes on the Legends
161
The two anecdotes from Gregory of Tours' In gloria martyrum are not
found in collections known to originate in England in the first half of the
thirteenth century, nor is the anonymous Englishman who used the Stella maris
in the fifteenth century familiar with them.
Latin. Gregory of Tours, (ed. Arndt and Krusch), 11, 494-495 (9). Floardus, De triumphis
Christi sanctorumque Palaestinae, I, 4, Migne, P. L., cxxxv, 495-496. Hilka, in, 158-159 (37);
Meister, pp. 146-147 (17).
French. Meyer in Notices et extraits, xxxiv1 (1895), 48-50.
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (192}), 354355 d°>Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 595-596, 598-599; 11, 1187-1188.
7. SARACEN AND M A R Y I M A G E
A Saracen had a picture of the Virgin to which he prayed, but he could not
believe wholly in the incarnation of Christ and the virgin birth. In order to
remove these doubts, the breasts of the image became flesh, and oil began to
flow from them. The Saracen believed then and was baptized. MS Bibliotheque
Nationale 12j£j, fol. 136.
The tale of the Saracen has the general characteristics of a cycle of legends
about pictures which is eastern in origin, although it has not been traced to a
source in that part of the world. It is similar in some respects to the miracle
of Sardenay, which is concerned with a picture in a church near Damascus.
The Saracens prayed to it 'according to their law,' and it too exuded oil.8 The
tale as it is told in the Stella maris belongs exclusively to the collections of
northern France and those related to them.
Latin. Mussafia in Denkschriften, XLIV, 37. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII
(119).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 505-512.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 69-70 (46).
8. BRIDEGROOM: RING ON FINGER.
35. TRANSPORTED TO A REMOTE REGION
In ancient times an image of the Virgin had been placed before the doors
of a church to collect alms for the restoration of the building. Some little clerks
were playing ball in front of it. One of them went to find a safe place for a
ring which a girl had given him as a pledge of love. As he stood before the
statue, the youth was so struck with the beauty of it that he exclaimed, 'Thou
art more beautiful than any woman, even than she who gave me this ring.
Henceforth I will serve only thee.' The image closed its finger upon the ring.
The boy forgot his vow and married the girl. That night the Virgin, displaying
the ring, appeared between them, accusing the clerk of infidelity. The youth
awoke, but when he slept again the Virgin became angry and threatening. He
arose, went secretly to a hermit, and became a monk. MS Bibliotheque Nationale
12593, tote. i34 T -»35-
* For a full account of the Sardenay miracle see Gaston Raynaud, *Le miracle de Sardenai,'
Romania, xi (1882), 519-537 and xiv (1885), 82-93. See also Stella maris, no. 18, another image
from which oil emanated.
\6z
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
At least six separate redactions of this cycle of legends, to which Mussafia
gives the name 'Brautigam,' can be distinguished:9
I. Roman Noble. The first version, derived from a homily attributed to the
Venerable Bede, appears to be the most ancient form of the Mary legend,10
A Roman clerk of noble birth, devoted to the Virgin, is about to marry. Just before the feast he remembers that he has forgotten to recite the None. Entering a
church, he sees the Virgin sitting before the altar. She is saying, 'Why have you left
me to marry another? Am I not your beloved? Am I not beautiful enough? You
will not find another who has greater beauty than I, will you?' The clerk renounces
his bride upon the advice of Pope Zephirinus [199-217].
A version of MS British Museum Additional 11579, f°ls- n - i 2 v , names Pope
Severinus (638-640). The tale in this form is told in the Latin collections made
in England.11
II. Clerk of Pisa. This second version of the 'Bridegroom' tale is one of the
HM legends,
A noble and wealthy canon of the church of St. Cassian in Pisa is persuaded by his
parents to marry. On the way to his nuptials he is reminded that he has neglected the
hours of the Virgin. She warns him not to marry in a severe voice, and that night he
leaves his bride to serve the Virgin, it is believed, in another region.
Latin. Dexter, pp. 30-31 (17). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vi, 420-421 (3) and VII, 128-129 (43).
Isnard, p. 50 (11). Hugo of Trimberg, Sohequium, p. 74 (52). Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse),
p. 592 (131). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 47-48. Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 18-19 (16). Klapper, Exempla, p. 40 (50).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 627-648. Kjoilman, p. 290 (45). Mielot (ed.
Warner), p. 10 (9); ed. Laborde, pp. 92-93, 152 (9). Wyrembek and Morawski, op. cit.,
pp. 31-35.
Anglo-Norman. Kjellman, pp. 126-130 (30).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 198-201 (132). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 83-87 (15).
Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos, p. 496 (202).
English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, p. 317 (465).
German. Bar, Marienlegenden, pp. 39-40 (1). Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 53-57 (7).
Hagen, Gesammtabenteuer, in, 508-511 (81).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 129-130; 11, 756-757.
HI. Brother of the King of Hungary. T h e third version first makes its appearance in a sermon attributed to Anselm of Canterbury, 12
In the time of Charles, king of the Franks, a clerk, brother of the king of Hungary,
recited the hours of the Virgin with great devotion before he decided to marry. The
mass had been celebrated, when he remembered that he had neglected her. As he
came to the None the Virgin, accompanied by two angels, warned him to leave his
earthly bride and to celebrate the feast of the Conception on the sixth of the Ides of
* A brief study of these legends has recently been made by Anna Wyrembek and Jozef
Morawski, Let legendes du 'Fhnce de la Vierge,' Poznan, 1934. Poznanskie Towarzystwo
Frzyjaciol Nauk. Trace Komisji Filologicznej, VII, 3. These authors divide the legends into
three groups according as their hero is a clerk, a knight, or a child, and include a wider range
of legends
than are considered here.
10
Homilia LIX: De sancta Maria virgine, Migne, PX., xciv, 422-423.
"See Ward, Catalogue of Romances, 11, 671 (11) and Herbert, ibid., m, 529 (19) and
680a(55).
Pseudo-Anselm, Sermo de conceptione beate Marie, Migne, PX., CLIX, 320-321.
Notes on the Legends
163
December. He entered a monastery in another country and became patriarch of
Aquileia.
The same story is told of a 'brother of King Charles'" who was perhaps a
certain Frederick, an illegitimate son of Charles the Bald. He was abbot of
Fulda and later patriarch of Aquileia near the beginning of the tenth century.
Latin. Pseudo-Anselm in Migne P.L., CLIX, 320-321. Hilka, m, 187-188 (70); Meister, pp. 176—
•77 (5°)- G J 1 de Zamora in Boletin, vi, 418-419, and xm, 190-191 (53). Gobius, no. 24.
Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), p. 302 (9). Pelbart, XII, pars ultima, ch. 6 (4).
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta miracoli, pp. 69-70 (40).
IV. Transported to a Remote Region (Stella marts, no. 35). The fourth
version has the characteristics of both the first and the second. The suggestion
in the 'Clerk of Pisa' version, that the clerk may have served the Virgin in a
remote region, has become a leading feature of the story, 14
A wealthy youth loved chastity and recited the hours of the Virgin before each
meal. As he was sitting at his wedding feast he suddenly remembered the neglected
hours. In the church he saw the Virgin standing far off with eyes averted from him.
She rebuked him indignantly and he repented. 'Are you prepared for love of me to
leave your wife and marriage?,' she said. When he agreed she took him by the hand
and transported him to a remote region. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale i2;gj, fols.
I63 V -I64 V .
T h e tale in this particular form appears in almost all the great manuscript collections of northern France.
Latin. Pseudo-Celestine, p. 204 (7). Isnard, pp. 58-61 (16).
French. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 158 (20); ed. Warner, pp. 15-16 (20).
V . Love by Black Art. The central theme of another cycle of Mary legends,
the 'pact with the devil,' 15 is in the fourth series added to the 'Clerk of Pisa'
version. As in the first and fourth redaction, the climax comes just before the
wedding feast. The tale in this form belongs to the Pez collection,
A bishop had a poor clerk who worshipped the Virgin devoutly, until he fell in
love with a rich and noble girl, already betrothed to a wealthy knight. By means of
lore which he found in a book of magic he made an agreement with the devil to win
the love of the girl. The mass was celebrated without the None, but before the young
man sat down to the feast, he insisted upon repeating the hours. The Virgin threatened to desert him, as he had deserted her. Thereafter the clerk served the Virgin,
and when he died, she came and led him to paradise.
Latin, fetienne de Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, pp. 120 (140). Gil de Zamora in Boletin,
vi, 421-422 and VII, 127-128 (42). Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, p. 71 (41). Pez (ed. Crane),
pp. 47-51 (35). William of Malmesbury (ed. Mussafia, IV, 53—79).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 158-168 (27) and Mussafia, IV, 53-79. Anonymous, Mussafia, IV, 53-79.
"Hilka, m, 187-188 (70).
" Paull Franklin Baum, 'The Young Man Betrothed to a Statue,' Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxiv (1919), 555, does not recognize this tale as a redaction
separate from the 'Clerk of Pisa' version, of which he thinks it may be the 'original or primitiveu form.'
For a discussion of the relation of this motive to this particular legend, see Wyrembek
and Morawski, op. cit^ pp. 6-8.
164
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
French. Wyrembek and Morawski, op. c/f, pp. 48-50. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 20-21 (25);
ed. Laborde, pp. 162-164 (25).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 187-190 (125).
VI. Ring on Finger. The original of this version seems to be a tale similar
to that told by William of Malmesbury,16
A young Roman, newly-married and about to play ball, placed his ring upon the
outstretched finger of an image of Venus. When he came back to get it, the finger
had closed upon it. .That night a thick cloud seemed to come between him and his
bride out of which a voice announced the presence of Venus, who claimed him as her
bridegroom. A priest, learned in the magic arts, instructed the boy to go to a certain
crossroads and there to give a letter silently to the central figure of a curious procession of demons. The demon, recognizing the seal, lifted his hands to God crying,
'How much longer, O God, art thou going to permit the iniquities of the priest
Palumbus?' The bridegroom was delivered from the power of Venus; and Palumbus,
recognizing that his end was near, confessed to the pope. He died a miserable death.
Some of the manuscripts of the Gesta regum Anglorum, the group which Stubbs
considered the most authentic, say that the story was told by Roman mothers to
their children.17 Huet thinks that it originated in Rome in the tenth or eleventh
century.18 Baum in the most recent study of the legend finds no adequate reason
for dating it before 1100.19 Venus has the character of a demon, and the only
suggestion of Christianity is Palumbus' confession. The Mary legend of MS
Paris 12$93, summarized above as the version used by John of Garland, represents an amalgamation between the 'Clerk of Pisa' story and the original Venus
tale in the opinion of Baum.20
In the German vernacular the story of the Venus image is converted into
a tale illustrating the triumph of Christianity over paganism. The version of
the Kaiserchronik, probably composed at Ratisbonne between 1135 and 1150,
goes as follows:21
"William of Malmesbury, Gesta regum Anglorum (ed. Stubbs, London, 1887), 1, 256-258.
Told also by other English chroniclers; Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XXV, ch.
29; Klapper, Exempla, pp. 40-41 (51); Recall de eximplis, n, 255-257 (648); and An Alphabet
of Tales, pp. 488-489 (730).
"The statement is included in the text as edited by George Waitz (Hanover, 1852),
Af.GJ/, Scriptores, x, 472. Gaston Paris, 'La legende de Rome au moyen age,' Journal des
savants (1884), p. 567, believed it to be a very ancient tale.
" Gedeon Huet, 'La legende de la statue de Venus,' Revue de Thistoire des religions, LXVIII
(1913), 217. Others give it dates in the eleventh century. Vincent of Beauvais puts it about
1050, and klapper in the time of Leo IX (1048-1054).
" Baum, op. cit^ p. 524.
"Ibid^ pp. 570-571. Baum (p. 550) is unable to explain the appearance of the statement in
Gautier de Coincy that the image was standing before a ruined church to attract alms, although it is not found in MS Paris 18134, which he regards as the source of Gautier de
Coincy, nor in Vincent of Beauvais. This apparent difficulty merely helps to confirm the
theory of the relationship between these collections constructed in the first part of this volume. The statement about the image and the church is to be found in all the great Latin
collections made in northern France from which Gautier de Coincy and the 'Mariale' collections used by Vincent of Beauvais are descended. Vincent of Beauvais' version is an abbreviated form of the Mariale magnum, and this particular legend of MS Paris 18134 is a briefer
Latin prose redaction of Gautier de Coincy. Since the statement is not in any way essential
to the narrative, both omitted it.
n
Kaiserchronik (ed. Edward Schroder, Hanover, 1892), 11. 130676*. (M.GH^ Deutsche
Chroniken, 1, 3i8ff.).
Notes on the Legends
165
In the time of the emperor Theodosius there were two noble brothers at Rome
who remained pagan in spite of the emperor's wishes. As the younger was climbing
an old wall to recover a lost ball, he saw an image of Venus beckoning to him. He
fell madly in love with it, giving his ring as a token. When he seemed about to die
of the malady, he promised that he would turn Christian, if he should be cured. The
emperor's chaplain, Eusebius, learned in magic, ordered the devil to return the ring.
The statue concealed a magic herb. It was reconstructed and consecrated to the
archangel Michael.
In Huet's opinion this version is a reworking of the William of Malmesbury
story, and this narrative and that of Julian, also told in the Kaiserchronik, come
from a hypothetical collection of narratives centering about Roman emperors.22
If so, the miracle of the 'Chaste Empress' should be included as a third.23
The tale of the Vie des anciens peres in the French vernacular is probably
older than the thirteenth century, the date of the manuscript in which it appears,
A newly married youth exercising in the Coliseum, to which Gregory the Great
has had all the heathen images brought, places his ring upon the finger of a stone
image, saying playfully, 'With this, woman, I espouse thee.' A hand with the ring
upon it comes between him and his bride, and they appeal to the pope. A hermit
advises them to contribute a Mary image to St. Maria Rotunda, and the ring is found
upon its finger. The token is restored, and the new statue attracted many offerings.24
Baum believes that this tale developed independently from the Venus tale.25
His theory, however, leaves much to be explained. The appeasement of the
Virgin instead of the use of magic and the appeal to a hermit suggest the Mary
legend. Moreover, the Mary image attracted alms, a detail which is found in
the Mary legend whenever it is told in full, as it is in the large manuscript collections of the Bibliotheque Nationale.
The 'Bridegroom' theme in general was a popular one in the middle ages. A
tale is told of Edmund Rich, archbishop of Canterbury, 12 34-1240, how when
he dedicated himself to the religious life, he placed a ring engraved with the
angelic salutation upon the finger of a Mary image, and how an identical ring
was buried with him in his grave.26 The author of a mediaeval guidebook to
Rome tells of seeing an image of Christ in a chapel at Saint Peter's which had
in the same manner taken the ring of a woman. The ring still appeared upon
the ringer of the image.27 Pieces of jewelry, other than rings, were used as
tokens in other Mary legends.
Latin. Pseudo-Celestine, p. 202 (4). Gobius, no. 13. Isnard, pp. 42-44 (7). Magnum speculum
exemplorum (ed. Major), p. 449 (3). Mussafia, Denkschriften, pp. 35-37. Pelbart, XII, pars
ultima, ch. 4 (1). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (87). Arnold of Liege,
Alphabetum narrationum, in Archiv fur das Studium der neueren Sprachen, cxvm (1907), 78.
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 353-360. Meon, Nouveau recueil, 11, 293-313.
Wyrembek and Morawski, op. « r , p. 52. Legrand d'Aussy, v, 53-55.
ffl
Huet, op. cit., pp. 203-205. See above, pp. 16 and 20.
" See notes on Stella marts, no. 14.
M
D . M. Meon, Nouveau recueil, 11, 293-313. A somewhat similar version is told by Mielot
(ed. Laborde), pp. 128-131.
* Baum, op. cit^ p. 556.
"Laurentius Surras, Historiae seu vitae sanctorum, 16 November (Turin, 1879), X1523.
Told as an exemplum by a Dominican preacher in the fourteenth century. See Arthur Langfors in Notices et extraits, xxxix* (1916), 594-595.
"Mirabilia Romae (ed. Gustavus Parthey, Berlin, 1869), p. 53. See Baum, op. ciu pp. 523~
579, for other tales.
166
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Provengal. Ulrich in Romania, vm (1884), 22-23 (9)*
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 62-64 (4 2 )- Recull de eximplis, 11, 188-189 (579)English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, pp. 438-439 (656). Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 355-356 (11).
Dutch. C. G. N . de Vooys, Middelnederlandsche Legenden en Exempelen (Gravenhage,
1900), pp. 90-91 (a combination of several versions).
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 256-258 (67).
9.
TOLEDO
As the archbishop of Toledo was celebrating mass on the day of the Assumption, the voice of the Virgin Mary was heard complaining that the Jews were
trying to torture her Son again on the cross. Some Jews were found re-enacting
the death of Christ upon a waxen image which was as if living. The Jews were
handed over to be killed. MS Paris Btbliotheque Nationale 12593, fol. i3o v -i3i.
The legend of the Christ image mistreated is the first of the TS series. It may
possibly have had its origin in a persecution of the Jews in Toledo on August
15, IIOQ.28 The charge here leveled against the Jews was not an unusual one
in the middle ages.29
Latin. Dexter, pp. 39-40 (24). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vii, 74-75 (6). Gobius, no. 2. Herolt,
Promptuarium exemplorum, de P, no. 46. Kjellman, pp. 136-137 (32). Neuhaus, Die lat.
Vorlagen, pp. 51-52; Die Quellen, pp. 29-32. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII
(81).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 57-62 (11). Kjellman, pp. 137-141 (32).
French. Kjellman, pp. 292-293 (51). Mielot (ed. Warner), p. 12 (14); ed. Laborde, pp. 98,
154 ('4>Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 20-21 (12). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 101-104 (18).
Provencal. Ulrich in Romania, vm (1879), 15-16 (2).
English. F. J. Furnival, Early English Poevis (Berlin, 1862), pp. 42-43 (11).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 110-111; n, 722-724.
10.
PILGRIM IN THE SEA
A ship, laden with pilgrims bound for Jerusalem, was about to go down in
the Mediterranean. As those of higher rank, among them a bishop, were being
transferred to a small boat, one of them fell into the sea. Not long after, the
bishop and his companions beheld the souls of those who had gone down with
the ship ascending to heaven in the form of doves. When they reached port,
they found the pilgrim who had fallen into the sea alive. He said that he had
gone down to the very bottom calling upon the name of the Virgin, and that
she had wrapped her cloak about him and brought him safely to shore. MS
Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. 172-173.
The legend of the pilgrim is most frequently, though not invariably, told
in conjunction with 'Light on the Masthead.' Gobius alters the story to give
the drowned pilgrim a more prominent role. He is a squire attending the bishop,
and he had previously been greatly devoted to the Virgin. The bishop (it is
not clear by what means) observes that the soul of the squire is missing. The
cloak of the Virgin is spread 'like a tent' over the squire.
* Fita in Boletin, VII, 75.
"See also Stella maris, no. 21.
Notes on the Legends
167
Latin. Crane in Romanic Review, u (1911), 241 (2). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 92-94
(18). Gobius, no. 10. Heroic, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 39. Hilka, m, 178-179 (59);
Meister, pp. 166-168 (39). Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 32-33 (27). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum
historiale, VII (88).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 603-616. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 29-30 (33);
ed. Laborde, pp. 173-174 (33).
Provengal. Ulrich in Romania, vm (1879), 23 (10).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 49-50 (33). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 137-145 (22).
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta miracoli, pp. 44-45 (23).
11. M E A D
Ancient narrators tell how in Great Britain a wealthy noblewoman, devoted
to the Virgin, frequently entertained the king. The servants who came before
on one occasion informed her that she had enough of every sort of drink except
mead. She besought the Virgin for help. As a result, the more that was drawn
from her tun, the fuller it became. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593,
fols.
This anecdote, one of the TS series, has its origin in a story appearing in the
mediaeval biographies of St. Dunstan. Osbern, *B\ Eadmer, and William of
Malmesbury all relate it as happening when Lady Ethelfleda (or Elgifu) of
Glastonbury entertained king Athelstan. At least two principal versions of it
are included in collections of Mary legends. The Latin version of MS Oxford
Balliol 240, printed by Kjellman, and the Anglo-Norman versions give the name
of the king and the place. In MS Cleopatra C x, printed by Neuhaus, the names
and the places are said to have been forgotten. The latter is the form in which
the miracle appears in the great Latin collections of northern France. In the
versions of John of Garland, Mielot, and Alfonso el Sabio, it is wine that lacks.
Latin. Memorials of St. Dunstan (ed. Stubbs), pp. 17-18, 86-87, 175—176. and 265-266. Dexter,
pp. 38-39 (23). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 81-82 (11). Kjellman, p. 224 (52). Neuhaus,
Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 67-69; Die Quellen, pp. 48-51.
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 206-209 (33). Kjellman, pp. 224-226 (52).
French. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. n-12 (13); ed. Laborde, pp. 95-96, 154 (13). Mussafia, V,
47-48 <49>Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 34-35 (23).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 357 (12).
12.
W O M A N REVIVED FOR CONFESSION
A certain woman living in the territory of Lincoln (or Langres) had committed a sin as a young girl which she was ashamed to confess to a priest,
although she often revealed it before an image of the Virgin. Observing her
reticence, the priest sent her to a Cluniac prior. When she died sentence was
passed upon her, but at Mary's request the celestial court ruled that her soul
might return to her body for confession. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (117).
Two versions of this tale are related, one a Cluniac version and the other
a Cistercian tale. The first, as told by John of Garland, Vincent of Beauvais,
and the vernacular version of the Rosarius is briefer and less circumstantial than
the second. The confusion between Langres (Lingonensis) and Lincoln (Lin-
168
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
colnensis or Linconensis) is probably the result of a scribal error. The second
version is that of the Exordium magnum ordinis Cisterciensis, part of which
was composed by Conrad d'Eberbach before 1221.80 The tale is repeated twice
in briefer form by Herolt.
Latin. Exordium magnum ordinis Cisterciensis, Migne, P J . , CLXXXV", 1129—1131 ( j ) . Herolt,
Fromptuarium exemplorum, de C, no. 22; Promptuarium de miracidis, no. 68. Vincent of
Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (117).
French. Cf. Morawski in Romania, LXI (1935), 3*0-3*1 (38) and note 8.
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 344345 <*)•
13.
COLUMNS RAISED
Workmen building a basilica in honor of the Virgin for the emperor Constantine were unable to erect the columns because of their great size. The Virgin
showed them how to adjust the pulleys and the ropes, and then instructed
them to call to their assistance three children from the schools. MS Bibliotheque
Nationale 17491, fols. 22^23.
The tale is one of the three legends from Gregory of Tours' In gloria martyrum, told by John of Garland.31 The Latin collections of northern France
place the incident in the time of Constantine, as does Gregory of Tours; other
versions simply mention Constantinople. Since there is no record of a church
dedicated to the Virgin as early as the fourth century, it is not possible to allow
the legend so remote an origin. The fact is that miraculous raisings of churches
dedicated to the Virgin are common in the literature of the middle ages, and
occur in widely scattered places.82
The anecdote as told by the anonymous Englishman who worked from the
Stella maris has only a very tenuous connection with his original,
A goodman spent all his money building a chapel to the Virgin, and still it was
incomplete. After the masons had gone he labored single-handed, until the Virgin
came with a 'wyndas' to help him. Three innocents accompanied her and 'wonde up
mony a stone.'
Latin. Gregory of Tours, (ed. Arndt and Krusch), 11,493 (8). Floardus, De triumphis Christi
sanctorumque Palaestinae, Migne, P.L, cxxxv, 493-494 (2). Gobius, no. 1. Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 7. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (81).
French. Meyer in Notices et extraits, xxxrv* (1895), 47-48.
Provencal. Ulrich in Romania, VIII (1879), 15 (1).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 320-321 (231).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 34534<S (3).
Norse. Mariu saga, 11, 922.
14. CHASTE EMPRESS
A Roman emperor set out on a pilgrimage, leaving his kingdom in the charge
of his wife and a younger brother. The youth became enamored of the empress and made advances to her. She allowed him to build a high tower, and
" J . T . Welter, L'exemplum dans la litterature religieuse et didactique du moyen age
(Paris, 1927), p. 44.
a
Stella maris, nos. 3, 6, and 13.
" See the founding of Bobbio by the monk Jonas in Vita Columbani, Scriptores rerum
Germanicarum (ed. Bruno Krusch, Hanover, 1905), I, 30.
Notes on the Legends
169
then lured him into it. Freed at the emperor's return, he hastened out to meet
his brother and to poison his mind against the empress. The emperor ordered
her to be taken deep into the woods to be beheaded. When the executioners
tried to mistreat her and she had called upon the Virgin for help, her prayers
were heard by a noble knight returning from the Holy Land. He took her to
his home to become the nurse of his only child. There the brother of her benefactor fell in love with her. When she refused his offers, he contrived to have
the child murdered as it slept in her arms and the bloody sword left in her hands.
The knight took her to a port and gave her over to sailors about to leave for
foreign lands. After repulsing their attempt upon her chastity, she was left
high upon a rock in the midst of the sea. As she slept, the Virgin came and
ordered her to gather the herb under her head. When the woman had filled
her leather gloves, a ship sent from heaven carried her back to the city where
the knight and his brother, now struck with leprosy, lived. After forcing him
to confess the murder of the child in the presence of the knight, she healed him
and revealed her identity. Refusing to marry the knight, she went to find the
brother of the emperor with the same disease. He confessed his sin against her
in the hearing of the pope and the emperor and was cured. The emperor wished
to restore her, but she preferred to live a life of chastity in the garb of a nun.
MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols.
IOO V -IQ3 V .
The miracle of the chaste empress belongs to the Crescentia-FlorentiaHildegard cycle, the origins and development of which have been frequently
studied.33 The narratives of western origin may be divided into two main
groups: (1) the versions of the Gesta Romanorum and the Florence de Rome
and (2) the Alary legend, the Crescentia story, and the Hildegard versions. In
neither the pseudo-Clementine romance,34 from which the cycle originates, nor
in the first group, is there anything miraculous,35 and the woman returns to her
husband. It remains to explain how the story became a Mary legend.
The germ of the miraculous is to be found in the pseudo-Clementine romance
in the role which St. Peter plays in the story. An old beggar woman who
turns out to be the mother of Clement tells her story to St. Peter, who suspects
her identity and brings her to Clement and his brother. His part is not at first
miraculous, but it becomes so when the supposed historical elements have
dropped away, and it is fused with tales of the persecuted wife which originate
in the West. The Crescentia version, one of the same group to which the
miracle belongs, shows other marks of the pseudo-Clementine romance. Note
the miraculous part played by St. Peter in the Crescentia story, as it appears in
the Kaiserchronik,
"Alexis Wallenskold, Le conte de la femrne chaste convoitee par son beau-frere (Helsingfors, 1907); Svetislav Stefanovic, 'Die Crescentia-Florence-Saga,' Romanische Forschungen,
xxix (1911), 461-556; Stephan Teubert, Crescentia-Studien (Halle, 1916); Margaret Schlauch,
Chaucer's Constance and Accused Queens (New York, 1927); Adolf Mussafia, Ober eine
halientsche metrische Darstellung der Crescentia-saga (Vienna, 1866). One form of this tale
is the story of Constance in Chaucer's Man of Law's Tale and in Gower's Confessio amantis.
It has a long history in more recent times.
** The date and sources of the pseudo-Clementine writings have been discussed in a French
thesis by Oscar Cullman, Le probleme litteraire et historique du toman pseudo-Clementin
(Paris, 1930), and Karl Kerenyi, Die griechisch-orientalische Romanliteratur in religionsgeschichtlicher Beleuchtung (Tubingen, 1927).
* There is, of course, the magic stone of the Florence de Rome.
170
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Narcissus, the brother of the emperor Heraclius, and his wife Elizabeth, had two
sons of the same name, Dietrich. At the emperor's death, it was decreed that the
throne should go to the first-married. Both men sought the hand of Crescentia, who
preferred the dark Dietrich to the handsome one. He becomes king, and during his
absence overseas, he entrusts his kingdom to his wife and brother. The brother makes
advances to her, and she contrives to shut him up in a tower. On the emperor's return he accuses Crescentia to her husband. She is thrown into the Tiber, but rescued
by fishermen. Next she is accused by the seneschal of the duke, in whose court she
has taken refuge, of murdering the duke's child. Again she is thrown into the Tiber.
There St. Peter appears to her as an old man, conducts her to land, and gives
her the
power to heal the sick after full confession. Crescentia retires to a convent.36
Once the story has become a miracle of St. Peter the next step in its development is not difficult to understand, for there are parallels in the case of other
mediaeval narratives.37 The place of St. Peter is usurped by the Virgin. In the
Mary legend, as one might expect, the miraculous theme is still further developed. The Virgin in a vision orders the empress to gather the herbs under
her head, etc. The episode of the captain of the ship in the romance survives in
the voyage, the persecution of the sailors, and the refuge on the rock. In most
versions of the miracle she ends her life as a nun. The Mary legend makes its first
appearance in the collection of St. Victor of the twelfth century,38 and thereafter
in the first half of the thirteenth century in the large collections of northern
France, most of which are still inedited. In Gobius' Scala celi a brief version
of the pseudo-Clementine romance immediately precedes the Mary legend.
Latin, faienne de Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, pp. 115-117 (136). Gobius, under Castitas.
Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (90-92). Alfons Hilka, *Zum Crescentiastoff,'
Archiv fiir das Studium der neueren Sprachen, cxxxm (1915), 136-137, 137-138, 138-140; 'Ein
neuer Text der Florentiasaga,' ibid^ pp. 152-154, 154-155. Wallenskold, op. cit^ pp. m-116,
116-120, 120-122, 122-128, 149-150, 150-151.
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Meon, Nouveau recueil, 11, 1-128). Mielot (ed. Warner),
pp. 23-28 (29); ed. Laborde, pp. 166-171 (29). Wallenskold, op. citn pp. 129-131, 132-134,
134-149, 151-161. Legrand d'Aussy, v, 125-129.
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta miracoli, pp. 33-37 (15).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 7-12 (5). Recull de eximplis, 11, 201-206 (594). Mussafia, Erne altspanische Prosadarstellung der Crescentiasaga, in Sitzungsberichte der kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenscbaften in Wien. Phil.-hist. Kl., LIH (1866), 499-562.
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 346349 <4>Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 421-438; 11, 1104-1112, 1112-1116.
Dutch. Wallenskold, op. cit^ pp. 161-169.
15.
NATIVITY
A hermit had on a certain night for many years heard music in the heavens.
When he asked the cause an angel answered, 'The Virgin was born this night,
and what is ignored by men is being celebrated by angels.' Thereafter the feast
of the Nativity of the Virgin was instituted in the churches. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°l- '49V«
"Die Kaiserchronik (ed. Schroder), pp. 280-314,11.11352-12808. Note that this same work
also plays a part in the development of the legend 'Ring on Finger.' For other versions of the
Crescentia narrative, see Stefanovic, op. cit^ pp. 469-470.
" Stella maris, no. 50.
18
MS Bibliotheque Nationale 14463, fols. 36-38. This version is printed by Wallenskold,
op. «f, pp. 116-120.
Notes on the Legends
171
The earliest text of the traditional origin of the Nativity of the Virgin seems
to be that of Honorius of Autun (died c. 1150). Two 01 the versions mention
John Beleth,39 a Parisian theologian who flourished about 1165. William Durandus (1237-1296) represents the festival as having been instituted by the
apostles. Beleth and others say that the hermit reported the miracle to the pope,
and he instituted the festival. According to another tradition, it was first
celebrated in the church of Angers about 430 by St. Mauritius who experienced
some sort of revelation. The day was called feria Andegavensis in France.40
As a matter of history, the celebration of the anniversary of the birth of the
Virgin had originated in the East by the first half of the sixth century and
spread to the West in the course of the seventh. Not until much later was it
widely celebrated.41 Pope Sergius I, 687-701, prescribed a litany and a procession.42
Latin. Honorius of Autun, Gemma animae, Migne, PX., CLXXII, 689; Sacrmnentarium, ibid^
p. 769; Speculum, ecclesiae, ibid^ p. 1001. William Durandus, Rationale div'morum officiorum,
VII, 28 (Naples, 1859), pp. 694-695. John Beleth, iWi, p. 837 (149). fetienne de Bourbon,
Anecdotes historiques, pp. 95-96 (107). Kjellman, pp. 23-24 (7), 316 (9). Little, Liber
exemplorum, pp. 20-21 (35). Pelbart, Bk. V, pt. 2, art. 3. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum
binoriale, VI (65); VII (119).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 37-40 (7). Kjellman, pp. 24-26 (7).
French. Kjellman, pp. 269-270 (3), 316 (9).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 358—
359 («3>German. Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 1-6 (1).
16. MOTHER OF MERCY
The Virgin appeared to a certain man who on his death-bed was fearful of
the fate of his soul, asking him if he recognized her. 'I am the Mother of Mercy,
herself,' she said, comforting him, so that he died believing that she would take
his soul as soon as it should be freed from the flesh and lead it to paradise.
MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. i22 v -i23.
The legend had its origin in the mediaeval biographies of Odo of Cluny
(879-943). There a similar dialogue takes place between the Virgin and a
reformed thief whom Odo has admitted to the monastery. The anxiety of the
sick man for his soul has more meaning in the light of Odo's version. The story
is one of the TS legends which did not find a place in the Pez collection. As
it is told in the collections of Mary legends there are two chief versions, the
differences between them limited to diction. The first, ascribed to Anselm of
Canterbury but really by Maurilius of Rouen,43 begins Meminimus et meminisse
delectabile est; and the other, Sicut iterum audivi fuit quidam infirmus, is the
version of the Cleopatra manuscript. Some collections present both versions.44
"fetienne de Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, pp. 95-96 (107), and Ward, Catalogue of
Romances, 11, 675 (41).
40
F. G. Holweck, Fasti Mariani (Freiburg-in-Breisgau, 1892), p. 211.
41
Lucius, Die Anfange des Heiligenkults, pp. 486-487.
" Holweck, op. cit^ p. 209.
" S e e p . 15.
U
MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12S93, fols. 122M23 (Sicut iterum) and fol. 130'
minimus et meminisse).
172
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Latin. Vita Sancti Odonis . . . a Joanne monacho, Migne, P X , cxxxm, 71. Anselrn of
Canterbury, Oratio xlix, ibid^ CLVIII, 946-947. Honorius of Autun, Speculum ecclesiae,
ibid-, CLXXII, 1001-1002. Heroic, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 56. Isnard, pp. 202-204
(45). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 54-55; Die Quellen, pp. 20-21. Magnum speculum
exemplorum (ed. Major), p. 56 (5).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 74-75 (15).
French. Mielot (ed. Laborde), p. 97.
17.
L I B I A (for
LYDDA)
In a church of Lydda near Diospolis there is a portrait of the Virgin painted
upon marble, but not by the hand of man. The Jews had complained to the
emperor that the church, once a synagogue, had been bought by the Christians
and dedicated to the Virgin. The emperor ordered it to be closed for forty
days to wait upon God's will. The apostles were in the meantime assured by
the Virgin, who still lived upon Alt. Sion, that she would be with them in the
church. When St. Peter opened it, the Jews saw the portrait upon the western
wall. They were so confused that they dared not enter it again. Even afterwards when Julian the Apostate ordered the Jews to destroy it, they were afraid
to touch it. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols 140-141.
The 'Libia' miracle, as Warner points out,45 has its origin in a story told by
John of Damascus (died c. 754) in Epistola ad Theophilum imperatorem.46
Almost all the texts except Pez, who has it 'Lydda' with John of Damascus,
call the city incorrectly 'Libia.' Diospolis is a later name for the ancient
Lydda.47 The original name was kept among the natives, and the modern town
is Lidd. As a matter of record, there is no account of a church dedicated to
the Virgin until the first council of Ephesus in 431; nor even a tradition of a
portrait of the Virgin until the first half of the sixth century.48
Latin. Dexter, pp. 43-45 (28). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vn, 89-90 (15). Neuhaus, Die lat.
Vorlagen, pp. 56-57. Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 23-24 (20).
French. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 22-23 (27), ed. Laborde, pp. 165-166 (27).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 42-43 (27).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 359360 (14).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 113-115; 11, 690-691.
18. AIARY IMAGE INSULTED
A Jew of Constantinople saw an image of the Virgin on a wall in a certain
house. When he was told whose image it was, he snatched it away, threw it
into a privy, and defiled it in every way possible. Afterwards he disappeared
from human sight, taken off, it is believed, by evil spirits. When a certain
Christian had reverently washed the picture and placed it in a church, oil began
t o flow f r o m i t . MS Bibliotheque
Nationale
12593 f ° ^ s I 3 t v 1
"Mielot (ed. Warner), p. xix.
"Migne, P.G., xcv, 349-352.
"Jerome, Epistola cviii (ed. Isidore Hilberg [Vienna, 1912], H, 313), Lyddam versam
in Diospolim.
"Lucius, op. cit^ p. 469. In the second century representation of Mary appeared in the
catacombs, but only as a part of a Biblical scene.
Notes on the Legends
173
Adamnan (c. 623-704) tells this tale in the De locis sanctis on the authority
of Arculf, a French pilgrim, who, he says, saw the image with his own eyes. Of
the subsequent redactions of the tale, that belonging to the TS series and the
collections of northern France is nearest to Adamnan's text. In certain apparently secondary redactions the story is attributed to St. Jerome, although no
version of it has been found among his printed works. The Paris manuscript,
Bibliotheque Nationale 18134, f°l- 140V0 includes the Jerome version, and the
English anonymous who used the Stella marts seems to know it. The title of
MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 14463, fol. 22V, mentions a sermon of St.
Jerome, but the legend itself is the TS version. The anecdote related by
Gobius suggests the influence of the vernacular, for no original has been found
which includes some of his details.
The development of the devil's role in this legend is instructive in relation to
the whole history of the mediaeval miracle. Adamnan says, 'What the Jew did
afterward, how he lived, or how he ended his life, is unknown.' The TS redaction sets forth a theory as to his demise, 'It is believed that because of the
crime which he committed against Christ and his mother, evil spirits removed
him from the sight of man.' The version of St. Jerome converts this supposition
into a fact and provides eye-witnesses to it, 'And when he had done this, in the
sight of everyone devils came and carried him off, soul and body, to hell.'
Latin. Adamnan in Migne, P.L., LXXXVHI, 813-814. Dexter, pp. 45-46 (30). Gobius, no. 36.
Gil de Zamora in Bolettn, VII, 95 (19). Herolt, Fromptuarium exemplorum, de Y, no. 2, and
de B, no. 5. Kjellman, pp. 229 (54). Mussafia, Denkschriften, xuv, 49. Neuhaus, Die lat.
Vorlagen, pp. 57-58; Die Quellen, pp. 61-62. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale,
VII (119).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 216-219 (37). Kjellman, pp. 230-231 (54).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 423-426. Kjellman, pp. 298-299 (63), 315 (8).
Alielot (ed. Warner), p. 13 (16); ed. Laborde, pp. 102, 155 (16).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 50-51 (34).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvin (1923), 361362 (16).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 132-133, 255-256, 599-601.
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 241-242 (6$),
19. JEW LENDS TO CHRISTIAN
A Christian merchant of Constantinople approached a Jew for a loan, saying
- that he had nothing to pledge except his lord Jesus Christ. Christian and Jew
went together before an image of the Virgin and her Son and pledged faith.
The Christian sailed off to barbarous lands, and the date of the pledge slipped
his memory. Suddenly recalling it the night before the debt was due, he
determined in desperation to put the money in the hands of his Guarantor. He
took a chest, and sealing the money in it, committed it to the waves. The next
morning a servant of the Jew saw it floating upon the waters, but when he tried
to grasp it, it disappeared. The Jew, however, was able to take it up. Removing
the money, he hid the chest under the bed. When the merchant returned, the
Jew met him with a demand for payment. The Christian once more led him
before the Mary image, and a voice bade them look under the Jew's bed. That
Jew and many others were converted. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12JP3, fols.
'74-175" Printed by Mussafia, Denkschriften, XLIV, 49.
174
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
The legend is very similar in its origins and development to the tale of the
'Jewish Boy.' 50 Four chief versions may be distinguished, the first of them
Greek in origin:
I. Jew Tests Christian. Like the anecdote of the Jewish boy the story originates in Constantinople, appearing first in a Greek sermon preached there on
Orthodoxy Sunday,81 probably in the ninth or tenth century. The Latin version
of Johannes Monachus is a translation of the original. The monk's tale differs
markedly from the usual western version. The Jew is a friend of the Christian,
and about to accept his faith. He denies having received the money, in order to
put the Christian to a test. The story is not a Alary legend in this form, for the
image is a crucifix. The silver which the merchant, Theodore, brings back with
him is used in making the ciborium and the pulpit of Santa Sophia. The anecdote
probably grew up about the sanctuary of Santa Sophia in the period following
the reign of Justinian, for Procopius tells of the overlaying of the sanctuary
with silver.52 The crucifix which hung in the Tetrastyle, a shrine in front of
the imperial palace, has a long and miraculous history. According to the chronicler of the ninth century, Georgios Hamartolus, Leo the Isaurian tore down
the figure, which had a great reputation for talking. It was committed to the
sea by the patriarch, and in the manner of the Jew's gold, carried safely to
Rome, where it was received by pope Gregory II and placed in the Lateran.53
Mediaeval pilgrims told of seeing a crucifix at Rome 'which nodded its head
in witness of money received between a Jew and a Christian.' S4
Greek. Francois Combefis, Novum auctarium ( = Historia haeresis monothelitarum), Paris,
1648,11, 611-644 (condensed English translation in Sabine Baring-Gould, Historical Oddities.
First Series, London, 1889, pp. 103-118). Max Hoferer, Johannis Monachi liber de miraculis
(Wurzburg, 1884), pp. 7-41.
Latin. Johannes Monachus, pp. 6-35.
II. Said to Be Greek. The second version of the tale claims to be Greek in
origin, although no Greek text has been found. Mussafia edits a Latin text from
two manuscripts, one of the twelfth and the other of the thirteenth century. 55
The image is a statue of the Virgin,
As the writings of the Greeks relate, a wealthy Alexandrian pedler in the days of
the emperor Nerva made a remarkable image of the Virgin which he handed over to
a Jew as security for a loan. The Christian, after a successful voyage, returns to
Alexandria and buys bread and nuts to eat. These he exchanges with some shepherd
boys for metal which they have collected from the ruins of ancient buildings. The
Christian hangs a bag of gold which he has recovered from the metal around the neck
of the image. The Jew takes it away secretly and insists that the contract has not
been kept. The image speaks in the presence of witnesses.
50
Stella maris, no. 3.
Orthodoxy Sunday was instituted in 842.
M
Procopius, vn, I, 1, 65 (Loeb Classics, London, 1940), p. 29.
"Migne, P.G., ex, 921. See also Ferdinand de Mely in Memoires de la Societe nationale
des antiquaires de France, LXIII (1904), 113-114, and Jean Ebersolt, Sanctuaires de Byzance
(Paris, 1921), pp. 19-20.
" Mirabilia Roniae, p. 58.
°*MSS Paris Bibliotteque Nationale $268, fol. 28, and $261, fol. 62. These collections include a great many legends about Roman emperors. Note the addition of the name of the
emperor Nerva to this tale.
01
Notes on the Legends
175
The legend of MS British Museum Additional $3956, fols. 70^71 v , of the earlyfourteenth century, is a variant of this version.
Latin. Mussafia, V, 43-45 (29).
French. Mussafia, V, 45-47.
III. Testimonium. The account prefixed to the Pez version, summarized as
the original of the Stella marts, of the way in which this redaction entered the
West seems reasonable,
A very pious archdeacon of Liege visited Byzantium on a pilgrimage. Entering
the church, he found the Greeks celebrating a festival hilariously. When he asked
the occasion, a Greek who knew little Latin said, 'Testimonium, Testimonium.' The
archdeacon sought out some one else, and a person who knew Latin well told him
the story.66
In this form the anecdote found its way into the Pez collection and the great
compendia of northern France.
Latin. Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vii, 83-87 (13). Gobius, no. 3. Herolt, Promptnarhan exeviplorum, de X, no. 1. Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, pp. 70-71 (40). Isnard, p. 36 (2).
Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 41-44 (33). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (82).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 541-556. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 31-31
(34); ed. Laborde, pp. 174-176 (34).
Provencal. Ulrich in Romania, vm (1879), 16-18 (3).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 36-38 (25). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 146-161 (23).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 363-365
(17). Horstman, Minor Poems of the Vernon MS, pp. 157-161.
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 87-92; 11, 1064-1067.
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 166-168 (47).
IV. Sails to Alexandria. The fourth redaction is found chiefly in collections
of English origin. Certain characteristics of the Greek sermon which were lost
in the Pez version have been preserved. The Jew and the Christian are named,
as in the sermon. The sealing of the chest and the letter that went with it are
described with more care than in the case of 'Testimonium.' The Jew goes
down to the shore to look for the returning ship, although nothing is said of
the vision that motivated the action, a detail of the Pez version. It does, however, have many details in common with the Pez version, especially the evil
motive of the Jew.
In a Latin manuscript of the thirteenth century, the tale is made to serve the
cult of St. Nicholas, a saint popular in Normandy. The merchant is a Norman
who trades in Africa, and St. Nicholas is his guarantor. The chest not only
reaches the shore of Normandy, but it sails up a little rivulet that flows through
the Jew's garden. The sentiment is not anti-Jewish. The Jew takes up the chest
without disturbing its contents. Together Jew and Christian open it and proclaim the miracle.67
Latin. Hilka, m, 205-206 (90); Meister, pp. 194-195 (70). Kjellman, pp. 204-206 (48).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 176-185 (29). Kjellman, pp. 206-212 (48).
" In MS Leipzig 821 of the thirteenth century, it is a merchant who goes to Jerusalem who
asks about the festival. Mussafia, I, 972 (41).
67
M. A. Joly, 'Quatre miracles inedits de saint Nicolas,' Bulletin de la Societe des antiquaires de Normandie, ix (1878-1880), 215-220.
176
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
20.
INCEST
A certain nobleman and his wife prayed for a child. After the birth of a son,
the husband determined to leave his family that he might live more righteously.
The mother cherished the boy even to the point of incest. Meanwhile, hoping
for forgiveness, she was diligent in fasting, prayer, and almsgiving, achieving a
great reputation for sanctity. The child that was born to her she strangled with
her own hands. The devil, intending to torment her, posed as a learned clerk
able to solve the mqst difficult cases and gained entrance to the court of the
king. The monarch had great faith when he accused the woman of the crime,
especially since he offered, if mistaken, to be thrown into the funeral pyre which
should be built for her.
The woman succeeded in getting her case before Pope Lucius (text Lucianus),
meanwhile making full confession to him. So transformed was she by God's
mercy, that when the devil was asked in the presence of the papal consistory
to prefer his charge against her, he could only praise her. Moreover, he saw
the Virgin Mary at her side supporting her. At the sound of the devil's voice,
all made the sign of the cross upon their foreheads, and he disappeared like
smoke before their eyes. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (93-95).
The earliest known text of this tale is the versified version of the collection
of St. Victor (SV), dating from the twelfth century. It seems evident that the
version of SV, however, is not the original form of the story. In the first place,
the father's departure is too clearly patterned after Joachim's retirement to the
hills before the birth of the Virgin, and there are a great many Biblical references that look like additions. There is in the tale of SV no logical explanation
for the form which the intervention of the Virgin takes. Why did she accompany the woman to the trial? According to SV, her friends were there with
her. The anonymous (pseudo-Caesarius) version in the collection of Mary
legends edited by Alfons Hilka is simpler and more logical.
A certain very devout Roman widow committed the crime of incest with her only
son. The devil posed to a senator as a prophet, becoming finally a member of the
'Roman court.' Soon he declared that a woman had committed a crime that demanded
public satisfaction. When the woman had been summoned to appear, she went to all
her relatives and friends, but could not find anyone to accompany her to the senator.
The Virgin appeared saying, 'Do not fear, but go, for I shall accompany you personally.' When the devil saw them he turned pale as death and was unable to look
upon her face. And with a great noise he disappeared.
In substantially this form the story is taken over into the collections of
exempla to illustrate the wiles of the devil, how he accuses devout men openly
of the crimes they commit, so that they may not have time to repent and thus
escape publicity. Once the anecdote becomes an exemplum, there is no limit to
the variation it may undergo. In the accounts of fitienne de Bourbon and Gobius,
for instance, it has taken on the device of the legend of Theophilus. The devil
writes his accusation on a scroll, and on the day of the trial, he finds it utterly
blank. The version of the Gesta Romanorum recalls the dilemma of Lady Macbeth. The woman cuts the child's throat, and the blood remains on the palm
of her hand, so that she wears a glove to hide it.
Latin. Bromyard, Sunrma praedicanthim, t, C, 6 (44).fetiennede Bourbon, Anecdotes histo-
Notes on the Legends
177
riques, pp. 156-157 (178). Gesta Romanorum (ed. Oesterley), pp. 291-294 (13). Gobius,
under Confessio (two versions). Henmann of Bologna, Viaticum narrationum, pp. 20-22
(22). Hilka, HI, 192-193 (77); Meister, pp. 181-182 (57). Hervieux, Les fabulistes latins, iv
(Paris, 1896), 399 (17). Jacques de Vitry (ed. Crane), pp. i i o - m (263). Magmtntspeculum
exemplorum (ed. Major), pp. 122-124 (7>- Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII
(93-95)- Wright, Latin Stories, pp. 98-99 ( n o ) .
French. Gautier de Coincy in Zeitschrift fiir romanische Philologie, vi (1882), 325-334.
Jubinal, Nouveau recueil, 1, 79-87. Meon, Nouveau recueil, 11, 394-410. Mielot (ed. Warner),
pp. 49-51 (53); ed. Laborde, pp. 112-118, 193-195 (53).
Provenc,al. Ulrich in Romania, vm (1879), 24-28 (13).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 28-29 ('7)- Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos,
pp. 497-498 (*°5>English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, pp. 220-222 (320). Tryon in Publications of the
Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 360-361 (15).
Italian. Levj, Cinquanta miracoli, pp. 30-32 (14).
German. Bar, Marienlegenden, pp. i i o - m (16). Bolte in Alemannia, xvn (1889), 22-23 (40).
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 244-246 (66).
21.
BEIRUT
A Christian left behind him in a house which he had rented to a Jew a crucifix
which he had made. A countryman, dining with the Jew, became very angry
and accused him before the Jews of the city. They came and, ejecting him
from the house, subjected the crucifix to all the pains of the cross. Enough
blood and water issued from a wound in the side to fill a vessel placed under
it. The bishop baptized all the Jews in the city. MS Bibliotheque Nationale
14463, fols. 1-4.
Although the tale is not a Mary legend, several collections of Mary legends
made in France include it, notably the two Rouen manuscripts, U 134 and
A 535,™ and the vernacular collection MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale French
818.69 It appears on the first folios of the collection of St. Victor, MS Bibliothe'que Nationale 14463, although not as part of the collection. The sermon in
which it was told was read to the Council of Nicaea in 787. Baronius has shown
that Athanasius, to whom it was attributed, was not the author of it, and that
it should be assigned rather to the period of the emperor Constantine Copronymous (741-775).60 The incident is recorded in the Arrnales Xantensis under the
year 765,61 and the Legenda aurea mentions 750. Galtier, who has made a
study of the versions found in manuscripts of the Bibliotheque Nationale, distinguishes four separate versions besides a similar tale of Syriac origin.62 According to tradition the image was taken from Beirut to Constantinople by John
Zimisces (969-976) and put in the same vestibule before the royal palace which
housed the image of the legend, ' J e w Lends to Christian.'
Greek. Athanasius, Dubia, in Migne, P.G., xxvin, 797"*24- c f - £ m I l e Galtier, op. c/f, p.
517, who lists thirteen Greek manuscripts in the Bibliotheque Nationale alone.
Syriac. Budge, The History of the Blessed Virgin Mary and the History of the Likeness of
Christ (London, 1899), 1, 166-167.
M
See pp. 36 and 64.
Mussafia,V,i 3 (75).
.
" W a r d , Catalogue of Romances, 11, 702, conveniently summarizes the evidence.
" M.GJJ^ Scriptores, 11, 222.
"femile Galtier, 'Byzantina,' Romania, xxix (1900), 513-517.
a>
178
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Latin. Sigibert of Gembloux, Cbronica, anno "j6$ (ed. Bethmann, M.GH^ Scriptores, vi, 333).
Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XXIII (160). Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse), pp.
608-^09 (4). Arnold of Liege, Alphabetmn narrationum, in Archiv fur das Studium der
neueren Sprachen, CXVII (1906), 288-289. Galtier, op. cit^ p. 516. Herolt, Fromptuariwn
exemplorum, de P, no. 44. Baronius, Annales, xm (Lucca, 1743), 207-208. Giovanni Domenico Mansi, Concilia, xm (Florence, 1767), 26. Petrus Lambecius, Comrnentariorum de
augustiss'rma Bibliotheca Caesarea Vindobonensis liber primus (Vienna, 1766-1782), 1, 224-237.
Spanish. Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos, p. 452 (20).
22. CLERK OF CHARTRES
36. DROWNED SACRISTAN
A clerk of evil life in the city of Chartres, accustomed to salute the Virgin
very frequently, was killed by his enemies and buried outside the cemetery.
After thirty days Mary came to one of the clerks asking why her chancellor
had been treated thus and ordering him to see that he be given decent burial.
When the grave was opened a very beautiful flower was found in his mouth,
and the tongue untouched, as if ready to praise God. The body was buried
within the cemetery. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12$93, fols. IZI V -IZZ.
The legend of the worldly churchman who wins heaven for no other reason
than his devotion to Mary is the most popular cycle of legends in all the middle
ages. It arises from the mediaeval conception of the Virgin as the advocate of
man, so powerful that even God does not resist her plea. There is something in
it also of the mediaeval conception of loyalty, a force which helped to hold
society together in that age. The cycle does not develop from a single legend,
but the tales naturally influence one another until a bewildering multiplicity is
achieved. In all of them the hero, a clerk or a monk, dies a violent or sudden
death, as befits a sinner. In the first broad series, 'Token in Mouth,' he is buried,
or about to be buried, outside the cemetery. The Virgin indicates by some sort
of sign that he is to be interred among the faithful.
In the second main group of anecdotes having to do with the worldly monk,
'Drowned Sacristan,' the conflict between the Mercy of Mary and the Justice
of God takes definite form. Angels and devils, or devils and the Virgin singlehanded, struggle for the soul of the sinner. Their dispute is ordinarily carried
to the court of the Highest King for decision. In a few cases Mary herself issues
the decree, but commonly the merciful act of the Virgin is given the legal approval of God in some manner.
The first series, 'Token in Mouth,' may be further sub-divided into two
groups. In the first death occurs by drowning, as in MS Oxford Balliol 240 of
the twelfth century,63
A clerk, devoted to Mary, drank too much, and in trying to get home he fell into
a body of water and was drowned. The bishop ordered that he be buried outside the
cemetery; but when the body was taken from the water, it appeared as if living, and
from the mouth hung a scroll on which were the words, Ave Maria, gratia plena,
Dominus tecum. The body was buried honorably.
In the second series, 'Clerk of Chartres,' the clerk dies in a violent manner,
usually at the hands of his enemies. The token takes the form of a flower in the
mouth, a lily or a rose. Certain embellishments are in the course of time added
"Kjellman, pp. 44-47 (11). There are numerous other tales like it. See Mussafia, I, 947948 (47); 111,50 (71); etc.
Notes on the Legends
179
to it. In Gautier de Coincy, for instance, when the abbot advises his little
nephew to pray to the Virgin each day, he replies that he prefers the tales of
Roland and Oliver to paternosters. The scene is sometimes Rouen, as in Gobius.
Latin. Crane in Romanic Review, 11 (1911), 250-251 (10). Dexter, pp. 18-19 U)- Gil d e
Zamora inBoletin, vn, 82-83 («*)• Gobius, no. 18. Hilka, m, 195-196 (80); Meister, pp. 184185 (60). Herolt, Tromptuarium de miraculis, no. 64. Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, p. 72
(44). Kjellman, p. 301 (68). Meyer in Romania, xxix (1900), 36. Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen,.
PP- 32"33- Little, Liber exemplorum, pp. 23-24 (40). Pez (ed. Crane), p. 6 (3). Pelbart, I,
pt. 4, art. 1. Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, p. 269 (3). Henmann of Bologna, Viaticum narrationum, p. 12 (3).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, XXXII (1903), 404-405 (3). Everard de
Gateley in ibidn xxix (1900), 45-47 (3). Kjellman, pp. 83-86 (17).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 295-300, 361-370. Jehan le Marchant, he livre des
miracles de Notre-Dame de Chartres, pp. 184-188 (29). Kjellman, pp. 280-281 (32), 302 (68).
Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 83-84.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 35-36 (24). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 27-30 (3).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 365367 («8).
German. Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 77-82 (11).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 74-75; 11, 762-763, 763-764.
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, p. 334 (103).
(Stella marts, no. 36)
A sacristan led an evil life, although he made a practice of saying the Ave
Maria whenever he passed the altar of the Virgin. The way to his mistress led
through the church across a river. One night as, after his usual salutation, he
went out to sin, the devil pushed him into the river, and he was drowned. When
a multitude of demons were about to make off with his soul, a band of angels
came to lend what comfort they could. To them the devil said contemptuously,
'What are you doing here? There is nothing of you in this soul. His evil deeds
make him ours.'
The angels were sad, for they could not speak of sufficient good works. Then
suddenly the Virgin was there defending his soul, 'He never went anywhere
without first receiving my permission by saluting me, and he did the same when
he returned. But, lest I seem to be compelling you, let us place our case before
the Highest King.'
The case was argued by one side and the other, and the Lord agreed that the
soul should be allowed to return to the body until penance had been done. When
the brothers had taken it from the water, behold he rose up alive and told what
had happened. Thereafter he served the Virgin with good works. MS Bibliothkque Nationale 12593, fols. v i2i-i2i v .
DROWNED SACRISTAN
The Pez collection includes two miracles illustrating this theme.84 The first,
summarized above, goes over into the collections of northern France without
alteration. In other versions details are borrowed from 'Token in Mouth' series.
In the version of the Cleopatra manuscript,65 for instance, the hero is a clerk,
not a monk. An animated conflict goes on between the devils and the Virgin.
M
Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 4-6 (2) and 64-74 (4°)- There is a dissertation by Franz Ritter,
Die Legende vom ertrunkenen Glockner, Strassburg, 1913.
" Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 58-60. This seems to be the version in abbreviated form
in the Vendome collection. Isnard, p. 36 (1).
180
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
T h e Virgin leaves in wrath only w h e n she reflects that it is not w o r t h y of her
to dispute with devils. In the court of G o d , she proposes that it be left to a sign
on the tongue of the victim, whether he died in her service or the devil's. T h e
words Ave Maria are found written there. T h e Roman de Rou of W a c e e e includes an interesting version,
The sacristan of the abbey of St. Ouen is drowned on his way to visit an abbess at
night. Angels and devils dispute the right to his soul. Finally they agree to take the
case to the Duke of Normandy, Richard sans Peur. In his sleep the Duke decrees
that the soul may return to the body, and that the victim should be placed on a
bridge. If he moves forward, he belongs to the devil; if backward, he is to be freed.
He draws back and is allowed to go home.
Latin. Crane in Romanic Review, n (1911), 248 (8). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, n, 426-427
(2) and vu, 73-74 (5). Gobius, no. 45. Hilka, in, 157-158 (36); Meister, pp. 145-146 (16).
Herolt, Fromptuar'mm de miraculis, no. 71. Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, p. 73 (49).
Isnard, pp. 199-200 (42). Klapper, Erzahlungen, pp. 361-362 (170). Little, Liber exemplorwm,
p. 32 (52). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 31-32; Die Quellen, p. 28. Pelbart, XII, pars
ultima, ch. 7 (2) and ch. 10 (1). Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 4-6 (2). Kjellman, p. 275 (19).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, xxxn (1903), 403-404. Kjellman, pp.
79-83 (16).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 459-474. Kjellman, pp. 275-276 (19). Mielot
(ed. Laborde), pp. 82-83.
English. Horstman, Minor Poems of the Vernon MS, pp. 166-167.
German. Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 69-76 (10). Hagen, Gesammtabenteuer, in, 555560 (85).
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta miracoli, pp. 83-85 (50).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 19-20 (11). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 20-26 (2). Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos, pp. 494-495 (198).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 75-78; 11, 835-836.
23.
HOURS S U N G D A I L Y
A clerk on a pilgrimage came to a monastery near Cambrai. There he heard
the hours of the Virgin sung daily. He inquired why this was done contrary to
the usual practice. A monk told him how, when he was leading a worldly life
with two companions, he had had a vision. He saw himself standing before the
tribunal of God and heard Him say, 'Let us see what judgment that man who is
looking at us and his companions merit. I have tolerated them now for a long
time, and they show no signs of mending their ways.' The sentence of damnation was passed upon them. Then he saw the Virgin rise and plead for him out
of regard for his devotion to her. When her wish was granted, she turned to
the sinner and bade him sin no more under threat of a worse fate. He finished
his life in good works. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°k- I75~I7<5VThe tale is one of the Pez collection which the unknown author says he heard
told by a certain 'religious.' In the Apiarium of Thomas of Cantimpre, where
it is related of a certain noble youth living in Brabant in 1251, the victim's sins
are enumerated: refusing to pay his tithe, depriving certain monks of the fish
owing them, allowing hunting dogs to destroy the fruit and crops of the poor.
"Maistre Wace's 'Roman de Rou' (ed. Hugo Andresen, Heilbronn, 1877-1879) 11, 43-50.
The author of the Vendome version edited by Isnard, pp. 199-200 (42), knows the variation
of the Roman de Rou.
Notes on the Legends
181
A story with the same theme is told in the German collection edited by Pfeiffer
and another by Floss under the title 'Der Schiiler aus Sicilien.'
Latin. Crane in Romanic Review, 11 (1911), 243-244 (4). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, xm,
196 (58). Gobius, no. 44. Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse), p. 593 (8). Pez (cd. Crane), pp.
44-47 (34)- Thomas of Cantimpre, Bomtm universale de apibut, pp. 279-280 (8). Magnum
speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), p. 68 (3).
French. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 32-33 (35); ed. Laborde, pp. 176-177 (35).
German. Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 63-68 (9). H. J. (?) Floss, Neun Marienlegenden
nebst einem Gebete an Maria (Miinster, 1852), p. 29 (8).
24.
J U L I A N T H E APOSTATE
The godless emperor Julian, coming to Caesarea on his way to attack the
Persians, met St. Basil. Because of an uncomplimentary gift made to him, the
emperor threatened the city with complete destruction when he should return.
Basil gathered the inhabitants together on Mt. Didimus, where there was an
ancient Mary church. After three days of fasting and prayer he had a vision, in
which he saw the Virgin surrounded by celestial soldiery and heard her say,
'Go call Mercury to me. He shall kill the blasphemer of my Son.' On the night
of the death of Julian both the sophist Libanius, who was with Julian, and Basil
had the same vision. Going immediately to the sanctuary of St. Mercury, Basil
found the arms which usually hung there missing. He went back to the mountain and spread the news of the death of the tyrant. When the inhabitants returned to the city, they found Mercury's lance in its accustomed place, but it
was wet with blood. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°^s- 207-208.
This particular tradition of the death of Julian is told by Amphilochius, bishop
of Iconium (died c. 400), in his life of Basil.67 No two versions of the story are
exactly alike. The tendency is to add material from other sources, as in the case
of the Cleopatra version,68 presumably the oldest version of the story in collections of Mary legends. The author appends an episode from the Ecclesiastical
History of Theodoret (died c. 457), how Julian was killed by a fleet knight on
a white horse, and how as he lay dying, he made a cup of his hands to catch his
own blood, which he threw in the air exclaiming, 'Thou hast conquered, O
Nazarine, thou hast conquered.' 69
A great many other traditions about Julian's death exist owing to the suddenness and the mystery of it. Ammianus Marcellinus, an eye-witness, writes that
in the midst of the confusion of the battle on the plain of Marangas, a cavalryman's spear — no one knows whence — grazed the skin of his arm, pierced the
ribs, and lodged in the lower lobe of his liver.70 Libanius says that the blow was
from the hand of one of Julian's own men, a Christian.71
Latin. Bromyard, Sumrna praedicantium, 11, M, 3 (3). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 141-142
(50). Herolt, Promptuarium exemplorum, de E, no. 18. Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse), pp.
143-145 (30). Neuhaus, Die lot. Vorlagen, pp. 23-25; Die Quellen, pp. 55-56. Odo of Cheriton, Parabolae, ed. Hervieux, Les fabulistes latins, iv, 271 (16). Pelbart, XII, pars ultima,
ch. 1 (1). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XIV (43-44) •
" Acta sanctorum, 14 June (Antwerp, 1698), p. 944.
"Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 23-25.
" Theodoret, Ecclesiastical History, III, 25.
"Ammianus Marcellinus, II, 25, 6 (Loeb Classics, Cambridge, 1937), p. 493.
" F o r an account of these theories see Gaetano Negri, L'bnperatore Guiliano TApostata
(Milan, 1902), pp. 113-117.
182
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 76-79 (16). Kjellman, pp. 7-14 (4).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 395-416. Meyer in Notices et extraits, xxxrv*
(1895), 50-53 (4).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 23-26 (15). Recall de eximplis, 11, 284-286 (682).
English and Anglo-Saxon. Aelfric, Sermones catholici (ed. Benjamin Thorpe, London, 18441846), 1, 448-452. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, pp. 515-516 (772). Tryon in Publications of
the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 367 (19).
25. PRIEST OF ONE MASS
A parish priest was so ignorant that he knew only one mass which he said
daily with great devotion, the mass of the Virgin which begins Salve sancta
parens. For this he was cited before the bishop and removed. The following
night the Virgin appeared to the bishop and with severity in her voice demanded
why her chaplain had been treated thus, threatening death within thirty days
unless he were restored. The bishop ordered the clerk never to say any other
mass, and he fed and clothed him with great honor as long as he lived. MS
Bibliotbeque Nationale 12593, fol. 125.
This HM legend is one of the most popular, and probably one of the oldest,
of the miracles of western origin. T h e earliest text extant is found in the works
of Peter Damian (1007-1072),
This same Stephen told me another story, how a foolish, frivolous clerk, who was
none too bright, had no gift of religion except that each day he bowed before the
altar of the Virgin and recited reverently the Ave Maria. A new bishop, learning of
his ineptitude, considered him of no service to the church and deprived him. When
the clerk began to fall into want, the Virgin appeared to the bishop as he slept. With
her was a man bearing a candle in one hand and a ferule in the other. She ordered
the bishop beaten with the rod, 'Why,' she said, 'have you deprived my chancellor of
the support of the church?' The bishop restored the clerk and honored him.
In the thirteenth century the HM version is fused with another Mary legend,
how Mary helped St. Thomas of Canterbury mend his hair shirt, the wearing of
which he kept from everyone. T h e Virgin directed the ignorant clerk to use
the secret between her and St. Thomas as a pass-word to get an interview with
him. 72
Latin. Peter Damian, De bono suffragiorum, Migne, P i . , CXLV, 564 (3). Dexter, p. 24 (10).
Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vn, 91-92 (17). Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, p. 72 (45). Isnard,
pp. 200-202 (43). Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse), pp. 592-593 (7). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen,
pp. 39-40. Pez (ed. Crane), p. 12 (9). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (113).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, XXXII (1903), 411-412. Kjellman, pp.
103-106 (23).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 323-326. Isnard, p. 319. Jehan le Marchant,
Le livre des miracles de Notre-Dame de Chartres, pp. 204-205 (31). Kjellman, pp. 285-286
(38). Mielot (ed. Laborde), p. 88.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 48-49 (32). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 56-59 (9).
German. Bolte in Alemannia, xvn (1889), 4 ( 1 ) . Floss, Neun Marienlegenden, pp. 33-36 (9).
Hagen, Gesammtabenteuer, m, 489-492 (79). Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 58-62 (8).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 126-127; 11, 747-748, 748-749.
"Caesar of Heisterbach, Dialogus miraculorum, VII, 4 (ed. Strange), 11, 5-6. English
translation by H. von E. Scott and C. C. Swinton Bland (London, 1929), 1, 458-459 (4).
Notes on the Legends
26.
183
ORLEANS
Citizens of Avenon near Orleans were attacked by the prince of the province.
He had been incited by the devil who was jealous of the town's devotion to the
Virgin Mary. After standing before an image of the Virgin which they had
placed in the church dedicated to her and beseeching her aid, the inhabitants had
carried it out and set it up before their gate. Its citizen-guardian was causing
great slaughter among the enemy from behind it when one of them, discovering
the guard's hiding-place, called out, 'You shall not escape death, nor shall the
image be able to help you, unless you leave the gate and open the city.' With
this he hurled his javelin. The statue raised its knee to intercept the weapon.
When news of the miracle spread, the enemy gave up the siege and came bringing gifts to the Virgin. And to this day the image, standing with the javelin in
its knee, continues to protect the citizens of Avenon. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, ^ s - 135—136.
The tale is told in the fullest and probably the earliest form in the collection
of St. Germain-des-Pres. The author says that a certain monk who had seen the
image with his own eyes told it to him. Avenon was in the thirteenth century a
thriving community of merchants near Orleans. In the fourteenth century it
became part of the city. Bimbenet suggests that the attack was an incursion of
the Norsemen,73 two of which occurred in the course of the ninth century. The
whole atmosphere of the story is, however, that of the twelfth or thirteenth
century. It is more likely that the anecdote is an episode in one of the numerous
conflicts of townsmen with their feudal lords that fill the twelfth century.
Latin. Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 107-108 (27). Gobius, no. 4. Herolt, Promptuarium de
miraculis, no. 83. Mussafia, Denkschriften, XLIV, 34. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historhle,
VII (83).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 275-280. Mielot, (ed. Laborde), pp. 125-126.
Provencal. Ulrich in 'Romania, vm (1879), 18 (4).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 75-76 (51).
27. MONK SEES JUDAS ISCARIOT IN HELL
An English novice vowed to go to the Holy Land, but a Cistercian abbot persuaded him that instead he should accept the cross of religion and hasten toward
the heavenly Jerusalem. This he agreed to, but after a time he reverted to his
earlier plan. In order to dissuade him, he was at the command of the Virgin
shown a vision of heaven and hell by St. Raphael. In hell he saw a terrible wheel
and a man stretched out upon it. It turned rapidly, falling into the lowest
depths, so that all the earth and sky trembled. The souls held captive there and
all the devils beat the man upon it as it descended and hurled maledictions at
him. He was Judas the traitor. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 17491, fols.
84-88.
Helinand of Froidmont (d. after 1227) relates this tale under the year 1161
in the Chronicon.1* The vision is included together with another of unknown
origin in MS Paris 17491, a collection of Mary legends in script of the thirteenth
century.75
"Eugene Bimbenet, Histoire de la ville d'Orleans, 11 (Orleans, 1885), 41, 90-95.
'* Migne, PX., CCXII, 1060-1063.
** See also Stella marts, no. 40.
184
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
28.
'MAL DES ARDENTS' AT PARIS
William [of Auvergne] is a witness to miracles performed in the church of
Notre-Dame at the time when an epidemic of mal des ardents prevailed at
Paris.76
29. MARE
Mare, a Praemonstratensian monastery in the neighborhood of Rheims, was
engaged in a law-suit brought against it by some secular priests. When the seculars attempted to seize goods which the monks had long possessed, they were
excommunicated. They retaliated by setting fire to the monastery. Among the
relics which the sacristan tried to save was an ivory statuette of the Virgin containing some of her hair. When the remains were brought together in the cemetery, it was missing. The sacristan prayed to the Virgin with faith that she
could preserve it, and the abbot, entering the ruins of the church, found it
upright and unharmed, as if placed there reverently by the hands of angels.
MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. i-}6v-inv.
The monastery of Mare was founded in 1150 at a distance of five leagues from
Rheims and affiliated with Claire-f ontaine. In 1218 it was rebuilt by Count Hugo
and his wife. By 1350 it had again been destroyed and was in that year moved
to Long-ve*.77 The quarrel mentioned in the miracle may have been the one
referred to in a letter of pope Alexander III (1159-1181) to Henry de France,
archbishop of Rheims, 1162-1175. It concerned a dispute between the brothers
of Mare and the chapter of the cathedral of Rheims over the possession of an
altar at Mare.78 In this communication the pope warns the archdeacon of Rheims
against molesting the brothers further, and speaks of certain lands that have been
seized forcibly by the canons. The records do not say how the monastery was
destroyed so that it was necessary to rebuild it in 1218, but it may well have
been the fire which was the occasion of the miracle. The author of the legend
says that he had the story from the abbot of the monastery itself. The text appears in four manuscript collections of the thirteenth century: MSS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593 and 17491; Charleville 168; and Rouen U 134.
Latin.
Cf. Mussafia, I, 963 (33); II, 49 (4). MS Fans Bibliotheque Nationale 17491, fols.
T
IOI -IO2. Analecta Bollandiana, xxm (1904), 144 and 214.
30. PURIFICATION
In the fifteenth year of the reign of Justinian there was a plague at Byzantium.
When on that account the festival of the Purification began to be celebrated, the
plague ceased. This festival is called by the Greeks Ypapanti, because on that
day in the temple Symeon and Anna met the Virgin. Ypant in Greek, obviare
in Latin. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fol. 149*.
The manner in which this legend originated is characteristic of certain other
tales derived from historical sources. Anastasius Bibliothecarius, a Byzantine
historian who died in 886, writes of two unconnected incidents,79
™ See pp. 67 and 78.
"Gallia Christiana, ix (Paris, 1751), 329.
"Edmond Martene, Veterum scriptorum et monumentorum . . . amplissbna collectio
(Paris, 1724-1733), 11, 852.
™ Anastasius Bibliothecarius, Historia ecclesiastica ex Theophane,
1262.
Migne, P.G., cvm,
Notes on the Legends
185
In the fifteenth year of the reign of Justinian in the month of October, there was
a plague in Byzantium; and in the same year the Purification began to be celebrated
on the second day of February.
In the twelfth century, if not before, these two events had been put together in
causal relationship to explain the origin of the festival of the Purification in the
Christian church as a whole. Hugh of St. Victor, 1097-1141, who is perhaps
merely copying Hugh of Fleury (died c. 1130), tells how Justinian established
the festival and the plague immediately ceased. It is he who adds the detail of the
derivation of the word which the Greeks used to designate it.
In the meantime a different version developed in England, connected with the
name of William of Malmesbury. The author explains the reasons for the plague
— the heresies which Justinian embraced and the cruelty he practiced at the
urging of his wife.80 The glosses of the Bruges manuscript of the Stella marts
include details for further elaboration, for the author suggests that the plague
was ergotism, or erysipelas, as the middle ages called it. An entry in the margin
of the Egerton manuscript of Adgar's collection, 'Thys meracylle schalle be
radd in be frater apone candilmasday,'81 suggests the use to which the legend
was put.
As a matter of history, the Purification was celebrated in the eastern churches
before the time of Justinian, although as a festival of Our Lord and without
candles. It originated in the church of Jerusalem as early as the middle of the
fourth century, being celebrated on the fourteenth of February, forty days after
Epiphany. In the western church it came to be combined with a Purification
festival celebrated on the second of February with candles. The church of
Jerusalem began in the fifth century to observe the day after the western manner, and Justinian introduced the practice into the eastern church.82
Latin. Hugo of St. Victor, Liber excerptiomtm, Migne, PL., CLXXVII, 267. Hilka, m, 208109 (94); Meister, pp. 197-198 (74). Kjellman, p. 237 (57). Little, Liber exemplorum, p. 21
(3<5-37).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 220-223 (39). Kjellman, pp. 237-240 (57).
31. S I G H T RESTORED
In the time of Pope Boniface the Pantheon at Rome was dedicated to the
Virgin Mary and all the saints. A violent controversy raged between the Jews
and the Christians, especially over the question of the virgin birth. Among those
who participated was a man blind from birth whom the Jews taunted, 'Your
Christ is so impotent that he cannot even restore your sight.'
'Wait three days,' said the blind man, 'and you will see in me the powers of
God.' It was agreed between them, that if the man's sight should be restored,
the Jews would accept baptism. On the day appointed, which was the day of
the Purification, they all gathered in the Pantheon. There the blind man, although before ignorant of music, sang a response of his own composition refuting the errors of the Jews, and immediately he recovered his sight. Five hun•"Kjellman, p. 237 (57).
.
" W a r d , 11, 716 (39). The version edited by Hilka tells the story of the origin of a festival
at Rome in the time of the emperor Julian, 361-363, celebrated with lighted candles. Pope
Sergius, 687-701, added a procession with candles.
82
Lucius, Die Anfange des Heiligenskults, pp. 480-484.
t86
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
dred Jews were baptized. The remainder fled, and there were no more Jews in
Rome. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. 206-207.
What seems to be the original version of the legend appears first in collections
of Mary legends made before the end of the twelfth century. One text is to be
found in the Magnum legendarium Austriacum, written at the end of the twelfth
century in Austria, and another in a Ghent manuscript of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. The tale had its origin, so this version says, 'in ecclesiasticis
historiis.' The same narrative is told unchanged in the Latin collections of the
Bibliotheque Nationale in the thirteenth century.
The blind man is called Didymus (or Dindimus) in the anonymous collection
of Mary legends edited by Hilka. Ward identifies him with the blind philosopher of that name who lived in Alexandria in the fourth century, although he
can find no record of a legend of this sort about him.83 The collection of St.
Germain-des-Pres includes two versions of the legend, the second more abbreviated than the first. Reference to the controversy between the Jews and
the Christians is omitted, and the blind man is called Victor.84
Latin. 'De magno legendario Austriaco,' Analecta Bollandiana, XVII (Bruges, 1898), 154-157.
'Appendix ad catalogum codd. hagiographicorum Bibliothecae Academiae et Civitatis Gandavensis,' ibid^ iv (1885), 168-169. Crane in Romanic Review, 11 (1911), 256-257 (16). Herolt,
Tromptuarium de miraculis, no. 31. Hilka, in, 168-169 (47); Meister, pp. 156-157 (27). fetienne
de Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, p. 99 (113). Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major),
p. 464 (29). Pelbart, III, pt. 1, art. 2, ch. 3. Thomas of Cantimpre, Bonum universale de
apibus, II, 29 (14). Klapper, Erzahlungen, pp. 300-301 (82).
German. Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 20-33 (3)*
32.
CHARTRES
In the time of Charles the Simple in the year 806 (sic) the Northmen burst
upon Denmark. After this they attacked the cities of Gaul, destroying castles,
killing Christians and burning churches. Rollo, their leader, was besieging
Chartres. Richard, the duke of Burgundy, rushed upon him; while Antelmus,
the bishop, carrying the shift of the Virgin as a standard, led an attack from the
city. Rollo, seeing the danger in which he was placed by the judgment of God,
declined to join battle. A part of his army withdrew to Mt. Cacumen, and six
thousand eight hundred of his men were cut down by the intercession of the
Holy Mother of God. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fol. i47v.
The history of the legend of Chartres illuminates the path which historical
narratives travel from history to miracle and back again to history. The incident is related by the Norman chroniclers of the twelfth century without a
suggestion of the miraculous. William of Jumieges (second half of the twelfth
century), to give but one example, tells how Rollo invaded Frankland as far as
Etampes and was besieging Chartres. Richard, the duke of Burgundy, rushed
upon him, while Antelmus, carrying the shift of the Virgin as a standard, attacked him from behind. Rollo, seeing his army about to be destroyed, abandoned the struggle and retreated to Mt. Cacumen (a hill near Chartres). Mean** Perhaps it was the suggestion of the 'ecclesiastical histories' in the first version that led
to the insertion of the name of Didymus, the blind philosopher of Alexandria, for he is mentioned in the Ecclesiastical History of Rufinus, 11, 7. Cf. Ward, 11, 649.
81
Mussafia, I, 965 (54).
Notes on the Legends
187
while Ebalus, the count of Poitiers, had arrived and together the allies surrounded the hill. The barbarians, after an unsuccessful night attack, fled. The
rescue of the city is not attributed to the Virgin, but to the cooperation of the
allies.85
The same incident in words very similar to those of William of Jumieges is
recounted in the great collections of Mary legends made in northern France.
The part which Ebalus played in relieving the city has been omitted. Its salvation and the subsequent slaughter of the enemy is definitely attributed to the
intervention of the Virgin. In the next stage of its development the tale is influenced by the legend of the salvation of the city of Constantinople, how the
Virgin spread her cloak over the walls and the enemy was able to do nothing
against it.86 The framework of the story and many of the phrases are still from
William of Jumieges, but such details as these have been added, as it is told in
the local collection of Chartres,
The astonished citizens, trusting neither in morale, nor in arms, nor in walls, implored the aid of the Virgin, and they exposed to the winds in the manner of a
standard over the ramparts the shift of the Blessed Virgin, which had been brought
from Constantinople by Charles the Bald. The enemy laughed when they saw it and
tried to send their arrows against it, but soon by the vengeance of God, they were
blinded and could neither move backward nor forward. The townspeople, then,
their bishop Antelmus carrying the shift, made an attack which resulted in great
slaughter.
The incident of the shift has absorbed all the interest, and the part of the duke
and the count who assisted is negligible. Richard of Burgundy arrives when the
real crisis is past.
A somewhat different story, lacking many of the historical details, was current in England at the same time. The miraculous is played up to a still greater
degree, and a much-needed moral is added at the end. The Christians displeased
the Virgin by unnecessary slaughter and the shift disappeared.87
Miracles are frequently borrowed from history, and in the middle ages, history
itself does not escape the influence of the inter-relationship between them.
William of Malmsbury has, in the Gesta regum Anglorum, taken over the
miraculous account of the siege of Chartres. He relates the legend briefly in
words borrowed from the tradition of Chartres, omitting to say anything at all
about the two noblemen who in sober history were the saviors of the city!
Wace also accepts the miraculous version.
Latin. Antoine Thomas, 'Les miracles de Notre-Dame de Chartres,' Bibliotheque de t&cole
des chartes, XLII (1881), 549-550 (27). William of Malmesbury, Gesta regum Anglorum (ed.
Stubbs), 1, 137-138. foienne de Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, p. 112 (132). Gil de Zamora
in Boletin, xm, 202 (64). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 25-26; Die Quellen, pp. 59-60.
Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XXIV (46).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 127-130 (20). Kjellman, pp. 15-19 (5).
French. Jehan le Marchant, pp. 179-184 (28). Kjellman, pp. 271-272 (9). Mielot (ed. Warner), p. 5 (1); ed. Laborde, p. 147 (1). Wace, Roman de Rou, 1, 68-71.
English. Horstman, Minor Poems of the Vernon MS, pp. 138-141.
Norse. Mariu saga, H, 922-924.
"William of Jumieges, Gesta Normannoruvi ducum (ed. Jean Marx, Rouen, 1914), pp.
26-27 (9-10).
M
Kjellman, p. 234 (56), and elsewhere in many collections.
" Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 25-26.
188
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
33. MAID OF ARRAS
The miracle, told by the bishop Alvisius of Arras [ 1131-1147] who witnessed
it, took place in the year 1142 in Arras. Mary appeared to a carefully-nurtured
girl and told her that she had been chosen for the service of the Virgin and that
she must take great care to guard the chastity of both body and mind. When
she was forced to go through with a marriage her parents had arranged for her,
her young husband wounded her severely with a knife. A little later she was
stricken with the plague of 'sacred fire,' and placed along with other victims in
a church dedicated to the Virgin Mary. The Virgin came and led her to a place
before the altar. She was told in a vision that, not only would she wake whole
and well herself, but that all to whom she gave the kiss of peace should be healed.
When someone coming into the church kicked her and ordered her away from
the altar, she awoke in health and healed all the others in the church. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. ij6v-ijg.
The story is told in the collections of Mary legends made in northern France
in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. The city of Arras lies in a region in
which ergotism was endemic in the twelfth century. The church of the Virgin
referred to is probably Notre-Dame-des-Ardents, so named because of the tradition that the Virgin in 1105 bestowed upon two jongleurs a sacred candle capable
of healing victims of the so-called 'sacred fire.' Numerous other healings are
recorded in the chronicles, though there is no record of one similar to this
incident.88
Latin. Catalogus codicum hagiographicorum Bibliothecae Regiae Bruxellensis, 1 (Brussels,
1886), 525-529. Mussafia, Denkschriften, XLIV, 28-33 ar>d 56—58.
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 257-274.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 161-163 (105).
Norse. Mariu saga, 11, 996-1002.
34. CONCEPTION
In the time of William the Conqueror a certain abbot of the monastery of
Ramsey by the name of Elisinus was sent on a mission to Denmark. As he was
returning, a great storm arose. When all in the vessel invoked heaven to help
them, an angel in the guise of a bishop appeared near the ship and advised the
abbot that if he wished to be saved, he must cause the Conception of the Virgin
to be celebrated. A1S Bibliotheque National 12593, f°ls- 12^-130.
LIGHT ON THE MASTHEAD
An abbot sailing in.medio maris Britannici was caught in a storm, so that all
in the ship despaired. Some called upon one saint, some upon another, but none
upon Mary, 'the star of the sea.' For this neglect the abbot reproved them. All
then with one voice invoked the Virgin, and a great light like a candle appeared
above the masthead and the tempest ceased. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593,
fols. 173-173*"Notre-Dame-des-Ardents
d'Arras, Fails et documents (Abbeville, 1918), pp. 10-15.
Poquet had a search made among the manuscripts of the prefecture and library of St.-Vaast,
but no account of this incident was found.
Notes on the Legends
189
John of Garland has confused these two miracles, both of them tales of shipwreck, in his attempt to explain the origin of the Conception of the Virgin. The
legend which he erroneously connects with the first celebration of the festival,
'Light on the Masthead,' is often found coupled with his own story of the pilgrim saved from shipwreck.89 Both miracles are told frequently in the French
collections to which John of Garland's collection is related. Kjellman calls
attention to a story very similar in theme told by Eadmer in his life of St.
Anselm.90. The author of the gloss of the British Museum manuscript of the
Stella marts has in mind the correct tale to explain the origin of the festival of
the Conception, for he writes 'de Ramisseya.' So also the author of the Bruges
gloss who comments, 'Accidit in Anglia.' No version of 'Light on the Masthead' mentions England. Following are parallel texts of 'Conception:'
Latin. Crane in Romanic Review, 11 (1911), 259 (18). Dexter, pp. 37-38 (22). foienne de
Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, pp. 93-95 (106). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vi, 407, note 2.
Kjellman, pp. 180-181 (40). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 69-70; Die Quellen, pp. 44-48.
Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 22-23 ('9)- Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse), pp. 869-870 (189). PseudoAnselm in Migne, PJL^ CLIX, 319-320 and 323-326.
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed: Neuhaus), pp. 135-140 (22). Kjellman, pp. 181-185 (40).
French. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 96-97.
Norse. Mariu saga, 11,1030-1031, 1031-1032.
35.
BRIDEGROOM: TRANSPORTED TO A REMOTE REGION (See
36.
DROWNED SACRISTAN
37.
no. 8, p.
163)
(See no. 22, pp. 179-180)
JEWESS IN CHILDBIRTH
A certain woman near death in childbirth suddenly saw a light from heaven
and heard a voice telling her to call upon the name of Mary, the mother of
Jesus. When she had done this, she brought forth her son without pain. Afterwards the eye of God from heaven protected her against harm at the hands of
the Jewish women who were there. After her purification she took her son and
fled to the church and received baptism. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (99).
The origin of the legend is unknown. In spite of the fact that both Gobius
and Vincent of Beauvais cite the Mariale magnum as their source, they tell different tales. The version Gobius used was probably that reported by Morawski,
how in Seville in 930, a child born of a Jewess who promised that he should
become Christian was baptized, was killed by his father, and then restored to
life by the Virgin. Gobius' tale in this form is not an original version, for it
seems to have been influenced by two other Mary legends, 'Jewish Boy' and
'Son Restored.' The author of the Bruges gloss gives Spain as the scene of the
version of the Stella math. In most cases his notes report accurately the version
which John of Garland used at Ste. Genevieve. It is probable, therefore, that
the scene of the version of Ste. Genevieve and Vincent of Beauvais was also
Spain.
Another very similar tale is told in verse in MS Paris Wibliothlque Nationale
11491, of a knight of Narbonne, who had already had three children by a Jewess.
89
Stella marts, no. 10.
" Migne, P X , CLVIII, 117-118, and Kjellman, pp. 185-188 (41).
190
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
At the birth of the fourth, a voice from heaven tells her to call upon the
Virgin.91 This is the version that is interpolated in several of the manuscripts
of the Vie des anciens peres described by Morawski, and that of Mielot.
Latin. Gobius, no. 27. Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 19. Pelbart, XIII, pars ultima,
ch. 7 (3). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (99).
French. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 141-143. Morawski in Romania, LXI (1935), 203-204, and
»W</, LXIV (1938), 47I-471Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 141-142 (89).
38. HlLDEFONSUS
Saint Hildefonsus, archbishop of Toledo, wrote a book in praise of the Virgin
which so delighted her that she appeared in a vision to thank him. When he
honored her still further by instituting the festival df the octave of the Nativity
of Our Lord, she came again bearing an alb. Seating herself in a chair near the
altar, she said, 'I bring this vestment from the paradise of my Son. . . . No one
except you shall sit in this chair, or shall put on the vestment with impunity.'
After the death of Hildefonsus, Siagrius, his successor, presuming to sit in the
chair and to wear the alb, was struck dead. Those who witnessed the miracle
took up the garment and placed it in the treasury of the church where it is still
preserved. MS Bibliotheque Nationale i2jp^,{ols. i2o v -i2i.
The legend of Hildefonsus, archbishop of Toledo, 657-667, emanates from an
ancient life of the prelate by one of his successors, Cixila, archbishop of Toledo
about 783,82
Hildefonsus was about to celebrate the octave of the Nativity of the Virgin which
he had instituted, when there shone a great light such that no one was able to bear it.
The saint found the Virgin sitting in the ivory seat where the bishop is accustomed
to sit, a seat which no bishop afterwards dared to occupy, except Sisbert who was
forced into exile. The Virgin gave Hildefonsus a vestment from paradise as a reward
for his service to her.
The versions derived from Cixila's account fall into several classes. The first
is the opening number of the HM series,93 and it comprises all the narratives except four. The first episode, the appearance of the Virgin with a book, has been
added. So also the Virgin's prohibition that no one should ever presume to wear
the alb, or sit in the chair. The reference which Cixila makes to the historical
Sisbert who was exiled has been omitted, and the case of the unidentified
Siagrius is substituted for it. In this form the story appears in the collections
made in northern France.
Cixila's account does not definitely say, it should be noted, that Sisbert was
exiled because he dared to occupy the chair. In fact history gives quite another
reason for it. He was deposed in 693 by a Council of Toledo, accused of plotting against the life of the king. Just as in the legend of the Purification (no. 30
above), tradition has associated two unconnected events. The book referred to
is the Liber de virginitate S. Mariae contra tres infideles.0* The history of the
"Mussafia, I, 979-980 (80).
" Vita S. Hildefonsi a Cixilano, Migne, PX., xcvi, 46-48.
**Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 3-4 (1).
" Migne, PX., xcvi, 54-110.
Notes on the Legends
191
famous alb is traced by Fita, the editor of the Liber Mariae of Gil de Zamora.95
The second version of the Mary legend appears to come from a life of St.
Hildefonsus written by Roderigo of Cerratensis, a Dominican of the thirteenth
century.96 It represents a fusion of the HM version and that of Cixila.
A third version is told by Gil de Zamora in his account of the translation and
discovery of the remains of St. Hildefonsus.97 He rejects the first part of the
story, the Virgin with the book, relates the presentation of the garment in the
words of Roderigo of Cerratensis, but incorporates both Sisbert who was exiled
and Siagrius who fell dead. A detail regarding the translation of the alb from
Toledo to Oyiedo is added. Both the first and the third version of the legend
are included in the Liber Mariae.66
A fourth version found in Gobius' Scala celt seems to come directly from the
life by Cixila, untouched by the HM legend.
Latin. Vita S. Hildefonsi a Cixilano, Aligne, P.L., xcvi, 46-48. Vita S. Hildefonsi per Rodericum Cerratensem, ibid^ p. 50. Dexter, pp. 15-17 (2). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 54-55 (1).
Gobius, no. 25. Hilka, in, 155-157 (35); Meister, pp. 143-145 (15). Hugo of Trimberg,
Solsequium, p. 73 (48). Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), p. 479 (54). Pez (ed.
Crane), pp. 3-4 (1). Pelbart, I, pt. iv, art. 3, ch. 2. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale,
VII (120). Meyer in Romania, xxix (1900), 35.
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, xxxa (1903), 401-402 (1). Everard de
Gateley, ibid^ xxix (1900), 44-45 (2). Kjellman, pp. 75-79 (15).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 90-94. Kjellman, pp. 269-270 (3). Mielot
(ed. Laborde), pp. 81-82.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 4-5 (2). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 13-19 ( i ) .
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 78-80; 11, 704-706, 706-707, 707-708.
Ethiopian. Budge, The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary, pp. 10-12 (2), 20-24; One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 1-4 (1).
39. MOUTH OF HELL
A carefully trained nun planned an elopement with a wealthy young man.
On the night before the event she found herself suddenly snatched above the
mouth of a wide and deep pit from which came fetors which seemed to infect
all the air of the world. Beneath writhed all manner of snakes and vermin. The
cries of those within proved the torment of their souls. About to be drawn
inside, she beheld the Virgin a long way off, her face turned away. When the
girl called upon her in fear, she denied her saying, 'These are the fruits of the
flesh. Into this pit of destruction you are throwing yourself.' When the nun
awoke and the messengers of the young man came to her, she sent them away.
MS Bibliotheque Nationale i2jpj, fols. 142^143.
The legend is found only in collections of northern France, although there
is no clue as to the place of origin. Visions of this sort are not uncommon in the
collections of Mary legends. The same tale is related in the Vendome collection
of a certain youth who came with his master to Clairvaux in the time of St.
Bernard.99
" Fidel Fita in Boletin, vn, 58-60.
" Vita S. Hildefonsi per Rodericum Cerratensem, Migne, P.L^ xcvi, 47-50.
97
Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vi, 64-^5 (8).
"Ibid., vn, 55-56 and 54-55.
"Isnard, pp. 106-108 (20).
192
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Latin. Mussafia, Denkschriften, XLIV, 19. Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), p.
376 ( « ) .
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 473-480. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. IOO-III.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 84-86 (58).
40.
CHRIST APPEARS TO M O N K
In the monastery of Savigny when Serlo was abbot, a brother who was a
friend of the author, was celebrating mass alone. When he came to the words
of the sacred canon, Qui pridie quam pateretur accepit panem, he saw the heavens open to display Christ himself, bringing great light and joy. Proceeding to
the consecration of the wine, he beheld a hand making the sign of the cross
above the chalice. Later, as often as he recalled it, he was refreshed by the
sweetness of the odor which encompassed him at that time. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 17491, fols. 88—88V.
Although the tale as it appears in the Paris manuscript does not mention the
Virgin, the fact that it is included in a collection of Mary legends leads easily
to the inference made by John of Garland or his source that the monk was in
some way honoring the Virgin. The commentary of both the Bruges and the
British Museum manuscripts reproduces certain words of the original. It follows
in the Paris manuscript and the Rouen Mariale immediately after 'Judas Iscariot
in Hell.' Serlo de Vaubadon was abbot of the Benedictine monastery of Savigny
in the diocese of Avranches from 1140 until 1153 when he became abbot of
Clairvaux. In 1147 the monastery had received Cistercians.
41. FIRE IN A CHURCH AT MONT-SAINT-MICHEL
A church dedicated to Mary at Mont-Saint-Michel was set on fire by lightning. Although everything around was burned, a wooden image of the Virgin
escaped so completely that the white veil worn over its head as a mitre neither
smelled of smoke, nor was darkened by it. Even a feather from a peacock's
wing caught by it was untouched. This shows not only how Mary protected
her own image from the fire, but how easily she can deliver her servants from
the fires of the flesh. MS Biblioth&que Nationale 12593, f°l- I27V«
Robert of Torigny, who became abbot of Mont-Saint-Michel in 1154, records
in his annals of the abbey under the year 1112 that the church was destroyed
by fire caused by lightning while the monks were chanting matins.100 This
seems to be the incident referred to. Either the legend developed after the
middle of the twelfth century, or the chronicler did not regard it as sufficiently
authentic to record as history.101 The tale is one of the TS collection. '
Latin. Dexter, pp. 29-30 (16). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 99 (12). Herolt, Promptuarium
de mlraculis, no. 85. Pez (ed. Crane), p. 18 (15).
Anglo-Norman. Kjellman, pp. 123-115 (29).
""Leopold Delisle (ed.), Cbronique de Robert de Tortgni (Rouen, 1872-1873), 11, 225.
m
Later historians of the abbey had no scruples about using the tale. Dom Jean Huynes
in the seventeenth century says that when the church was struck in 1112 and reduced to
cinders, the dwellings in the village were not destroyed, and a wooden image of the Virgin
stood unharmed. The statue, he adds, may still be seen in the chapel of Notre-Dame sous
terre. E. de Robillard de Beaurepaire (ed.), Histoire generate de Vabbaye du Mont-St.-Michel
par Dom Jean Huynes, 1 (Rouen, 1872), 164.
Notes on the Legends
193
French. Kjellman, p. 289 (44). Mielot (ed. Laborde), p. 92.
Provenfal. Ulrich in Romania, vm (1879), 20 (7).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, p. 60 (39). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 80-82 (14).
Norse. Mariu saga, i, 128, 259-260, 603-604; 11, 1072.
42. LITTLE DEVIL IN CHURCH
As an archdeacon of Toledo, devoted to Mary, was assisting at a service conducted by the archbishop, he was suddenly snatched away in spirit. He saw
the devil in the form of a monkey sitting above a window. Inkhorn over his
shoulder, parchment in his left hand, and pen in his right, he was listening to
two gossiping women and making notes to be used in accusing the brothers of
the church. The parchment had been completely filled on both sides and still
it was not enough. The efforts of the devil to stretch it with his teeth and
toe-nails caused him to lose his balance. He tumbled from his perch with such
force that the whole foundation of the church seemed to shake. At this point
the priest laughed. Deprived of his benefice, he became a vagabond. Once as
he was praying in a strange church, the Virgin laid upon his breast the scroll of
accusations collected by the devil in the vision he had seen. With this evidence
he returned and related both incidents. The women confessed, and the priest
was restored. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (118).
The collection of Mary legends which John of Garland used at Ste. Genevieve probably contained the earliest version of this tale as a Mary legend. It
seems to have originated in a narrative about St. Martin of Tours and St. Bricius
told in an ancient life of St. Bricius. The life has been lost, but the anecdote is
told in Herolt's collection of exempla,
St. Martin was celebrating mass with St. Bricius who was then only a boy. Bricius
saw the devil writing behind the altar the vain words said in church. When he tried
to stretch the parchment, he struck his head against a wall and Bricius laughed. St.
Martin compelled the devil to erase what he had written after the congregation had
confessed.
The same story is referred to as coming from a life of St. Bricius in the Speculum
laicorum, compiled in the thirteenth century.102 There is no suggestion in either
of these tales about the deprivation of the young man, or the Virgin's intervention. The first detail probably came from a tradition about the relations between
St. Martin and St. Bricius which Gregory of Tours relates in the Historia Francorum.103 He pictures Bricius as a very irreverent young man with a sense
of humor. Exiled from Tours, he finally returned to occupy the bishop's seat.
As for the intervention of the Virgin, she merely usurps the place of St. Martin.
The form taken by her intervention is borrowed from the Theophilus legend,
the scroll placed upon the monk's chest as he sleeps. The vision which makes the
archdeacon laugh in Vincent of Beauvais' version is the similar, but more amusing, tale told by Jacques de Vitry as an exemplum.
The version of the Stella marts and Vincent of Beauvais agree in detail except
for the suggestion of John of Garland that the monk had fallen asleep when the
lot
John Thomas Welter, Speculum laicorum (Paris, 1914), p. 41 (185).
"* Gregorii Turonensis opera (ed. Arndt and Krusch), 1, 59-60.
194
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
scroll was delivered to him. This must be an omission on the part of Vincent of
Beauvais, for his story is not logical as he tells it. The version of the collection
of Ste. Genevieve, John of Garland's source, and that of the Clairvaux Mariale,
from which Vincent of Beauvais made his summaries, were probably identical.
Latin. Gobius, no. 22. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (118). Herolt, Promptuarium exemplorum, de E, no. 16. Jacques de Vitry, Exempla, p. 100 (239). Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), p. 253 (6). Pelbart, I, pt. iv, art. 2, ch. 2. Arthur Langfors,
'Le sous-diacre, les deux femmes bavardes et le diable,' Memoires de la Societe neo-philologique de Helsingfors, vm (1929), 403-408 (Vincent of Beauvais and Gobius).
French. Langfors, op. cit^ pp. 389-403.
Spanish. Re cull de eximplis, 11, 127-128 (512).
English. Robert of Brunne, Handlyng Synne (London, 1901-1903), 11, 290-292. Thomas
Wright and J. O. Halliwell, Reliquae antiquae (London, 1845), 1, 59-60.
43. CHORISTER
A little clerk who loved the Virgin tenderly was accustomed to sing the
Gaude Maria with particular sweetness. For this the canons of the church gave
him alms for himself and his mother. Once as he was singing the Virgin's response in a certain street, an enraged Jew called the boy into his house, killed
him with an axe, and buried him there. His anxious mother searched for him in
many places. Entering the house of the Jew, she heard her son singing the
response clearly. The Jew denied the crime, but when they dug in the earth,
they found the boy alive. He said that a beautiful lady had come to him, asking
him to sing the response just as he had been accustomed to do, and immediately
he became whole and well. When the provosts of the city heard about it, they
put the murderer to death and expelled the Jews from the city. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 18134, f°l- 142-142*.
The development of the anecdote from the kind of simple narrative related by
John of Garland to the more complex tale of the 'litel clergeon' told by
Chaucer's prioress is discussed by Carleton Brown on the basis of all the known
versions.104 Brown regards John of Garland's version of particular importance
because (1) he locates the incident in England, a detail which is lacking in MS
Paris 18134 (Q), but found in the Vendome collection, and (2) he makes a
great deal of the alms motive and the punishment of the Jews, details from Q
which are lacking in the Vendome version.
These observations lend support to the theory of the relationship between the
collections of northern France outlined in the first part of this study. The
version of Ste. Genevieve, the source of John of Garland's verses, was the
earliest and most detailed of the three versions. It was passed on by way of the
Clairvaux Mariale to the Mariale magnum, from which both the abbot of Vendome and the compiler of Q derived their briefer tales.
Latin. Pseudo-Celestine, p. 211 (17). Isnard, pp. 194-196 (41). Hilka, 111, 201-202 (87);
Meister, pp. 189-191 (67). Mielot (ed. Warner), p. xvi. Mussafia, Denkschriften, XLIV, 54-56.
Pelbart, XII, pars ultima, ch. 1 (2). Thomas of Cantimpre, Bonum universale de apibus, pp.
288-289 (13). Carleton Brown, 'Chaucer's Prioresses Tale and its Analogues,' in Publications
of the Modern Language Association, xxi (1906), 486-491,492,495-497; A Study of the Mira104
Carleton Brown, A Study of the Miracle of Our Lady Told by Chaucer's Prioress
(Chaucer Society, London, 1910) and the same author in W . F. Bryan and Germaine Dempster, Sources and Analogues of Chaucer's Canterbury Tales (Chicago, 1941), pp. 447-485.
Notes on the Legends
195
cle of Our Lady, pp. I-IO, 12-18, 20-25, V~5°- Bryan and Dempster, Sources and Analogues,
pp. 467-468, 469-470, 474-485. Klapper, Erzahlungen, p. 301 (83).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 555-572; ed. Carleton Brown, Originals and
Analogues of Some of Chaucer's Canterbury Tales (Chaucer Society, London, 1872-1887),
no. 15 (14), pp. 251-276. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 14-15 (19); ed. Laborde, pp. 156-158 (19).
Brown in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxi (1906), 493-494; A Study of
the Miracles of Our Lady, pp. 29-31.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 12-14 (6).
English. Originals and Analogues, no. 15, pp. 286-288. Horstman, Minor Poems of the Vernon
MS, pp. 141-145. Bryan and Dempster, Sources and Analogues, pp. 469, 470-474.
Dutch. Brown, A Study of the Miracle of Our Lady, p. 19. Brown in Publications of the
Modern Language Association, op. cit., pp. 491-492.
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 203-207; 11, 779-780. Brown, A Study of the Miracle of Our Lady, pp.
IO-II, 25-28.
44. SoiSSONS
In the year 1128 a plague afflicted the city of Soissons. It was a wasting
disease, spreading under the skin, separating the flesh from the bones and consuming it. First destroying the extremities, the swift fire invaded the vital
organs. What is most remarkable was that the fire was without heat. It afflicted its victims with glacial cold, and when the cold had fled, a burning
cancer appeared. It was horrible to look upon the distorted features of the sick
or those recently healed. For six days in September an ever-increasing number
of victims cried out for help in the church of the Virgin Alary. The imperious
Queen of Heaven appeared with the heavenly hosts, so that the earth trembled.
The people rushed to the portals in fear, but immediately the sick were healed.
For nine consecutive days by order of the bishop all those who had been healed
came to kiss the holy slipper of the Virgin in the church, and a festival was
instituted on the sixth of October in honor of the miraculous deliverance.
MS Bibliotheque Nationale 14463, fols. 48-48*.
Boso, a rustic servant of a knight at Soissons, was accustomed to come to the
church on festival days. While his companions made gifts, he gave nothing;
and when the holy slipper was being talked of among them, he muttered, 'You
are very foolish, if you think that is the actual slipper of the Virgin; it would
have rotted long ago.' At these words his blasphemous mouth was drawn toward his ear with such sharpness and pain, that his eyes seemed to slip out of
his head. A great tumor made his face unfit for human use. Roaring and writhing, he threw himself before the altar of the Virgin. But when the pious abbess
Matilda took the slipper and made the sign of the cross upon him, he began to be
healed. He gave himself to the service of the church. Ibid., fol. 52.
Many others were healed at Soissons in the church of Ste. Mary — the lame,
the blind, the deaf and dumb, and the paralitic. Ibid., fols. $2v-6ov.
The disease which is described in the legends of the Stella marts, nos. 44 and
45 at Soissons, no. 27 at Paris, no."33 at Arras, no. 51 at Viviers, and possibly
no. 1, place undesignated, was in reality ergotism. Ergot is a fungus which
attacks rye, especially after a particularly rainy winter. Since the poor of the
middle ages subsisted largely upon rye bread, or bread made with a mixture of
rye and wheat, epidemics of ergotism were frequent occurrences. Two sorts
of the disease were prevalent in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. The con-
196
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
vulsive type was generally associated with the territory east of the Rhine. It
attacked its victim suddenly and ran its course in a very short time. The gangrenous variety, described so vividly by Hugo Farsitus in the selections summarized above, flourished west of the river. For some centuries it visited again
and again certain districts in France, becoming almost endemic in some places,
as for instance, Arras. By the fourteenth century it had become rare, although
there was an outbreak as late as the eighteenth century.105
The disease was known in the middle ages by a variety of names, sacer ignis,
ignis infernalis, ignis beate Marie, ignis subcutaneous, ignis divinus, mat des
ardents, or erysipelas. In the thirteenth century it came to be associated with
St. Anthony and St. Martial.106
The rustic who blasphemed the Virgin's shoe at Soissons seems to have been
the victim of the convulsive type of the disease, and possibly also the unfortunate soul of the 'Milk' miracle who bit off his tongue in delirium. The fact
that this particular type was not very familiar west of the Rhine would assist
belief in the miraculous.
Hugo Farsitus, the author of the small book of the miracles of Soissons, was
a canon regular of Saint Jean-des-Vignes. Although he speaks as if he were an
eye-witness of the plague of 1128, his book was not written until near the
middle of the twelfth century. Its first appearance in collections of Mary
legends is in the collection of St. Victor (SF). John of Garland tells two other
legends from Farsitus.107
Latin. Hugo Farsitus, Libellus de miraculis B. Marine virginis in urbe Suessionensi, Migne,
P.L., CLXXIX, 1776-1780 and 1786. Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 111-112 (30); XIH, 215-218.
Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XXVII (2).
French. Gautier de Coincv (ed. Poquet), pp. 153-162. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 46-48 (51);
ed. Laborde, pp. 190-193 (51).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, p. 88 (61).
Norse. Mariu saga, n, 654-660.
4 5 . N O S E RESTORED
Gundrada, a woman of Sudignicourt near Soissons, besought the Mother of
Mercy to cure her of the fire that had already consumed her nose and lips. The
fire was extinguished, but so hideous did she appear that she gave offense to all
she met. Servants vilified her even when she wore a bandage over her face.
She went one morning to the church of the Virgin at Soissons, and out of her
poverty, offered a candle to Mary. That night, watching late, she felt the
bandage slipping, and the flesh under her fingers grow soft. The new flesh
appeared just like the old, except to a close observer, it looked a bit lighter.
MS Bibliotheque Nationale 14463, fols. 49v-5o.
The tale is one of the many legends told by Hugo Farsitus of the plague of
ergotism at Soissons in the year 1128 and following. Gautier of Compiegne
tells a similar story localized at Dormans in France as happening in 1133.108
Latin. Hugo Farsitus, op. cit^ pp. 1781-1782. Gil de Zamora in Boletin, vn, 118-120 (36).
fiticnne de Bourbon, Anecdotes historlques, pp. 97-98 ( n o ) . Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum
historiale, XXVII (3).
"• George Barger, Ergot and Ergotism (London, 1931), pp. 20-22.
p43
"" Stella maris, nos. 45 and 57.
"* Gautier de Compiegne (or Cluny), De miraculis, Migne, P X n CLXXIII, I379-1382.
Notes on the Legends
197
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 161-178.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 130-iji (81).
Norse. Mariu saga, n, 661-663.
46. Two BROTHERS AT ROME
There were two brothers in the city of Rome, Peter, an archdeacon of St.
Peter's, and Stephen, a judge. Peter's only fault was avarice; but Stephen frequently accepted bribes, and besides he had robbed both the church or St. Lawrence and the church of St. Agnes. Peter died and was carried off to purgatory.
Stephen a few days later was brought before the judgment seat of God. St.
Lawrence in anger bent his arm so narrowly three times that it caused him great
pain, and St. Agnes turned her face from him. A just God assigned him a place
in hell near Judas. But St. Projectus, whom the corrupt Stephen had served,
intervened in his behalf, and after begging the pardon of the injured saints, he
prevailed upon God and the Virgin Mary to allow the sinner to return to life
for thirty days to do penance.
Meanwhile, as he was being conducted through purgatory to hell, his brother
had approached him and told him that a single mass said by the pope and the
cardinals would free him from purgatory. Liberated from hell, Stephen was
brought before the Virgin Mary who ordered him to sing the psalm, Beati immaculati daily. When he had been restored to life Stephen told his story to the
pope and exhibited his arm. It was as purple as if he had suffered injury in life.
MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°' s - 125-126.
The legend has only very tenuous connections with the Mary cult, for it is
St. Projectus who takes the initiative in saving the sinner. It is included, nevertheless, in the HM series.
Latin. Dexter, pp. 24-26 (11). Gil de Zamora in Bole tin, xm, 223-224 (79). Gobius, under
Avaricia. Hugo of Trimberg, Sohequhim, pp. 73-74 (51). Neuhaus, Die Quellen, pp. 10-14;
Die lot. Vorlagen, pp. 41-42. Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 12-14 (10).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, XXXII (1903), 413 (10). Kjellman, pp.
106-112
(24).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 593-604. Kjellman, pp. 286-287 ^39)- Midlot
(ed. Laborde), pp. 88-90.
'
Spanish. Berceo, Milagros, pp. 60-67 (10). Recull de eximplis, n, 9-10 (381). Gayangos, El
libro de lot enxemplos, pp. 461-462 (58).
English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, p. 297 (433).
German. Bolte in Alemannia, XVII (1889), 14 (23).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 102-104; 11, 940-942, 942-945.
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 189-190 (51).
47. LANDMARK REMOVED
A certain rustic laborer, accustomed when he ploughed to transgress the
boundaries and thus to steal land from his neighbors, died. But even as he committed these sins, he had kept the Virgin Mary in mind and had saluted her
devoutly. After the angels had said what they could for him, the devils began
to allege innumerable evils. Just as the evil ones seemed triumphant, one of the
angels reported the soul's devotion to the Virgin.' The demons left in haste and
confusion. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, io\. I2<*.
198
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
The tale is one of the HM series. It had a particular interest for Gautier de
Coincy who draws out the dialogue in a very interesting and lively fashion.
Latin. Dexter, pp. 26-27 ( « ) . Gil de Zamora in Boletin, xm, 202-203 (65). Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 51. Hilka, HI, 200 (85); Meister, pp. 188-189 (6$). Neuhaus, Die
lat. Vorlagen, p. 43. Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 14-15 (11).
Anglo-Norman. Kjellman, pp. 113-115 (25).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 618-628. Kjellman, pp. 287-288 (40). Mielot
(ed. Warner), pp. 60-61 (62); ed. Laborde, pp. 90, 205-206 (62).
Spanish. Berceo, Milagros, pp. 68-70 (11).
48. CHARITABLE ALMSMAN
A poor man for the love of the Virgin very often gave a portion of the alms
which he had collected to other poor. At his death Mary was present, and many
in the house heard her say, 'Come, beloved, that you may enjoy the repose of
paradise, as you wished.' His soul was carried to paradise by the angels. MS
Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fol. 123.
The story of the charitable man is one of the HM series. Apparently this
pious tale did not fire the imagination of the middle ages, for it is told without
variation or ornamentation. In spite of its excellent moral, it is one of the few
Mary legends which did not interest the preachers.
Latin. Dexter, pp. 19-20 (6). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, xm, 222 (78). Hilka, in, 106 (81);
Meister, p. 185 (61). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 34-35. Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 7-8 (5).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, XXXH (1903), 406. Kjellman, pp. 88-91
(19).
French. Mielot (ed. Warner), p. 11 (10); ed. Laborde, pp. 85, 153 (10).
Spanish. Berceo, Milagros, pp. 35-37 (5).
49. BREAD OFFERED TO CHRIST CHILD
There is at Speyer a famous image of the Virgin with her Child placed so
that it is easily accessible to children. One day a little boy standing before it,
while his mother prayed not far away, offered the child a bit of the bread which
he had in his hands. When the image made no sign, he began to embrace it and
to cry imploringly in the words commonly used by German boys, 'Pupe papa,
pupe papa.' The image then answered, 'Do not cry, after three days you shall
eat with me.' The mother in great fright told the story to a senior canon who
happened to be in the church. He warned her that the infant would die in three
days. He was immediately stricken with fever and died the third day. MS
Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, ^s-
I
34~I34V«
This naive little legend touched the heart of the middle ages, for it is told
frequently and in many different forms. Gautier de Compiegne tells it in his
brief collection as happening at Dormans on the Marne. The Latin collections
of northern France agree in localizing it at Speyer, with the exception of MS
British Museum Additional 15123, where 'Epiris' is apparently a scribal error
for 'Spiris.' The author of the gloss of the Bruges manuscript of the Stella maris,
misled perhaps by 'Epiris,' writes 'Constaninopolis.'109
1M
No other version mentions Constantinople.
Notes on the Legends
199
The Paris manuscript, Bibliotheque Nationale 12593 (SG), includes three
versions of the tale. The first two n o are much the same in detail, although the
diction of the second differs from that of any other collection examined. The
third tale seems to be the point of departure for the innumerable German versions of a later period,111
A young monk was accustomed to sit before an altar in a remote part of the
church. Above it on the wall was a picture of the Virgin and Child. One day the
boy offered a piece of bread to the Christ-child. It was eaten, and the scene repeated
daily. The prior of the monastery concealed himself and witnessed the miracle, but
the abbot was unable to believe it. After a short time the boy died, and when they
were ready to lower the body into the grave, it was missing from the bier, and in its
place was a scroll, Corpora sanctorum in pace sepulta sunt.
Anecdotes of this sort are told over and over again, and scarcely ever in the
same manner. The child is variously an infant, a schoolboy, an acolyte, or a
young monk. Other characters develop, especially that of the old canon in the
first SG version.
Latin. Gautier de Compiegne, De miraculis, Migne, P.L., CLXXIII, I 383-1384. Guibert de
Nogent, ibidn CLVI, 617. Gil de Zamora in Bole tin, VII, 129-130 (44). Herolt, Promptuarium
de miraculis, no. 17; Promptuarium exemplorum, de Y, no. 3. Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium,
pp. 50-51 (18). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculuvi historiale, VII (99).
French. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 23 (28), 65-07 (66); ed. Laborde, pp. 166 (28), 210-212
(66). Morawski in Romania, LXIV (1938), 476-480.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 200-210 (139).
English. Tryon in Publications of the Modern Language Association, xxxvm (1923), 378—
386 (3).
German. Bar, Marienlegenden, p. 184 (30). Pfeiffer, 'Predigtmjirlein,' Germania, m (1858),
427-429 (20). Johannes Pauli, Scbimpf und Ernst (ed. Johannes Bolte), 1, 370 (665).
50. PILGRIM OF ST. JAMES
Hugh, abbot of Cluny, used to tell this story of Girard, a lay brother of his
order, about to make a pilgrimage to St. James of Compostella. The night before
his departure he slept with his mistress. Setting out the next morning, he met
the devil in the form of St. James who ordered him to mutilate himself and cut
his throat, if he wished to be saved. When his fellow pilgrims saw what he had
done, they deserted him, fearing they would be accused of robbery and murder.
The devil and his cohorts came in high glee; and they would have carried off
his soul, had not St. James and St. Peter met them. The apostles haled the
victim before the judgment seat of the Virgin Mary, and through the merits of
St. James and the Virgin the soul was permitted to return to life to do penance.
Two wounds on the throat remained to witness the miracle. Girard became a
monk of the Cluniac order. MS Bibliotheque Nationale i2$<>3, fols. 124^125.
The story of the pilgrim of St. James is particularly interesting because it
illustrates how Mary edged her way into the place of other saints and finally
came to occupy the position of importance. As Hugh of St. Victor, 1096-1141,
110
Fols. 134-134' and 147.
MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. 208^209. See above, pp. 21-22. The version of
MS Brussels Phillipps 336 of the twelfth century appears to be the parent of a number of
inedited English versions. Tryon, op. cit^ pp. 387-388.
111
200
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
tells the story, Mary has no place in it. It is a miracle of St. James, and an abbot
is named as the author. When the anecdote is told as one of the legends of
St. James by Pope Calixtus II (d. 1124), the role of the Virgin has become
important. She now pronounces judgment in the presence of a council of the
saints. St. James merely brings the victim into court. The pilgrim is Girard of
Lyons, and the witness, Hugh of Cluny (1024-1109).112 It was apparently from
this source that the legend, which is one of the HM series, was derived.
Latin.' Hugh of St. Victor, Liber de sacramentis, Migne, P.L^ CLXXVI, 583-584. Guaiferus of
Monte Cassino, Versus in laudem psalterii, ibid^ CXLVII, 1285-1288. Anselm of Canterbury
(attributed), Miraculuvt Sancti Jacobi, ibid., CLIX, 337-340. Guibert de Nogent, De vita sua
in ibid^ cvn, 955-956. Acta sanctorum, 2$ July (Venice, 1749), pp. 54-56. Gobius, under
Peregrinatio. Hugo of Trimberg, Solsequium, p. 73 (50). Hilka, m, 196-198 (82); Meister,
pp. 185-187 (62). Dexter, pp. 22-23 (9)- Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp. 38-39. Pez (ed.
Crane), pp. 10-12 (8). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XXVI (38). Legenda aurea
(ed. Graesse), xcix (6), p. 427.
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, xxxn (1903), 410-411 (8).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 287-296. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 87-88.
Meon, Nouveau recueil, 11, 147-153. Legrand d'Aussy, v, 45-47.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 39-41 (26). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 48-55 (8).
English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, p. 258 (376).
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 85-87; 11, 863-869, 869-870.
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 335-336 (104).
51. FOOT CUT O F F
A certain man having erysipelas in one foot came to a church dedicated to
the Virgin Mary in the city of Viviers. When he had been there many days
without being healed, he cut off the diseased member rather than suffer longer.
Soon after he went again to the church and complained to the Virgin that he
of all men had been cast off by her as a stranger and denied the grace of health.
Afterwards when he had fallen asleep, a most beautiful lady appeared and softly
stroked the wound. His foot had been restored. MS Bibliotheque Nationale
12593, f°fc- 131-131*.
The tale is one of the TS series, and the scene is Vivaria or Viviers in the
department of Ardeche. A miracle similar to this is told by Guibert de Nogent
as happening at Grenoble when Leodegarius was bishop of Viviers (10961119). 1 1 8
Latin. Dexter, pp. 40-41 (25). Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 97-98 (21). Kjellman, pp. 141—
142 (33). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, p. 53. Pez (ed. Crane), pp. 20-21 (18).
Anglo-Norman. Kjellman, pp. 142-146 (33). Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 62-66 (12).
French. Kjellman, pp. 291-292 (50). Mielot (ed. Warner), p. 65 (65); ed. Laborde, pp.
98-99, 210 (65).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 56-57 (37).
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta miracoli, p. 14 (4).
English. Horstman, Minor Poems of the Vernon MS, pp. 154-157.
Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 130-131 (40).
sanctorum, 2$ July (Venice, 1749), pp. 54-56. The same tale is included among
the works of Anselm of Canterbury, although it is certainly not by him. The home of the
pilgrim is said to be Laon.
"* Guibert de Nogent, Liber de laude S. Marie, Migne, P.L^ CLVI, 568-570 (11).
Notes on the Legends
201
Ethiopian. Budge, The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary, pp. 35-36 (11), 62-64 (22); One
Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 68-69 ( » ) .
52.
BOY DEVOTED TO THE DEVIL
A certain rich nobleman and his wife who had taken a vow to spend the
remainder of their lives in continence broke their oath on the night of the
resurrection of Our Lord. The woman, angry at her husband, vowed their
offspring to the devil. A son was born, handsome, intelligent, and tenderly
cherished by both parents. When he had reached the age of twelve, the devil
appeared to the mother, and warned her to be ready to hand over the boy at
the end of the third year thereafter. The child, wondering why his presence
brought joy to all and grief only to his mother, demanded the truth from her.
Fleeing by night, he sought the advice of many men wise in these matters. He
went to Rome and thence with a letter from the pope to the bishop of Jerusalem. After consultation with holy men, he was advised to go to a hermit. Led
by an angel bearing two loaves of bread, he reached the holy man. Together
they prayed to the Virgin as one able to open the gates of hell. On the Easter
night designated for the fulfilment of the compact, the hermit, as he said mass,
placed the boy between him and the altar. Nevertheless, just before the pax,
he was snatched away to hell. Earnestly the hermit implored the Virgin to free
the child. When the holy man had finished, the youth responded and received
communion. Afterwards he told how he had been freed and how many thousands he had left in hell. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, f°' s - i64v—166.
The Latin collections of northern France are the earliest known source of
this tale. The analogy of this story with the legend of Robert the Devil suggests itself at once, although the victim of the Mary legend is a wholly virtuous
character, and the circumstances of the birth are different. In the romance of
Robert the Devil, a mother, to whom God has denied a son, appeals to the devil.
The child who is born betrays his origin in every act. That the Mary legend
may at some time have been associated with it is suggested by the legend
narrated in a Florentine collection of Mary legends, dating from the fifteenth
century,114 ,
A sterile woman prayed to the Virgin for a child. Mary replied that if she were
to have a son, it could not be kept from going to hell, and that the mother must be
prepared to endure great suffering.
The rest of the tale proceeds in the same manner as the legend told in the Latin
collections of northern France.
A similar Latin legend of the thirteenth century is associated with Brabant.
The devil demands the child and rears it himself; although the girl, like the boy
of the Mary legend, remains untouched by her evil association.115 Paul Meyer
edits a tale from a manuscript of the fifteenth century which he believes emanates from a Latin version which should be the common source of his narrative
and the French miracle play.116 Its relationship to the version of the Latin colu
'Mussafia,H, 84 (30).
""Karl Hopf, 'Sieben Wundergeschichten aus dem xiii Jahrhundert,' Germania, xvi
(1870,314-315 (5).
"'Paul Meyer, 'L'enfant voue au diable,' Romania, XXXHI (1904), 167-178.
202
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
lections is evident, although there is no vow of chastity. T h e role of the Virgin
becomes that of a lawyer discovering the defects of a contract, and the story
has been influenced by the Theophilus-motive which transforms the conclusion.
The Italian version of the boy devoted to the devil is interesting, because here
the miracle has joined hands with the fabliau, an example, Alonaci believes, of
a miracle transformed by a minstrel. 117 T h e tale is assigned to the latter half
of the thirteenth century, 118
A couple on the way to St. James of Compostella vow to live in chastity during
the trip. The oath is broken, and the woman vows the child to the devil. When the
boy, Antonio, learns the secret from his mother he leaves home. Even the pope is
powerless to help him, and he gives himself over to the devil. Lucifer assigns him to
be the porter of the gates of hell, and he is given a contract. When he gets control
of the keys, he arms himself with a club and refuses to allow anyone to enter. The
devils are thrown into confusion, but the contract stands. Antonio gets his liberty
and becomes a hermit. The devil still continues to plague him in the form of an
attractive damsel. He is completely purified only by death.
Latin. Gobius, no. 46. Mussafia, Denkscbriften, XLIV, 17-19. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum
historiale, VII (115). Pelbart, XII, pars ultima, ch. 10 (4).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 441-454. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 17-18 (23);
ed. Laborde, pp. 159-161 (23). Paul Meyer in Romania, xxxm (1904), 167-178. Adelbert
von Keller, Un miracle de Nostre Dame <Tun enfant, qui fu donne au dyable . . . Tiibingen,
1865.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 173-177 (115).
Italian. Monaci, op. citn pp. 502-506. Novati, op. cit., pp. 757-762.
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 177-179 (49).
53. C H R I S T I M A G E W O U N D E D
In a certain city in the basilica of Santa Sophia is an image of the Virgin and
the Christ-child, into whose heart an angry Jew plunged a sword. When he
drew it out, the wound began to bleed. He took it up and threw it into a well.
Covered with blood, he attempted to flee. He was captured by Christians and
confessed the deed. When the image was recovered, a fresh wound was found
in the breast which remains there until this day. The Jew was converted and
baptized. Gobius, Scala celt, no. 37.
The legend of the Christ image wounded by the Jew is Byzantine in origin.
The Greek versions vary a good deal, apparently representing different stages
of development or different localities, and they influence the course of the story
in the West. Told as a Greek sermon in Combefis, the story goes as follows,119
In a temple at Constantinople over the eastern portal near the well of the Samaritan hangs a beautiful picture. Once a Jew plunged his sword into it. A great
quantity of blood gushed from the wound, staining the Jew's tunic. He threw it into
117
Ernesto Monaci, 'Una Ieggenda e una storia versificate nell'antica letterature abruzzese,'
Rendiconti delta Reale Accademia Nazionale del Lincei. Classe di scienze morale, storiche,
etc^ series v (Rome, 1896), 491. For other suggestions about the relationship between the
Mary legend and the fabliau, see Morawski in Romania, LXI (1935), 158-160.
118
Francesco Novati, 'Sopra un'antica storia lombarda di sant'Antonio di Vienna,' Raccolta
di studii critici dedicata ad Alessandro d'Ancona (Florence, 1901), pp. 752 and 757-762.
u
*£mile Galtier, 'Byzantina,' Romania, xxix (1900), 520-521, prints a Latin translation by
Combefis.
Notes on the Legends
203
a well leaving a trail of blood to betray him. The image, still pouring blood, was
restored to its place by Christians.
There are four principal versions, all but one of them probably from a Greek
source:
I. Hidden in the Cellar. Told by Gregory of Tours in the In gloria viartyrum, this version has some of the characteristics of the Greek sermon. The
image is simply an image in a church, and the well, a dark corner in the cellar
of the Jew's house. There are other details also which, even after allowance is
made for possible oral transmission, indicates that Gregory's story is not derived
directly from Combefis' version.
II. Wife Betrays Jew. The second Latin redaction goes back to another
Greek original, translated into Latin by Johannes Monachus and found in a
number of manuscript collections of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries,
There is in the church of Santa Sophia a well which even to this day is held
sacred. A Christian had erected an image of the Savior in front of his dwelling near
it. One night a Jew stole it and wounded it in the middle (in medio). When blood
stained his clothing he threw it into the well. Those who came to drink found the
knife and the image, from which blood still issued. The Jew was betrayed by his
wife, captured, and converted. The image was placed in Santa Sophia over the well
itself and venerated120by all, especially in the time of Leo the Isaurian (717-741), who
ordered it burned.
III. Mary Image. Until the twelfth century, so far as the available evidence
goes, the story had no connection with the Mary cult. In MS Paris Bibliotheque
Nationale 526S, fol. 27, of the twelfth century, the picture has become 'an
image of Christ sitting in the lap of the Virgin.' Other details of this third
redaction recall the Greek version of Combefis, or some story related to it. The
diction follows closely that of Gregory of Tours with the exception of significant variants. The 'dark place' is 'a well,' as in the Greek versions. The Jew is
baptized, as in Combefis, not stoned to death, as in Gregory of Tours.121 To this
group of narratives John of Garland's belongs, though no version which is the
exact parallel has been found. The tale of Gobius agrees so closely, however, as
to suggest a common original.
IV. Jew and Christian. The tale, as told by the anonymous compiler edited
by Hilka and that of Herolt, reverts to the earlier tradition about the image,
A certain Jew wounded an image which he saw in Santa Sophia in the neck.
Blood gushed out and spattered his face. When a Christian accused him of murder,
he confessed and led him to the well. The Jew believed and became a good Christian.
An almost exact parallel to this version is related in Russian by an anonymous
traveller in Byzantium during the years 1424-1453. The wound, as he sees it, is
above the left eyebrow, and the church is that of St. Nicholas. An earlier countryman, Antonio of Novgorod, about 1200 tells of seeing an image wounded 'in
the neck' by a Jew, although he says no more about it. In these two accounts,122
120
Johannes Monachus, pp. 119-124. Another version, printed by Huber, pp. 119-124,
identifies the image with the one brought from Beirut. In place of Leo, it mentions Julian
themApostate, and then follows a story of his unsuccessful attempt to bum it.
Galtier, op. cit., pp. 518-519. Mussafia's note, II, 8, "wortlich nach Greg. Turon." is
not accurate as the text printed by Galtier proves.
^Sofiia Petrovna Khitrovo (tr.), Itineraires russes en Orient (Geneva, 1889), pp. 96 and
229.
204
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
it seems, we have the original of this version. It was a Greek tale told of an
image in Santa Sophia before the year 1200.
Greek. Francois Combefis, Bibliothecae patrum novum auctariwm, 11 (Paris, 1648), 647-660.
Russian. Khitrovo, op. cit^ p. 229.
Latin. Gregory of Tours, In gloria martyrum (ed. Arndt and Krusch), 11, 501 (21). Sigibert
of Gembloux, Cbronica, anno $60 (ed. Bethmann, A/.GJ/, Scriptores, vi, 318). Galtier, op.
cit., pp. 521-522. Hilka, in, 134-135 (8); Meister, p. 117 (39). Huber (ed.), Johannes Monachus, Appendix, I, pp. 119-124. Gobius, no. 37. Herolt, Promptuarium exemplorum, de P,
no. 45. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, XXI (92). Klapper, Erzahlungen, p. 122
(115).
Spanish. Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos, pp. 451-452 (19).
54.
PAINTER
Fulbert of Chartres tells of a painter who painted very terrifying images of
the devil. But, as often as he painted the Virgin, he exerted all his skill to make
her as beautiful as possible. One day, as he was doing an image of the Virgin
trampling the devil underfoot on a church, he heard a voice from the mouth of
the serpent. 'Why do you paint me thus and her so beautiful? What have I
done to you, and when have you seen either her or me?' With that the devil
swept away all the supports upon which the painter stood. And behold the
image of the Virgin inclined a little and grasped the painter by the hand without
any discomfort whatsoever to him. She held him there until the bishop and a
crowd gathered to witness the miracle. At the bishop's order he came down on
a ladder. When he was asked how he felt hanging there, he responded that he
had never experienced such sweetness in his life. This miracle happened in the
church of Auxerre, and the image, still inclined, is honored by the people. It is
forty-three cubits from the pavement. MS British Museum Additional 18344,
fol. 135.
It is probable that the painter in this legend was painting a statue of the
Virgin above the entrance of a church, not a picture. It was perhaps invented
to explain an unfamiliar style of a statue and the changes in iconography which
accompanied the transition from Romanesque to Gothic sculpture.
Vincent of Beauvais and Gobius both tell the legend as coming from the
Mariale magnum, although Gobius' story differs slightly from that of Vincent
of Beauvais. Vincent of Beauvais says nothing about the painter's joy in making
lovely images of the Virgin. Gobius emphasizes this characteristic fully as
much as his pleasure in painting supremely ugly devils, a detail which appears
in both versions. In Vincent of Beauvais the devil warns the painter before he
attacks him, an incident which is lacking in Gobius. Vincent of Beauvais makes
no reference to the descent of the victim. Gobius tells how a ladder was set up,
and how the arm gave up the painter. All these details appear in other versions.
John of Garland does not mention the scene of the incident, a detail which is
included in the other two versions. The painter is warned, a detail lacking in
Gobius, but present in Vincent of Beauvais. The rescue is emphasized, an item
which Vincent of Beauvais omits, but Gobius includes. In other words, a comparison of the three versions leads to the conclusion that John of Garland,
Vincent of Beauvais, and Gobius were using the same more detailed version as
a common source. John of Garland used the collection of St. Genevieve, and
the other two the Mariale magnum, which was descended from it. The tale as
Notes on the Legends
205
told in the collection of Ste. Genevieve and the Mariale magnum must have
been very similar to that of MS British Museum Additional 18344, of the fourteenth century, for it includes the details mentioned by all three. The original
version probably mentioned Flanders, not Auxerre; and there is no evidence
that the tale was originally attributed to Fulbert of Chartres.
The story of the painter is pictured in the glass of the cathedral of Le Mans,123
along with five legends from Gregory of Tours, 'Theophilus,' and 'J u u a n the
Apostate.' »«*
Latin. Gobius, no. 33. Hilka, in, 184 (63); Meister, p. 173 (43). Herolt, Promptuarium de
miraculis, no. 84. Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), p. 450 (5). Pelbart, VI, pt. ii,
art. 2, and VIII, pt. iii, art. 3. Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (104). Welter,
Tabula exemplorum, p. 44 (158). Wright, Latin Stories, p. 34 (31). Odo of Cheriton in
Hervieux, Les fabulist es latins, rv, 293 (73). Klapper, Exempla, pp. 49-50 (62).
French. Mielot (ed. Warner), pp. 63-64 (64); ed. Laborde, pp. 208-210 (64). Morawski in
Romania, LXIV (1938), 484-487.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 116-117 (74). Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos,
p. 493 (194).
German. Hagen, Gesammtabenteuer, in, 474-476 (76). Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 110113 (!<*)•
Norse. Mariu saga, 11, 1173-1174.
Ethiopian. Budge, The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary, pp. 19-20 (8), 35-36 (8); One
Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 26-27 W«
55.
W I L L FOR DEED
There was a certain knight distinguished for his evil mode of life and his
persecution of churches. He feared neither man nor God, honoring only the
Virgin Mary. But God led him to meditate secretly and to desire heaven. One
day he began to think of building a monastery on the land which his parents
should leave him. He visited the place, and there vowed that he should be one
among the monks whom he intended to install there. In a short time he died.
When the end approached, an angel of the Lord, accompanied by other angels,
came and demanded his soul from the hands of the devils who had already
snatched it. The good angel, being unable to allege any reason for his salvation,
suggested that one of them be sent to lay the case before God. The devils,
confident that a just God would render a decision in their favor, readily agreed.
After an hour the angel returned with a cowl and reported that Mary had
interceded for the knight. God, therefore, had ordered that the knight should
enter the heavenly realm under cover of the cowl. The devils vanished as
smoke, grumbling that they did not understand the mercy of God. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. i44v-i45v.
There are two versions of the legend of the knight who was saved by his
good intentions. In the first, belonging to the twelfth century, the knight venerated only the Virgin and St. Michael. Pachomius is said to have had the story
from one of his monks and to have included it among his writings as an example
of the power of good intentions.125
"*£mile Male, Van religieux du xiii' siecle en France, 5th ed. (Paris, 1923), p. 265.
"* Archer Taylor calls my attention to the fact that Walter Map tells a story with the
same theme in De nugis curialium, iv, 6 (ed. Thomas Wright, [Camden Society, London,
1850], pp. 158-160). It is, however, very different in detail, and not a Mary legend.
™The anecdote has not been found among the writings of Pachomius.
206
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
Latin. Mussafia, V, 38-39.
French. Mussafia, V, 39-41.
Italian. Stolfi, Corona de'monaci, pp. 200-201 (84).
Ethiopian. Budge, One Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 193-194 (52).
In the second version, summarized above, St. Michael appears to have survived as a 'good angel,' the leader of the band. Although the version of pseudoCelestine mentions St. Michael in the place of the angel, it is nevertheless clearly
derived from the same source as the tale of the Vendome collection. Both versions appear to have originated in northern France.
Latin. Mussafia, Denkschriften, XLIV, 20-24. Pseudo-Celestine, p. 205 (8). Isnard, pp. 6062 (17).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 491-500, and Ducrot-Granderye in Annales
Academiae Scientiarum Fennicae, xxv, series B (Helsinki, 1932), pp. 193-214. Mielot (ed.
Warner), pp. 21-22 (27); ed. Laborde, pp. 122-124, 164-165 (27).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 67-09 (45).
56. AVE MARIS STELLA
A student on his way to school was snatched up into the air by the force of
a tempest. He sang Ave maris Stella, and he was set down unharmed and untroubled.
Perhaps this was the legend which suggested the title, Stella maris, to John
of Garland. Although no similar tale is included in the collections of northern
France or in other collections examined, the theme is not unique. The anonymous author of the Liber exemplorum tells an anecdote with the same theme,126
I found another exemplum in an ancient sermon in these words: Some clerks
travelling in a thunderstorm sang Ave maris Stella.' The Virgin spread a veil over
them, under the protection of which they remained until the storm had passed.
57. BOY FREED FROM CAPTIVITY
At St. Riquier in Ponthieu in the territory of Amiens, a noble woman in need
of money pledged her son to a money-lender for many marks of silver. As the
days multiplied, the interest grew, until the parents could not redeem the boy
except by selling their land. The mother in desperation prayed to the Virgin.
One day she went to the square at St. Riquier, where her son was held in
chains, merely to look upon him. In the sight of many people and without any
hindrance whatever, she lifted him to her horse and returned home with great
joy. MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 14463, fol. 57.
Ward's identification of John of Garland's legend with that of the common
'Christ Child Seized as Pledge' needs revision.127 The central theme of the
Christ-child legend, the taking of the image, is completely lacking in the
Stella maris, and no version of the tale has been found which resembles John
of Garland's in other respects. The legend of the Stella maris comes from
Hugo Farsitus, Libellus de miraculis.12* It is not frequently told in collections
lx
Little, Liber exemplorum, p. 30 (49). There is a similar tale in MS British Museum
Harley 3244, fols. 83-84, and others in MSS British Museum Harley 2316, fol. 6o" and Additional 33956, fol. 72'. See Ward, Catalogue of Romances, n, 673 (16) and 677 (12).
"" Ward, op. citn 11, 706 (57).
128
Hugo Farsitus, Libellus de miraculis, ch. 26, Migne, P.L., CLXXIX, 1796.
Notes on the Legends
207
of Mary legends except as a part of that work. In the collections of Gil de
Zamora and Alfonso el Sabio it appears in juxtaposition with another single
legend from Hugo Farsitus. The second legend is, however, not the same in
both cases. The author of the Bruges gloss mentions Corbie in France, another
monastery of the same region, as the scene of the rescue.
Latin. Gil de Zamora in Boletin, VII, 112-113 (31).
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 89-90 (62).
58. SATURDAY
In the basilica called Lucerna [for Blakerna], dedicated to the Virgin, there
is a picture of Mary and the Child which unveils itself miraculously on Friday
evening at sunset and remains so until vespers on Saturday. This is the origin
of the custom of reserving Saturday as the Virgin's day. MS Bibliotheque Nationale 12593, fols. 158*—159.
Blakerna, a suburb of Constantinople, rather than Lucerna, as many texts
have it, was probably the site of the church of the miraculous Saturday image.
Nicephorus Callistus reports the founding of a church there to house a sacred
garment of the Virgin.129 Baronius on the authority of older chronicles records, under the year 1031, the discovery at Blakerna of an ancient picture of
Mary hidden since the reign of the emperor Constantine Copronymous.130
The origin of the Saturday miracle, Warner suggests, may be found in this
discovery.131 William Durandus mentions the legend in connection with the
recitation of the Virgin's hours on Saturday. Gayangos says that Urban II at
the council of Clermont in 1090 decreed that the hours of the Virgin should
be said on that day.
The tale is the last of the TS series. It appears in the collections of northern
France without change, except that a long prologue with allusions to various
other legends occurs in Dexter and in many of the unprinted versions. In the
collection attributed to William of Malmesbury and the Anglo-Norman versions the miracle is ascribed to the same image which figures in the tale 'Mary
Image Insulted.'132
Latin. Dexter, pp. 48-51 (32). Kjellman, p. 229 (54). Pez (ed. Crane), p. 78 (43). William
Durandus, Rationale divinorum officiorum (Naples, 1859), p. 145.
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 216-219 (}7)- Kjellman, pp. 230-231 (54).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 671-680.
German. Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 89-93 ('3)Spanish. Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos, p. 493 (193).
Norse. Alariu saga, 1, 136-137; 11, 1073-1076.
59. PARMA
Philip, the podesta of Parma, writes to the podesta of Milan: We praise God
and the Virgin who defends, rules, visits, and directs our city. We saw clearly
her intervention in the victory of Tuesday, February twelfth. After invoking
the aid of God and the Virgin, both the inhabitants and the soldiery went out
1=9
Nicephorus Callistus, Eccleslasticae historiae, XV, 24 (Paris, 1630), 11, 625.
Baronius, Annales, xvi (Lucca, 1745), 588.
m
Mielot (ed. Warner), p. xiv, note.
""Stella tnaris. no. 18.
180
208
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
against the dragon besieging our land, preceded by a standard on which was
the form of the Virgin. And, although we were resisted strongly at first, we
broke their strength and mowed them down. We took three thousand prisoners
and more, as well as the carrocio of the Cremonese, and the camp fell to us. We
killed Thaddeus, the judge, all his personal followers and more than fifteen
hundred of his knights and people. The remainder we put to flight. Matthew
Paris, Chronica majora (ed. H. R. Luard, London, 1882. Rolls Series), vi, 146147.
The story of the miraculous rescue of Parma is one of the unique miracles of
the Stella maris. The tale is related similarly in a poem of the thirteenth century
celebrating the victory, the Carmina triumphalia de Victoria urbe eversa.133
60. THEOPHILUS
In the days before the Persians attacked the Roman empire, there was in
Cilicia an archdeacon named Theophilus, very diligent in providing for orphans and widows and all that pertained to his office. Chosen by the people to
be their bishop, he pled unworthiness. After three days the bishop consecrated
another in his place who, at the request of a certain clerk, removed Theophilus
from office. Humiliated by these circumstances, he approached a Jew in the
city who led him to the devil at night. After he had denied God and the
Virgin Mary, he signed a pact which he gave into the keeping of the devil.
Thereafter he was restored to his position and prospered remarkably. Meanwhile he began to regret the agreement and, prostrating himself in a church
of the Virgin, he sought her aid with fastings and vigils. After forty days she
appeared to him and promised to intercede with God. When three days had
passed, Theophilus heard a voice which assured him that his penitence was
sufficient. In three more days the Virgin herself came and placed the pact upon
his breast as he slept. The bishop ordered the document to be burned in the
presence of the people, and three days later Theophilus died. MS Bibliotheque
Nationale 12593, fols. i49v-i54v.
The development of the legend of Theophilus has been treated by a number
of scholars.134 John of Garland's legend throws no new light upon the subject.
Greek. Achille Jubinal, Oeuvres completes de Rutebeuf, 11 (Paris, 1839), 331-357- Louis
Rademacher, 'Griechische Quellen zur Faust-saga,' Sitzungsberichte der Akademie der Wissenschaften in Wien. Pbil.-hist. K/, ccvi (1927), 182-219.
Latin. Paulus Diaconus of Naples in Ada sanctorum, 4 February (Antwerp, 1658), pp. 483487. Hrotswitha, Lapsus et conversio Theophili vicedomini (ed. Karl Strecker, Leipzig, 1930),
pp. 67-80. Radewin, De vita Theophili (ed. Wilhelm Meyer) in Sitzungsberichte der Akademie der Wissenschaften zu Munchen. Phil.-hist. Kl^ in (1873), 93-116. Marbod in Ada
sanctorum, op. cit~, pp. 487-491. Sigibert of Gembloux, Chronica, anno $3,1 (ed. Bethmann,
M.GH^ Scriptores, vi, 316). George Webbe Dasent (ed.), Theophilus (London, 1895), pp.
67-72. Honorius of Autun, Speculum ecclesie, Migne, PX., CLXXII, 992-094. Crane in
Romanic Review, 11 (1911), 275 (29). Gobius, under Ambitio. Gil de Zamora in Boletin,
VII, 60-68 (2). Magnum speculum exemplorum (ed. Major), pp. 450-451 (6). Neuhaus, Die
""Ed. Philip Jaffe, Hanover, 1863. M.GU^ Scriptores, xvm, 790-799. See above, p. 79.
"* Among others, Hjalmar Lundgren, Studier ofver Theophiluslegendens romanska varianter, Upsala, 1913; P. M. Palmer and R. P. More, The Sources of the Faust Tradition, New
York, 1936; Karl Plenzat, Die Theophiluslegende in den Dichtungen des Mittelalters, Berlin,
1926; and notes in the various editions cited above.
Notes on the Legends
209
lat. Vorlagen, pp. 12-20. Pelbart, XII, pars ultima, ch. 10 (5). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum
historiale, XXI (69-70).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Neuhaus), pp. 79-115 (17). Eugen Kolbing in Englische Studien, 1 (1877), 38—57. Kjellman, 'Une version anglo-normande inedite du Miracle de S.
Theophile . . .' Studier i modern sprikvetenskap, v (1914), 194-214.
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 26-75. Mielot (ed. Laborde), pp. 74-81.
Rutebeuf (ed. Jubinal, Paris, 1874-1875), 1, 231-262; ed. Grace Frank (Paris, 1925). Karl
Bartsch and Adolf Horning, La langue et la litterature frangaises depuis de ixim' . . . xro*«»«
siecle (Paris, 1887), pp. 462-490.
German. Bolte in Alemannia, xvn (1889), 9-10 (12). Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 194-206
(23). Hagen, Gesammtabenteuer, m, 540-550 (84). Dasent, op. cit^ p. 32.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 5-6 (3). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 162-192 (24). Gayangos, El libro de lot enxemplos, p. 492 (192). Castigos e documentos del Rey Don Sancho, ed.
Gayangos, Escritores en prosa (Madrid, i860), pp. 215-216. Recull de eximplis, 11, 37-38 (408).
English and Anglo-Saxon. Aelfric, Sermones catholici (ed. Benjamin Thorpe, London, 18441846), 1,448. Dasent, Theophilus, p. 30. Carl Horstman, The Early South-English Legendary
(London, 1887), pp. 288-293 (42). Wilhelm Heuser, 'Eine neue mittelenglische Version der
Theophilus-saga,' Englische Studien, xxxn (1903), 5-23. Frans Ludorff, 'William Forrest's
Theophilus-legende,' Anglia, vu (1884), 81-115. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, pp. 318-319
(467)Norse. Mariu saga, 1, 65-69, 402-421; it, 1080-1090, 1090-1104.
Swedish. Dasent, op. cit^ p. 29.
61.
EBBO
A thief named Ebbo venerated the Virgin so much that he was accustomed
to salute her devotedly each time before going out to steal. Once he was
captured by his enemies and condemned to be hanged without delay. As he
hung suspended, the Virgin came to him and supported his feet with her hands
for two days. When the executioners returned and attempted to cut the thief s
throat, the Virgin placed her hands upon it and would not permit it to be done.
They knew then that it was a miracle. Ebbo became a monk. MS Paris Bibliothe'que Nationale 12593, fol. 123".
A certain thief recited the Ave Maria every hour in the day even as he went
out to steal. Captured and strung up, the thief on the fourth day was found
smiling and unharmed. In answer to questions, he said that the Virgin had
held the rope with her hands so that it could not strangle him. They saw it
was a miracle and released him. Gobius, Scala celi, no. 54.
No exact parallel to the version of the Stella marts has been discovered. In
most respects it resembles the SG version summarized above, which is also the
version of Vincent of Beauvais; but it has other details in common with Gobius,
who attributes it to the Mariale magnum. John of Garland mentions the salutation Ave Maria, as does Gobius. He agrees with Gobius, too, that the
Virgin supported the thief for three days, instead of the two of Vincent of
Beauvais. On the other hand Gobius neglects to mention the fact that the thief
became a monk, a detail of importance in both John of Garland and Vincent
of Beauvais. The second attempt to make away with the thief is omitted in
Gobius, described fully in Vincent of Beauvais and alluded to in John of Garland. The thief s description of the way in which he was saved in Gobius seems
to be pure invention on his part. In the case of this legend, minor variations are
' not of great importance, for the tale was a very familiar one, and seldom told
twice in exactly the same way. Few compilers could resist the temptation to
210
The Stella Maris of John of Garland
add or substitute some detail from another version familiar to them, or to add
details of their own.
Latin. Pseudo-Celestine, p. 212 (18). Crane in Romanic Review, 11 (1911), 251 (11). Dexter,
pp. 10-21 (7). £tienne de Bourbon, Anecdotes historiques, p. 103 (119). Gil de Zamora in
Boletm, VII, 76 (7). Gobius, no. 54. Herolt, Promptuarium de miraculis, no. 5. Isnard, p. 212
(48). Legenda aurea (ed. Graesse), p. 592, ch. cxxxi (5). Neuhaus, Die lat. Vorlagen, pp.
35-36. Pelbart, XII, pars ultima, ch. 1 (3). Pez (ed. Crane), p£. 8-9 (6). Little, Liber exemplorum, pp. 24-25 (42). Vincent of Beauvais, Speculum historiale, VII (116). Wright, Latin
Stories, pp. 97-98 (109).
Anglo-Norman. Adgar (ed. Herbert) in Romania, XXXII (1903), 406-407. Kjellman, pp.
91-94 (20).
French. Gautier de Coincy (ed. Poquet), pp. 501-504. Isnard, pp. 319-320. Mielot.(ed.
Laborde), pp. 85-86. Meon, Nouveau recueil, n, 443-446. Legrand d'Aussy, v, 33-34, and
Appendix, pp. 24-25.
Spanish. Alfonso el Sabio, Cantigas, pp. 21-22 (13). Berceo, Milagros, pp. 38-42 (6). Climente Sanchez, El libro de exenplos (ed. Alfred Morel-Fatio) in Romania, VII (1878), 511512 (48). Gayangos, El libro de los enxemplos, pp. 495-496 (201). Re cull de eximplis, 11,
34-35 (405).
Italian. Levi, Cinquanta miracoli, p. 41 (19).
German. Bar, Marienlegenden, p. 164 (23). Pfeiffer, Marienlegenden, pp. 47-51 (6).
English. Banks, An Alphabet of Tales, p. 316 (464).
Norse. Mar'tu saga, 1, 81-82; 11, 949-950, 950-951.
Ethiopian. Budge, The Miracles of the Blessed Virgin Mary, pp. 47-48 (30), 85-88 (30); One
Hundred and Ten Miracles, pp. 98-100 (30).
V. GLOSSARY
Nouns formed by adding trix or tor to usual stems (mediatrix, consolator)
and adjectives constructed by the addition of ivus (denuntiativus) have not
been included.
Certain practices in spelling common in the thirteenth century have been
taken for granted, unless they seem to offer difficulty in reading: the use of c
for qu (condam); c forsc (celus);d for t (linquid), and t for d (set, causiticus)-,
e for ae (stelle) or oe (confedero); f for ph (fisicalis); g for c (argangelus); n
for m (inperator, quandam); p for b (puplicatio); s for c (selum); s for x
(ausilium); t for ct (cuntus); iv for double u (eivlsus); y for i (ymago) and i
for y (nimpha); the addition or omission of an initial h (horo, ortus), or a
medial h (pulcrior, chathedralis); the insertion of n before g (ingnis); the insertion of p between m and n (sompnus); the use of a single u for uu (equs); and
the doubling of, or failure to double a consonant ( pallatium, coruptio).
In general common ecclesiastical terms, and words appearing in Harper's
Latin Dictionary have not been included, unless they are used in the text with
markedly different meaning. For some items, see Medieval Latin Word-List
prepared by J. H. Baxter and Charles Johnson under the direction of the British
Academy (Oxford, 1934).
Numbers in Roman type refer to the page and line of the text, variant readings, and glosses, except that in cases where the word occurs only in a gloss,
italics have been used.
adiutorium, assistance, 99-100, 148.
afforismus, aphorism, 132, 67}.
allopicia, alopicia, kind of leprosy, 111, 304,
309; 112, 313.
apella, appella, used as adj., Jewish, 115, 364.
apostropho, to address rhetorically, 97, tide.
assum = adsum, 136, 747; 140, 840.
atrium, cemetery, 117, 414.
auleatus, covered with rich tapestry, 146,
976.
Aurelianis, Orleans, 120, 455.
bace, berry-shaped pustules, ulcer, 131, 662.
balsamus, the balsam tree, 118, 427.
burgensis, burgher, citizen, 120, 437.
bursa, purse, 115, 378.
calendula, a kind of flower, 121, 477.
camisia, shift, shirt, 123, title; 124, j.27, 528.
Carnotensis, Cornotensis, Carnotum, Chartres, 117, 410; 123, J2O; 124, $26.
Cesariensis, Sesariensis, Caesarea, 119, 436.
cimiterium, cemetery, 117, 414; 118, 417.
compromissum, promise, 88.
condeleo, to destroy, 111, 307, 308.
coniecto, (1) to dream (2) to prove by arguments, 92, 40.
contenta, contents, 97, 125.
contrectabilis, capable of being handled,
117, 404.
Corbi, Corbie, 141, 870.
coopertorium, veil, 123, $21.
crucesignatus, vowed to a crusade, 107,
232.
cucullatus, wearing a cowl, 141, 856.
defloreo, to violate the chastity of, 124, 53;.
denodo, to untie, 97, 109.
dictantes, art of composition, 154, 1149.
discrasia, disorder, disease, 97, 117.
dewerpo, to desert, 113, 336.
doxa, gloria, praises, 119, 437.
dysis, disis, star, 122, 490, 491, 493.
duramen, quality of abiding, 90, 8.
ederinus, pertaining to the ivy vine, 96, 94.
eSrons, shameful, 118, 417.
elephancia, a kind of leprosy, 111, 304, 306,
311.
Eliacus, Elyacus, Helyacus=Heliacus, pertaining to the sun, 128-129, 609.
elimate, nobly, elaborately, 123, ;if.
Elios, Elyos=Helios, sun, 128-129,, 609.
Elya, Elia, Helya [Capitolina], Roman
name for Jerusalem, 99, 142; 102, 169.
erisipila, erisupila, herisipula, erysipelas,
122, 487; 131, 6S4, 6$T, 135, 738.
eronius=erroneus, SS.
evanescibilis, disappearing, 116, 393.
212
Glossary
famen, word, 132, 669.
febrilis, fever-bringing, 97, 117.
formula, small image, 129, 612.
frequentativus, frequentative, which denotes the repetition of an act, 92, 40.
gradus, steps, as a ladder, 140, 84}.
heremus (adj.), barren, waste, 93, 54.
heremus (noun), (1) desert (2) hermitage,
93, S4hoc=hoc est, passim.
Iebus, Jebusite Jerusalem (Vulg., / Par, ti,
4), 102, 169.
Ierosolomitanus, of Jerusalem, 137, 776.
ignis infernalis, ignis pestiferus, ignis
execrabilis, ignis sacer, ergotism, 121,
title; 122, 487; 123, 5o8; 131, 6n; 135, 737738.
iugulator, cut-throat, 112, 319.
iunctura, relationship, 103, 181; 149, 1042.
pastoria, shepherdess, 127, 582; 153, 1131.
percamenum, parganum, parchment, 129,
620.
perhendino, abide, stay, 91, 13.
periclitans, in danger of shipwreck, 88; 124,
title; 136,143.
pertorcuens=pertorquens, distorting by
wriggling into the form of, 89.
plasmator, creator, 103, 182.
plasmatura, thing created, 103, 182.
plegius, pledge, guarantor, 115, 316.
posse, potency, power, 89.
promus=promptus (from promeo, to turn),
104, 188.
pronosticum, prognostics (in medicine), 94,
title; pronostica, symptoms, 132, 672.
pronosticor, to show, indicate, 132, 672.
Ramisseya, Ramsey, 124, $38.
Remis, Rheims, 122, 503.
revolutio, repetition, 88.
ridmifico, to versify, 87.
ridmus, rithmus=rhythmus, 139, 820.
karacter, caracter, sign, in particular of the
cross, 117, 397.
lentesco, to become slow, 101, 164.
leonina, kind of leprosy, 111, 304, 310.
lie tor us, legate, 151, 107;.
lira, measure and diversity, as in song or
poetry, 98, 133.
lirepuup=liripoop, luripup, lurepoop, etc.
(English), something to be learned, lessons, 132, 6-JS.
magum, mystery, #7.
medica, female physician, 94, 72.
melancolia, malencolia, melancholy. 111,
304,311.
maniabilis, capable of being handled, 117,
404.
mercans, merchant, 115, 377.
miseralia, things to be deplored, 138, 802.
minim, miracle, 89, 1; 92, 26, 28; 121, 472;
122, 501; 136, 757; 143, 910.
monacor, monachor, to be a monk, 152,
1117.
nemen, nerve, 133, 696.
nephas, crime, 116, 386.
neupma, neuma, Holy Spirit, 151, 1072.
ningo, to snow, to shower down, 149, 1046.
obaudio, to hear unpropitiously, 140, 848.
pallio, to cover, 107, 232; 144, 940.
papo=pappo, to eat, 134, 710, 715, 715.
Partnensis, Parmansis, of Parma, 143, title,
904. 9°7-
[sacer]flatus, Holy Spirit, 149, 1027; 150,
1063, 1069.
sacrum, sacrament, office, 137, 783.
Salem, [Ieru]salem, (1) ancient name for
Jerusalem (2) pacific, 102, 169. See Solima.
Sarsacenus, Saracenus, Saracen, 106, 214.
scolastes, schools, 109, 26$.
seisunabilis, seasonable in the sense of appropriate, 125, SSIsicorea, a kind of flower, 121, 477.
sinaxis, evening prayer, 103, 173.
Solima, [Iero]solima, poetic name for Jerusalem (cf. Roberti Monachi Historia
Iherosolimitana, IX, 25 [Recueil des historiens des croisades, historiens occidentaux, in (Paris, 1866), 881]), 102, 169.
sotularis, slipper, 131, 658, 6s9, 661.
spiculator, executioner, 110, 283.
spiritalis=spiritualis.
strangulator, cut-throat, 112, 319.
studium, university, 88; 143, 912, 913. .
subpedio, to tread under foot, 89.
Suessionensis, Suesionensis, Suessionis,
Soissons, 131, 652, 658.
sumteneo=subteneo, 144, 927.
suppodio, to support, 147, 988.
Toletus, Toledo, 107, 226; 129, 616.
Tholetanus, Toletanus, of Toledo, 128, title,
592; 129, 616.
tyria, tiria, (1) kind of leprosy (2) serpent,
111, 304, 307.
tyriatus, serpent-like, 111, 307.
Glossary
ve, woe, 98, 127, 128.
viaticum, (1) travelling expenses (2) eucharist (3) medical knowledge relating to food
and diet (as found in Liber viaticorum),
132, 6T$.
213
vola, palm of the hand, 109, 166.
Ypapanti, festival of the Purification, 123,
511.
yconia = icon, image, 106, 220; 139, 826.
VI. INDICES
i. GENERAL INDEX
A=MS London British Museum Additional
Bar, Franz, 158, 162, 177, 210.
Baring-Gould, Sabine, 174.
m3
Baronius, Caesar, 158, 177-178, 207.
Acta sanctorum, 158, 181, 200, 208.
Bartsch, Karl, 159, 209.
Adam, abbot of Estree, 50.
Baum, Paull Franklin, 163, 164, 165.
Adamnan, 173.
de Beaurepaire, E. de Robillard, 192.
Adgar, William, 5, 155, 156, 159, 160, 163, 166, Beauvais, 45.
171, 172, 173, 175, 179, 182, 185, 189, 191, Bede, The Venerable, 162.
197, 198, 200, 207, 209, 210.
Beirut, 203. See legend, 'Beirut.'
Ad laudem prologue, 5, 16, 26, 31,58. See HM. Beissel, Stephan, 3, 4, 7, 8.
Adolf the Scribe, 69, 70, 82.
Beleth, John, 171.
Aelfric, abbot of Eynsham, 182, 209.
Belleval, Praemonstratensian monastery in
Ahsmann, H. P. J. M , 3, 7, 11.
Lorraine: abbot Baldwin, 23-24, 25, 63;
Albe, Edmond, 4.
monk Gualterus, 23.
Albumasar, 81, 85, 146, /. 976.
Benedictines. See Mary legends.
Alexander HI, pope, 25, 63, 184.
Berceo, 157, 159, 162, 166, 167, 175, 179, 180,
Alexandria, 174, 175, 186.
182, 191, 193, 197, 198, 200, 209, 210.
Alfonso X, el Sabio, king of Castile, 9, 68-69,
Bibliothecarius, Anastasius, 184.
7 2 . 74-75. 7 6 . '55. '57. '59. «6o. 161, 162,
164, 166, 167, 168, 170, 172, 173, 175, 177, Bimbenet, Eugene, 183.
Blakerna, 207.
179, 180, 182, 183, 188, 190, 191, 192, 193,
Bland, C. C. Swinton, 53, 57, 182.
195, 196, 197, 199, 200, 202, 205, 206, 207,
Blois, 45.
209, 210.
Bobbio, monastery of, 168.
Algazel, 99.
Alphabet of Tales, Alphabetum narrationum, Boethius, Cons, philos^ 103, 108.
Bolte, Johannes, 156, 158, 177, 182, 197, 209.
164. See Banks and Arnold of Liege.
Boniface [?], pope, 185.
Ammianus Marcellinus, 181.
Boso the Servant. See Soissons.
Amphilochius, bishop of Iconium, 181.
Boston, John, monk of Bury St. Edmunds,
Anchin, 15.
70, 81.
Andrew. See Arras and Vaux-Cernay.
Anna, mother of the Virgin Mary, 91, //. x6 Book of the Miracles of Clairvaux, 30, 57-59.
Bouchet, Charles, 49.
and 21, 113.
Brabant, youth of, 180.
Anselm of Canterbury, 189.
Bromyard, John, 176, 181.
Antonio of Novgorod, 203.
Brown, Carleton, 58, 67, 194, 195.
ATM series of collections, 17-19, 25, 58.
Bruges, Public Library of, 77, 80. See MS
Arculf, a French pilgrim, 173.
Bruges.
Aristotle, 09-100.
Bryan, W . F , 194, 195.
Arnold of Liege, 156, 165, 178.
Arras, 15, 188, 195, 196; bishop Alvisius, 188; Budge, E. A. W.: Miracles of the Blessed
Virgin Mary, 157, 160, 191, 201, 205, 210;
bishop Andrew, 41, 63; church of NotreOne Hundred and Ten Miracles, 157, 158,
Dame-des-Ardents, 188. See legend, 'Maid
160, 166, 173, 175, 177, 179, 191, 197, 200,
of Arras.'
201, 202, 205, 206, 210; History of the BlesAstalius, astronomer, 146.
sed Virgin, 177.
Athelstan, king of England, 167.
Bury St. Edmunds, monastery of, 69-70, 81Auxerre, 204, 205.
82. See Adolf the Scribe, Curteys, Boston,
Avenon, near Orleans, 183.
and Everard de Gateley.
B=MS Bruges $46.
'B,' biographer of St. Dunstan, 167.
Caesar of Heisterbach, 30, 52, 55-59, 182.
Bacon, Roger, 147.
Caesarea,tii9, //. 436, 181.
Barger, George, 196.
Calabria, 45.
Baldwin. See Belleval.
Calixtus II, pope, 200.
Bale, John, 70.
Callistus, Nicephorus, 158, 207.
Banks, Mary MacLeod, 156, 158,162,166,177, Cambrai, monastery of, 9, 180.See MS Cam182, 197, 200, 209, 210.
Indices
Cantigas de Santa Maria. See Alfonso X.
Capelle, Theodoric, abbot of, 12.
Carmina triumpbalia de Victoria, 208.
Celestine V, pope, 51.
Chalade, Cistercian monastery of, 22. See
Gonterus.
Chalons-sur-Marne, Benedictine monastery of
St. Peter at, 21, 22.
Charles the Bald, 163, 187.
Charles the Simple, 186.
Chartres, 4, 45, 49, 186, 187; scene of SM.
legends, 117, 118, /. 415, 123-124, //. 526,
178, 186; bishop Antelmus, 186-187; bishop
Fulbert, 155, 204, 205. See legends, 'Milk:
Fulbert of Chartres,' 'Chartres,' and 'Clerk
of Chartres.'
Chaucer: Man of Law's Tale, 169; Prioresses
Tale, 61, 194-195.
Chrysostom, John, 88.
Cistercians. See Mary legends.
Citeaux, monastery of, 48; abbot Alberic, 7.
Cixila, archbishop of Toledo, 190, 191.
Clairvaux, monastery of, 41, 42, 45, 48, 50, 55,
69, 76,191; unnamed abbot, 50; abbot Serlo
de Vaubadon, 25, 63, 192. See also Book of
the Miracles of Clairvaux, Clairvaux Mariale, Herbert of Torres, Savigny, and St.
Bernard.
Clairvaux Mariale—XJr-Mariale, 34, 39, 40-44,
4 8 . 49. 5°. J4» 55. 56> 57. 5 8 . 59. 6 z . 65» ^
67, 71, 194.
Clavis Compendii. See John of Garland.
Clermont, council of, 207.
Clermont-en-Argonne, 22.
Cluny, monastery of, 4, 41, 167; abbot Odo,
4, 171—172; abbot Hugh, 199, 200; abbot
Peter the Venerable, De viiraculis, 12. See
also Gautier de Compiegne, Girard of Lyons; and legends, 'Peter the Venerable,'
'Woman Revived for Confession,' and
'Vision of St. Hugh of Cluny.'
Cologne, 57.
Combefis, Franc, ois, 174, 202-203, 204.
Compendium grammatice. See John of Garland.
Conrad of Eberbach. See Exordium.
Constantine the African, 132.
Constantine, emperor, 168.
Constantine Copronymous, emperor, 177, 207.
Constantinople, Byzantium, 9, 168, 173, 174,
177, 184-185, 187, 198, 202, 203, 207; scene
of SM. legends, 115, 123, /. 510, 134, 138,
/. 798, 142, /. 889; Santa Sophia, 174, 202,
203, 204; Tetrastyle, 174; church of St.
Nicholas, 203; Orthodoxy Sunday, 174;
festival of Testimonium, 175.
Corbie, 141, 207.
Crane, Thomas Frederick, 4, 167, 179, 180,
181, 186, 189, 208, 210. See also Jacques de
Vitry and Pez.
Crescentia-Florentia-Hildegard series of tales,
169-170.
Crete. See Landos.
Cullman, Oscar, 169.
Curteys, William, abbot of Bury St. Edmunds, 81.
Damascus, 161.
Damian, Peter, 182.
Dasent, George Webbe, 208, 209.
Dean, Ruth J., 37, 48.
Delisle, Leopold, 4, 192.
Dempster, Germaine, 194, 195.
De Poorter, A., 77, 80.
Dexter, Elsie F., 155, 159, 160, 162, 166, 167,
172, 173, 179, 182, 189, 191, 192, 197, 198,
200, 207, 210.
Diaconus, Paulus, 208.
Dictionarius. See John of Garland.
Diomedes, 98.
Discipulus, 54. See Herolt.
Dominicans. See Mary legends.
Dormans, on the Marne, 196, 198.
Ducrot-Granderye, Arlette P., 27, 206.
Dunes, Cistercian monastery of, 80.
Durandus, William, 171, 207.
Eadmer, of Canterbury, 167, 189.
Ebalus, count of Poitiers, 187.
Ebbo the Thief, 209.
Ebersolt, Jean, 174.
Egbert of Schonau, 37.
Egidius of Paris, 81.
Elements-series of legends, 5, 6, 12, 14, 31,
7*. 73Endres, J. A., 6.
England, scene of SM. legends, 108, 120, 124,
130.
Elisinus, Helisinus, abbot of Ramsey, 188.
Ephesus, council of, 172.
Epithalamium beate Marie virginis. See John
of Garland.
Ergotism, 78, 122, /. 487, 123, 131, 135, //.
737-738, 184, 185, 188, 195-197, 200. See
Ignis inferndis.
Erysipelas. See Ergotism.
Estree, Cistercian monastery of, 50. See
Adam.
Ethclfleda, Elgifu, English noblewoman, 167.
£tienne de Bourbon, 156, 163, 170, 171, 176177, 186, 187, 189, 196, 210.
Evagrius Scholasticus, historian, 157, 158.
Everard de Gateley, monk of Bury St. Edmunds, 156, 179, 191.
Exemplum. See Mary legends.
Exordium magnum ordinis Cisterciensis, 41,
58, 168.
Fabliau. See Mary legends.
Indices
2l6
Farsitus, Hugo, 4, 15, 23, 61,195-196, 206-207.
See also Soissons.
Fecamp, church of, 4.
Fita, Fidel, 166, 191. See Gil de Zamora.
Flanders, 40-41, 45, 54, 205.
Floardus, 158, 161, 168.
Florence de home, 169.
Floss, H. L.?, 181, 182.
Franciscans. See Mary legends.
Frank, Grace, 209.
Frederick II, emperor, 67, 78, 79, 143, /. 905.
Furnival, F. J., 166.
Galtier, femile, 177-178, 202, 203-204.
Gautier de Chateau Thierry, 78, 79, 143, /.
913.
Gautier de Coincy, 10, 27-31, 67, 156, 159,
160, 161, 162, 164, 165, 167, 170, 173, 175,
177, 179, 180, 182, 183, 188, 191, 192, 195,
196, 197, 198, 200, 202, 206, 207, 209, 210.
Gautier de Compiegne or de Cluny, 15, 196,
198, 199.
Gayangos, Pascual de, 159, 162, 177, 178, 180,
197, 204, 205, 207, 209, 210.
Gesta Romanorum, 169, 176-177.
Gil de Zamora,
166, 167, 172,
183, 187, 189,
200, 207, 208,
155, 156, 159, 160, 162, 163,
173, 175, 179, 180, 181, 182,
191, 192, 196, 197, 198, 199,
210.
Giles, J. A ? 33.
Gilson, Julius P , 81, 82.
Girard of Lyons, lay brother of Cluny, 199,
200.
Glastonbury, 167.
Gobius, Johannes, Junior, 9, 28, 34, 40, 41-42,
46-47, 48, 52-54, 56, 57, 58, 74-75, 156, 158,
163,165,166,167,168,170,173,175,176-177,
179, 180, 181, 183, 189, 190, 191, 194, 197,
200, 202, 203, 204, 205, 208, 209-210.
Gonterus, abbot of Chalade, 22.
Gower, John, 169.
Grant Marial, 30, 54. See also Mariale magTlMtfl.
Gregory II, pope, 174.
Gregory of Tours: In gloria many rum, 3, 5,
9, 23, 25, 32, 38, 63, 64, 158, 161, 168, 203204, 205; Historici Francorum, 193.
Graesse, Theodor. See Legenda mirea.
Grosseteste, Robert, 81.
Guaiferus of Monte Cassino, 200.
Guerard, Benjamin, 78.
Guibert de Nogent, 4, 15, 199, 200.
Gundrada, woman of Sudignicourt, 196.
Hagen, Friedrich Heinrich von der, 162, 180,
182, 205, 209.
Haimon, abbot of St. Pierre-sur-Dive, 4.
Halliwell, J. O , 194.
Halm, Karl von, 98.
Hamartolus, Georgios, chronicler, 174.
van Hamel, A. G., 29.
Heisterbach, monastery of. See Caesar of
Heisterbach.
Helinand of Froidmont, 23, 25, 32,62, 63,183.
Henmann of Bologna, 156, 177, 179.
Henry de France, archbishop of Rheims, 25,
184.
Henry II, king of England, 37.
Heraclius, emperor, 170.
Herbert, J. A., 157, 162.
Herbert of Torres, or of Qairvaux, 41.
Herman of Laon, 4, 23.
Hermitage, 27.
Herolt, John, called Discipulus, 9, 30, 53-54,
56; Promptuarium exemplorum, 53, 166,
168, 173, 175, 178, 181, 193, 194, 199, 203-
204; Promptuarium de miraculis, 30, 53,
156, 159, 160, 167, 168, 172, 179, 180, 183,
186, 190, 192, 198, 199, 205, 210; Sermones,
Hervieux, Leopold, 177, 181, 205.
Heuser, Wilhelm, 209.
Hildefonsus, archbishop of Toledo, 190-191;
Liber de virginitate, 190.
Hilka, Alfons, 57, 158, 159, 161, 163, 167, 170,
175, 176, 177, 179, 180, 185, 186, 191, 194,
198, 200, 204, 205.
Hippocrates, 67, 81, 94, /. 64.
HM series of legends, 5-7, 8, 10, 12, 13, 15,
16-18, 24, 31, 44, 72, 156, 162, 182, 190, 191,
198, 200.
Hoferer, Max, 174.
Holweck, F. G., 171.
Honorius of Autun: Gemma animae, 171;
Sacramentarium, 171; Speculum ecclesiae,
171, 172, 208.
Hopf, Karl, 201.
Horace: Ep., 92; Sat^ 115; quoted in error,
'34-.
Horning, Adolf, 209.
Horstman, Carl, 155, 159, 175, 180, 187, 195,
200, 209,
Hrotswitha of Gandsheim, 208.
Huet, Gedeon Busken, 52, 164, 165.
Hugh of Fleury, 158, 185.
Hugh of St. Victor: Liber excerptionum, 185;
Liber de sacramentis, 200.
Hugo of Trimberg, 156, 158, 160, 162, 163,
175, 179, 180, 182, 191, 197, 199, 200.
Huber, P. M., 203-204. See Monachus.
Huynes, Dom Jean, 192.
Ibn al-Jassar, 132.
Ignis infernalis, pestiferus, execrabilis, subcutaneous, sacer, divinus. See Ergotism.
Innocent IV, pope, 79.
Isnard, H., 48, 49, 50, 67, 155, 156, 159, 162,
163, 165, 172, 175, 179, 180, 182, 191, 194,
206, 210.
Indices
Jacques de Vitry, 177, 193-194.
James, M. R., 69-70, 81.
Janauschek, Leopold, 80.
Joachim, father of the Virgin Mary, 62, 91,
/. 13, 176.
Jehan Ie Marchant, 179, 182.
Johannitius, 81, 97.
John of Coutances, 4.
John of Garland, 33, 39, 41, 49, 61, 66, 76, 77,
79, 80, 84, 85, 139, //. 821-822, 160, 164, 167,
189, 193, 194, 196, 203, 204, 206, 208, 209;
An lectoria, 77; Assertiones fidei, 77; Clavis
Compendii, 85, 87, 88, i n ; Commentarius,
77; Compendium grammatice, 85,114; Dictionarhts, 77; Epithalamium beate Marie
virginis, 60, 69, 85, 90, 91, 145; Georgica
spiritualia, 77; Liber elegiarum, 81, 145;
Mir a or Mirabilia, 77; Morale scolarium,
77, 88, 93, 98, 106,132. See also Stella maris.
Jerome: Epistolae, 172; pseudo-, 173.
Jerusalem, 102, 185; scene of SJM. legends,
9 9 , / . 142, 137, 138, 160, 166.
John of Damascus, 172.
Joly, M. A , 175.
Jonas, monk, 168.
Joscio, monk of Canterbury, 63.
Jubinal, Achille, 177, 208.
Julian the Apostate, 118, /. 430, 119, /. 434,
181, 203. See legend, 'Julian the Apostate.'
Jumieges, monastery of, 31,42,55. See Rouen
Mariale.
Justinian, emperor, 157, 174, 185.
Kaiserchronik, 164-165, 169-170.
Keil, Heinrich, 98.
von Keller, Adelbert, 202.
Kerenyi, Karl, 169.
Khltrovo, S. P., 203, 204.
Kjellman, Hilding, 5, 6, 10, 155, 156, 157, 160,
162, 166, 167, 171, 173, 175, 178, 179, 180,
182, 185, 187, 189, 191, 192, 193, 197, 198,
200, 207, 209, 210.
Klapper, Joseph: Erzahlungen, 180, 186, 195,
204; Exempla, 161, 164, 205.
Kolbing, Eugen, 209.
Kronenburg, J. A. F., 7.
Laborde, Alexander, comte de. See Alielot.
Lambecius, Petrus, 178.
Landos, Agapios, monk of Crete, 158.
Langfors, Arthur, 4, 27, 30, 54, 156, 165, 194.
Langres, 167.
Laon, 200.
Laude, P. J , 80.
Lausanne, 40, 41,45. See legends, 'Blasphemer
of Lausanne' and 'Girl of Lausanne.'
Legenda aurea. 159, 162, 178, 181, 182, 189,
200, 210.
Legrand d'Aussy, P. J. B., 156, 170, 200, 210.
217
Leicester, countess of, recluse of Canterbury,
50.
Leland, John, 70.
Leo the Great, 20.
Leo, the Isaurian, emperor, 203.
Leo IX, pope, 164.
Leodegarius, bishop of Viviers, 200. See legend, 'Foot Cut Off: Grenoble.'
Leprosy, kinds of, 111-112, //. 304-315.
Lesser Armenia, 158. See legend, 'Jewish Boy
Baptized.'
Levi, Ezio, 155, 157, 160, 163, 167, 170, 177,
180, 200, 210.
Libanius, the sophist, 181.
Liber viaticorum of Ibn al-Jassar, 132.
Liege, archdeacon of, 175.
Lincoln, 167.
Little, A . G , 171, 179, 180, 185, 206, 210.
Louis, abbot of St. Peter at Chalons-surMarne, 21-22.
Louis VII, king of France, 12.
Luard, H . R., 79, 208.
Lucerna. See Blakerna.
Lucius, Ernst, 3, 171, 172, 185.
Lucius, pope, 176. See legend, 'Incest.'
Ludorff, Frans, 209.
Lundgren, Hjalmar, 208.
Lydda, Lidd. See legend, 'Libia.'
Lyons, 79. See Cluny, Girard of Lyons.
Lumley, John, Lord, 81-82.
Magnum legendarium Austriacum, 186.
Magnum speculum exemplorum, 156,163,165,
172, 177, 181, 186, 191, 194, 205, 208. See
also Speculum exemplorum.
Major, John. See Magnum speculum exemplorum.
Mai des ardents. See Ergotism.
Male, femile, 205.
Mansi, G. D., 178.
Map, Walter, 205.
Marbod of Rennes, 208.
Mariu saga, 155, 156, 157, 159, 160, 161, 162,
168, 170, 172, 173, 175, 179, 180, 182, 187,
188, 189, '191, 193, 195, 196, 197, 200, 205,
207, 209, 210.
Mare, Praemonstratensian monastery of, 184.
See legend, 'Mare.'
Mariale magnum, 28, 29, 30, 33, 34, 35, 36-55,
56-59, 62, 65, 66, 67, 69, 73, 76, 158, 164, 194,
204. See also Grant Marial.
Martene, Edmond, 184.
Martianus Capella, 67, 99.
Mary images, 3, 9, 106, //. 214-219, 115, //.
364-369, 161, 172-173; eastern, 115-116, //.
370-381, 138, //. 796-801, 142, //. 886-903,
173-175, 202-204, 207; western, 106, //.
220-225, 120, //. 454-4591 ' " > tt' 5 O2 -5°7t
129, //. 610-615, 134-135. 0. 706-723, 139140, //. 826-&f3, 161-166, 183, 184, 192-193,
218
Indices
198-199, 204-205, 207; in guide-books, 165,
173, 174; legendary portraits, 3, 20, 114, II.
358-363» '43. ll- 9°4-9°9. «59. »7*. 207-208.
See Miraculous crucifixes and Venus image.
Mary legends and oral sources: pilgrims and
travellers, 9, 175, 180, 203; a merchant, 9,
175; a minstrel, 202; word-of-mouth, 21-22,
23-24, 49-50, 57, 175, 180, 184.
and other literary forms: the exemplum, 8-9, 52-54, 73, 176, 193, 198; the
fabliau, 202; the romance, 169-170, 180, 201.
and written sources: chronicles and
histories, 8, 20, 23, 25, 79, 158, 178, 184-185,
192, 204, 207-208; communal records, 20,
79, 207-208; monastic records, 5, 8, 50,
192; saints' lives, 5, 8, 160, 167, 171, 181,
189, 190-191, 193, 200; sermons and homilies, 157, 162, 174-175, 177and the monastic orders: Benedictines, 21-22, 31, 42, 55; Praemonstratensians,
7, 11, 23, 184; Cistercians, 7-8, 22, 23, 25, 28,
*9. 3°» 34. 3<S, 37.4«. 4*. 43. 45. 4 8 . 49. 5°. 5*.
55. 57. 5 8 . 59. 6 l . 6h 7'. 73. 76. l 6 8 . "92>
Dominicans, 8, 30, 41, 43, 52, 53, 54, 55, 73,
165, 191; Franciscans, 8, 43, 54, 73, 79.
, cycles of, 9, 155-156, 161-165, 178«79. i79" l8 °Mauritius, archbishop of Rouen, 15, 171.
Meister, Aloys, 57, 158,159, 161,163, 167,175,
177, 179, 180, 185, 186, 191, 194, 198, 200,
204, 205.
Melito of Sardis, 12, 23, 26, 31, 37, 38, 45, 49,
55. 61, 65, 73.
de Mely, Ferdinand, 174.
Menas, patriarch of Constantinople, 157.
Meon, D. M., 156, 165, 170, 177, 200, 210.
Meyer, Paul, 159, 161, 168, 179, 182, 201,
Mielot, Jean, 155, 156, 158, 160, 162, 163,
166, 167, 172, 173, 175, 177, 179, 181,
183, 187, 189, 190, 191, 192, 193, 195,
197, 198, 199, 200, 202, 205, 206, 207,
210.
202.
164,
182,
196,
209,
Mirabilia Romae, 165, 174.
Miracula beate Marie virginis of John of Garland, 69, 85, 154. See Stella marts.
Miraculous crucifixes, 64, 107, //. 226-231,
117, //. 400-408, 166, 174, 177-178, 202, 203204.
Mirande virginis laudes prologue, 31, 38, 44,
60.
Molinet, R. P. Claude du, 60.
Monaci, Ernesto, 202.
Monachus, Johannes, 157-158, 174, 203-204.
Mont-St.-Michel, 129, 192. See legends, 'Fire
at Mont-St.-Michel' and 'Childbirth in the
Sea.'
Morawski, Jozef, 30, 54, 162, 163, 164, 168,
189, 190, 199, 202, 205.
More, R. P , 208.
Moschos, Johannes, 158.
MS Cambridge 38;, 77.
MS Bruges $46, 77, 87, 88, 90, 91, i n , 114,
145. See below, MS Bruges.
MS London British Museum Royal 12 B xii,
94- 97MS London British Museum Royal 12 G ii,
99.
Mussafia, Adolf, 3, 4, 5, 6, 9, n , 12, 14, 15, 16,
17, 20, 21, 22, 23, 26, 27, 28, 29, 30, 31, 33,
40, 43, 52, 53, 60, 61, 62, 159, 161, 163, 165,
169, 170, 173, 175, 177, 178, 183, 186, 188,
190, 192, 194, 201, 202, 203, 206.
Nerva, emperor, 174.
Neuhaus, Carl, 5, 155, 159, 160, 166, 172, 173,
179, 180, 181, 182, 187, 189, 197, 198, 200,
208-209, Z I °t
Neufchatel, 45.
Nicea, council of, 177.
Negri, Gaetano, 181.
Notre-Dame-des-Ardents, church of. See
Arras.
Notre-Dame de Paris. See Paris.
Noyon, 19, 45; monk of, 12; bishop Radbod
11, 38. See legend, 'Thread in Lip.'
Novati, Francesco, 202.
Osbern, of Canterbury, 167.
Odo of Cheriton, 181, 205.
Omont, Henri, 26.
Originum Cisterdensium, 80.
Orleans, 120, //. 455, 183. See legend, 'Orleans.'
Orthodoxy Sunday. See Constantinople.
Ovid, Meta., 99.
Oviedo, 191.
Pachomius, 205.
Paetow, L. J., 77, 80, 81,85. See John of Garland, Morale scolarium.
Palmer, P. M., 208.
Paris, 11-12, 14, 22, 43, 45, 49, 55, 59, 67, 69,
72, 73, 78, 87, 171, 184, 195; scene of SM.
legends, 121, //. 486, 143, //. 912; NotreDame de, 67, 78, 121, 122, 184; church of
St. Martin, 12; St. Germain-des-Pres, n 12, 22, 59, 72; St. Victor, 11-12, 59; Sorbonne, 11, 12, 15, 17,18, 72; Ste. Genevieve,
11, 59, 70, 73, 80, 87. See also MSS Paris
14463 and 12J93, Ste. Genevieve, William
of Auvergne, and Gautier de Chateau Thierry.
Paris, Gaston, 164.
Paris, Matthew, 79, 208.
Parma, 9, 67, 78-79, 143, //. 904, 207-208.
Pauli, Johannes, 199.
Pelbart, Oswald, of Temesvar, 54, 56, 156,
163, 165, 171, 179, 180, 181, 186, 190, 191,
194, 202, 205, 209, 210.
Pelizaeus, Theodor, 158.
Indices
Persius, 134.
Peter, archdeacon of St. Peter's at Rome, 197.
See legend, 'Two Brothers at Rome.'
Peter the Venerable. See Cluny.
Pez, Bernhard, 4, 6-7, 9, 13, 14, 27, 31, 33, 38,
44, 58, 64, 71, 72, 73, 155, 156, 159, 160, 162,
167, 171, 172, 175, 179, 180, 181, 182, 189,
190, 191, 192, 197, 198, 200, 210.
Pfeiffer, Franz: Marienlegenden, 158, 162,
171, 179, 180, 181, 182, 186, 199, 205, 209,
210; Predigtmarlein, 158, 199.
Philip, podesta of Parma, 207.
Philip Augustus, king of France, 37, 45.
Pigeon, E. A., 4.
Pirenne, Henri, 80.
Pits, John, 70.
Plenzat, Karl, 208.
Poncelet, Albert, 31.
Poquet, Alexandre Eusebe, 188. See Gautier
de Coincy.
Potho, Botho, monk of Priefling, 4, 6.
Power, Eileen, 53.
Praemonstratensians. See Mary legends.
Procopius, 174.
Ptolemy, astronomer, 100, 102.
Pseudo-Anselm, 6, 15, 17, 18, 161, 171-172,
200.
Pseudo-Boethius, 81.
Pseudo-Caesarius, 30, 44, 53, 55-59. See also
Hilka and Meister.
Pseudo-Celestine, 50, 51, 56, 156, 159,163, 194,
206, 210.
Pseudo-Clementine romance, 169.
Pseudo-Matthei Evangelium, 3, 49, 55, 60, 65,
73. 84. 9'Q=MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 181 $4.
Quoniam gloriosissima virgo prologue, 16, 19,
« . 2 4. 3 2 . 37. 38, 39. 43. 44. 57. 58, 60, 61,
62, 63, 64, 65, 66, 72, 73, 84.
R=MS Rouen A 53; and U 134=Rouen
Mariale.
Radbertus, Paschasius, 158.
Radbod II. See Noyon.
Rademacher, Louis, 208.
Radewin of Freising, 208.
Ramsey, monastery of, 124, 189.
Recullde eximplis, 164,166,170,182,194,197,
209, 210.
Renclus of Moiliens, 29, 30.
Raynaud, Gaston, 161.
Rich, Edmund, archbishop of Canterbury,
82, 106, 165.
Richard sans Peur, Duke of Normandy, 180.
Rheims, 12, 23, 25, 45; scene of SM. legends,
122, /. 503, 184.
de Ricci, Seymour, 80.
Richard, duke of Burgundy, 186, 187.
Ritter, Franz, 179.
219
Robert of Brunne, 194.
Robert of Alolesme, 7.
Robert of Torigny, abbott of Mont-St.Michel, 192.
Robert the Devil, romance of, 201.
Rocamador, 4, 23, 42-43.
Rochefoucault, Cardinal de la, 60.
Roderigo of Cerratensis, 191.
Rollo, duke of Normandy, 186.
Roman de Rou of Wace, 180, 187.
Rome, 15-16, 20, 164, 168, 174, 176, 185, 186,
197, 201; scene of SM. legends, 109, /. 269,
123, 133; Coliseum, 165; Lateran, 174; Pantheon, St. Maria Rotunda, 165, 185; church
of St. Agnes, 197; church of St. Lawrence,
197; church of St. Peter's, 165.
Rosarius, 9, 30, 42, 54, 56, 167.
Rouen, Public Library of, 31; abbey of St.
Ouen, 180. See MSS Rouen.
Rouen Mariale. See AfSS Rouen.
Royaumont, monastery of, 55.
Rufinianus, Julius, 98.
Rufinus, historian, 186.
St. Anthony of Vienna, 202.
St. Augustine, 11; sermon of, 31.
St. Augustine's Abbey, Canterbury, 69-70.
St. Basil, 119, /. 438, 181.
St. Bernard, 12, 31, 50, 55, 191.
St. Bricius, 193.
St. Cassian, monastery of, 162.
St. Dunstan, 160, 167. See legends, 'St. Dunstan.*
St. Elizabeth of Schonau, 37, 44-45, 49, 55, 61,
65. 73Ste. Genevieve, monastery of, 11, 70; collection of, 9, 11-12, 22, 33, 44, 59-69, 71, 73,
80, 84, 193, 194, 204* 205; library of, 59-60.
St. Germain-dcs-Pres. See MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593.
St. Hugh of Cluny. See Cluny.
St. James, 199, 200.
St. James of Compostella, 199, 202.
St. Louis, king of France, 68.
St. Martin of Tours, 193; monastery of, 22;
monk Gonterus, 22. See Chalade.
St. Mauritius, 171.
St. Mercury, 119, /. 441, 181.
St. Michael, 205, 206.
St. Nicholas, 175.
St. Nicholas of Clusa, monk of, 159.
St. Norbert, n .
St. Odo of Cluny. See Cluny.
St. Ouen, abbey of. See Rouen.
St. Peter, 169-170, 199.
St. Pierre-au-Mont. See Chalons-sur-Marne.
St. Pierre-sur-Dive, monastery of, 4.
St. Projectus, 197.
St. Raphael, 183.
St. Riquier, monastery of, 206.
22O
Indices
St. Thomas of Canterbury, 182.
Salimbene, Fra, 79.
Salter, H. E., 70.
Sanchez, Climente, 210.
Savigny, Cistercian monastery of, 23, 25, 62,
63, 192.
Scala cell. See Gobius.
Schlauch, Margaret, 169.
Schonbach, Anton E , 159.
Schroder, Edward, 164, 170.
Scott, H. von E., 57, 182.
Sedulius, Paschal, carmin^ 129.
Seneca, Ep. mor^ 87.
Sergius I, pope, 171, 185.
Serlo de Vaubadon, abbot of Savigny, 25,
63, 192. See also Clairvaux.
Servois, Gustave, 4.
Severinus, pope, 162.
SG = collection of St. Germain-des-Pres=AfS
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593.
Siagrius, so-called archbishop of Toledo, 190,
191.
Sigibert of Gembloux, 158, 178, 204, 208.
Simon, abbot of Los (Loz) or Loo, 34, 41, 63.
Sisbert, archbishop of Toledo, 190, 191.
SM.=Stella mans.
Small, John, 157.
Soissons, 4, 8, 12, 27, 30,43, 54, 68, 69, 76, 195,
196; scene of SM. legends, 131, //. 652 and
658; church of Ste. Mary, 195; abbey of
St. Medard, 30; abbess Matilda, 195; rustic
Boso, 195. See Farsitus, Gautier de Coincy,
Rosarius, and legends, 'Boy Freed From
Captivity,' 'Nose Restored,' and 'Soissons.'
Spain, 127.
Speculum exemplorum, 43-44, 54, 56. See
also Magnum speculum exemplorum.
Speculum laicorum, 193.
Speyer, 15, 198.
Steele, Robert, 147.
Stefanovic, Svetislav, 169.
Stella marts, 5, 8, 10, 11, 14, 16, 19, 20, 32, 33,
35-36> 39. 4°. 4*. 43. 44. 4<S-47. 59-69. 7°.
71, 72, 74-75, 76, 97, /. 124, 166, 168, 170,
174, 175, 183, 189, 193, 195, 196, 198, 206,
207, 208, 209; authorship of, 77; date of,
77-79; manuscripts of, 80-86; in England,
69-72.
Stephen, a judge at Rome, 197.
Stolfi, Casimiro, 206.
Strange, Joseph, 57.
Strassburg, 21.
Stubbs, William, 160, 164, 167.
Sumi, Henry, knight, 80.
Surius, Laurentius, 165.
S7=Collection of St. Victor=AfS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 14463.
Tabula exemplorum, 205.
Tanner, Thomas, 70.
Taylor, Archer, 205.
Telera, Coelestinus. See Pseudo-Celestine.
Teubert, Stephan, 169.
Thaddeus, the judge, 208.
Theodoret, 181.
Theobald, archbishop of Canterbury, 63.
Theodosius, emperor, 165.
Thibaud de Marley. See Vaux-Cernay.
Thomas, Antoine, 4, 187.
Thomas de Wyvelsberge, monk of St. Augustine's Abbey, Canterbury, 69-70.
Thomas of Cantimpre, 180-181, 186, 194.
Toledo, 128, /. 592, 129, /. 616, 166, 190, 193.
Trier, 21, 37.
TS collection of legends, 5, 6, 7, 8, 12, 13, 14,
IJ, 17-18, 38, 39, 44, 72, 155, 160, 166, 167,
171, 173, 192, 200, 207.
Turner, G. J., 70.
Tryon, Ruth Wilson, 70, 71, 156, 158, 160,
166, 168, 170, 171, 172, 173, 175, 177, 179,
182, 199.
Ubaldus, the knight, 28.
Ullman, B. L., 36.
Ulrich, Jacob, 27, 54, 156, 157, 166, 167, 168,
'75. 177. '83, 193.
Urban II, pope, 207.
Ur-Mariale. See Clairvaux Mariale.
Vaux-Cernay, Cistercian monastery of, 49;
abbot Andrew, 41, 63; abbot Thibaud de
Marley, 49, 50, 51.
Vendome collection, 30, 45, 48-51, 55, 56, 57,
58, 60, 61, 67, 74-75, 179, 180, 194, 206. See
Isnard.
Venus image, 164, 165.
Victoria, siege of, 79.
Vie des anciens peres, 165, 190.
Vincent of Beauvais, 31, 41, 55, 59; Speculum .
historiale, 28, 29, 33, 34, 35-36, 37-44, 45,
46-47, 48, 49, 52, 54, 56, 58, 61, 62, 64-66,
6
9. 73. 74-75. »56. >58. > 61 . «64. I(S 5. 166,
167, 168, 170, 171, 173, 175, 176, 177, 178,
181, 182, 183, 189, 190, 191, 193, 194, 196,
109, 200, 202, 204, 205, 209, 210.
Virgin Mary in the calendar and the liturgy
of the church: Annunciation, 24, 38; Assumption, 24, 37, 50, 147, //. 994-996; Conception, 7, 147, II. 991-993, 162, 188-189;
Nativity, 148, /. 997, 170-171, 190; Purification, Ypapanti, 3, 79, 123, /. 511, 184-185,
190; Visitation, 7; Saturday, 4, 7, 142, //.
886-888; Ave Maria, 7, 28, 53, 98, /. 127,
107, 127, /. 576, 152, /. m i , 178, 179, 180,
182, 209; Ave maris Stella, 67, 74, 141, /.
865; Beati immaculati, 133, /. 683, 197;
Gaude Maria virgo, 123, 130, 194; Missus
Gabriel, 50; Nona, 162,163; O Maria virgo,
pia maris Stella, 19; O intemerata, 19, 22,
36, 45, 46; Salve regina, 7; Salve sancta
Indices
221
parens, 4, 7, 119, /. 445, 182. See legends,
'Five Joys,' 'Five Psalms,' and other appropriate legends.
• and secular learning, 87-88; astronomy, 99-105, //. 148-21}, 145-146, //. 946969, 146-147, II. 976-987; medicine, 94-95,
//. 64-75; ni-112, //. 304-315, 132, //.
670-675; meteorology, 148-149, //. 10061029.
and theology, 89-90, //. 1-12, 143144, II. 916-045, 148-149, //. 1006-1035,
150-151,11. 1060-1095.
sequence in honor of, 149-150, //.
1036-1053.
Virgil, George 101, 102; quoted in error, 103.
Virgo, constellation of, 68, 88, 146, /. 978.
Vita Columbani, 168.
Viviers, 195, 200.
de Vooys, C. G. N , 166.
X=MS Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 17491.
Wallenskold, Alexis, 169-170.
Walter of Woburn, 70.
Walther, Hans, 90.
Zephirinus, pope, 162.
Zimisccs, John, emperor, 177.
Ward, H. L. D., 3, 5, 29, 37, 42, 44, 45, 48,
52, 54, 63, 162, 171, 185, 206.
Warner, George F., 81, 82, 172, 207. See
Mielot.
Welter, J. Thomas, 43, 52, 168.
William of Auvergne, bishop of Paris, 67, 78,
79, 122, /. 496, 184.
William of Champeaux, 11.
William the Conqueror, 188.
William of Jumieges, 186, 187.
William of Malmesbury, 163, 164, 165, 167,
185, 187, 207.
Wilmart, Andre, 15.
Wolter, Eugen, 157, 158, 159.
Wright, Thomas, 156, 177, 194, 205, 210.
Wyrembek, Anna, 162, 163, 164, 165.
Xanten, 177.
2. INDEX OF MANUSCRIPT COLLECTIONS
Montpellier 146, 17-18, 19, 25, 58. See APM
above.
Bruges $46=Stella maris=B, 59, 80-81, 8385, 86, 192.
Brussels Phillipps 336, 11, 12, 15, 17, 31, 199.
Brussels 7797-7806, 11, 12, 15, 17.
Cambrai 739, 22, 31.
Charleville 168, 24, 26, 61, 62, 63, 184.
Copenhagen Thott 26, 21.
Leipzig 819, 21.
Leipzig 821, 21, 175.
London British Museum Additional 11579,
162.
London British Museum Additional 15723 =
A
' 2 9. 33. 34. 4O-4'. 4i. 44-48. 50, 51, 52,
53. 54. 55. 5_6, 57. 58, 73. 76. i?8London British Museum Additional 17920,
54, 56. See Ulrich.
London British Museum Additional 18344,
204, 205.
London British Museum Additional 33956,
175, 206.
London British Museum Additional 39996,
70, 71, 74-75," 160. See Tryon.
London British Museum Arundel 346,17-18,
•9. 2 5. 58. See APM above.
London British Museum Cotton Cleopatra
C x, 5-6, 12, 14, 167, 171, 179, 181. See
Neuhaus.
London British Museum Harley 2316, 206.
London British Museum Harley 3244, 206.
London British Museum Royal 8 c iv=Stella
maris=M, 69, 81-85, 85-86, facing 96, 192.
London British Museum Royal 6 B x, 12.
Oxford Balliol 240, 5-7, 10, 12, 14, 167, 178.
See Kjellman.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 233 3A, 11, 2216, 31, 32.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 5267, 174.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 5268, 20, 31, 60,
174, 203.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 12593 = Collection of St. Germain-des-Pres=SG, 9, 11,
16-22, 23, 24, 25, 27, 28, 31, 32, 46-47, 51,
59, 60, 61-62, 63, 71, 72, 73, 74-75, 84, 86,
'55. 'S 6 . «59. l 6 ° . l6l< l 6 3 . I<54. l66< l 6 7 .
169, 170, 171, 172, 173, 178, 179, 180, 181,
182, 183, 184, 185-186, 188, 190, 191, 192,
197, 198, 199, 200, 201, 205, 207, 208, 209.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 14463=Collection of St. V i c t o r = S F , 9, 11, 12-16, 17,
18, 19, 24, 25, 26, 31, 33, 43, 57, 58, 61, 62,
64.7*. 73. 74-75. s6< '7°. «73. «7<5. «77. '95.
196, 206.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 16056=Collection of the Sorbonne, 11, 12, 17-18, 72.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale i 7 4 9 i = X , 11,
22-26, 31, 32-34, 35-36, 37, 38, 39, 40, 41,
42, 43, 44, 46-47, 58, 59, 60, 61-62, 63-64,
65, 71, 74-75, 86, 157,168, 183, 184, 189, 192.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 18134=0, 11,
26-30, 31, 33, 34, 44, 48, 53, 57, 58, 61, 67,
74-75, 164, 173, 194Paris Bibliotheque Nationale 18168, 17-18, 19,
25, 58. See APM above.
222
Indices
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale French 818, 45,
177.
Paris Bibliotheque Nationale French 2094, 30.
Rouen U 134 and A 5 35=Rouen Mariale=R,
24, 30-36, 37, 38, 39, 40, 41,42, 43, 44,46-47,
54, 55, 56. &>* 6ti
177. «84- '9*-
6z
»6.
74~75>
Toulouse 478, 40.
Toulouse 482, 5-7, 12, 14.
3. INDEX OF LEGENDS
Abbess: Bishop Comes Unexpectedly, 6, 13,
27, 35, 46, 49, 74, 93-94, //. 46-63, 156-157;
Confidence Betrayed, 157.
Abbey of Le Val, 50.
Abbot Baldwin, 23-24, 25, 26, 63.
Abbot Eats Spider, 33, 36.
Ave maris Stella, 67, 75, 141, II. 862-867, 206.
Barns Filled, 20, 25, 32, 35, 74, 98-99, //. 139147, 160-161.
Beatrice the Sacristan, 30, 57.
Beirut, 33, 36, 64, 74, 117, //. 400-408, 177-178.
Blasphemer of Lausanne, 40, 41, 45, 46, 53.
Bonus, 6, 13, 18, 33, 35, 39, 46, 49, 63, 64.
Boy Devoted to the Devil, 15, 16, 20, 42, 47,
75. '37-«38. & I60-!?!' 201-202.
Boy Freed From Captivity, 75, 141, //. 868879, 206-207.
Boy Saved From Drowning, 28, 58.
Brabantine Blasphemers, 33, 36, 37, 46, 53, 63.
Bread: Spins est locus, 15, 32, 36, 46, 75, 134135, //. 706-723, 198-199; Quantum pura
simplicitas, 21-22, 51.
Bridegroom, 161-166; Brother of the King of
Hungary, 162-163; Clerk of Pisa, 25, 39,
162, 163, 164; Love by Black Art, 6, 13, 18,
25, 163-164; Ring on Finger, 8, 10, 19, 46,
49, 74, 106, //. 220-225, 161-162, 164-166,
170; Roman Noble, 162; Transported to a
Remote Region, 14, 20, 35, 75, 125, II.
550-555. "63. >89Chaplain Whom Mary Chose, 34, 36.
Charitable Almsman, 36, 64, 75, 134, //. 700705, 198Chartres, 8, 19, 35, 75, 123-124, //. 520-528,
186-187.
Chaste Empress, 8, 10, 15, 16, 20, 25, 33, 35,
39. 4<5. 54. 6l> 6h 74. 'O9-"3. ll- 268-336,
165, 168-170.
Childbirth in the Sea, 5, 6, 46, 49, 53, 54.
Chorister, 30, 58, 67, 75, 130-131, ll. 634-645,
194-195.
Christ-Child Seized as Pledge, 206.
Christ Appears to Monk, 25, 32, 35, 38, 62,
63, 75, 128, //. 604-609, 192.
Christ Image Wounded, 64, 75, 138, //. 796801, 202-204.
Cistercian Monk Could Learn Only Ave
Maria, 28, 53, 58.
Cistercian Monk Persecuted, 33-34, $6, 41, 46,
63.
Cistercian Monk Sang Softly, 29.
Cistercian Monks at Their Field Work, 33,
36, 41, 46, 50, 51-52.
Cistercians Beneath the Virgin's Cloak, 50,
57Cistercians Honored, 50.
Clerk of Chartres, 48, 74, 117-118, //. 409417, 178-179.
Clerk of Pisa. See Bridegroom.
Columns Raised, 24, 32, 35, 38, 46, 62, 108109, //. 259-267, 168.
Complines, 6, 13.
Conception, 6, 10, 13, 17-18, 26, 75, 124-125,
//. 538-549, 188-189.
Constantinople Saved, 19, 35, 187.
Conversus at Clairvaux Hears Angels Celebrate Assumption, 50.
Demons in the Form of Swine, 34, 36, 46.
Devil in Beasts' Shapes, 6, 13, 27, 35, 74, 97,
//. 118-123, 159-160.
Dream of a Harlot and Her Horses, 50.
Drowned Sacristan, 9, 21, 75, 126-127, //.
568-585,179-180,189; Clerk Named Nonus,
6, 12, 13; Friend Prays, 7, 13.
Ebbo the Thief, 27, 42, 47, 75, 152-153, ll.
1108-1125, 209-210.
Electuary, 28, 41, 46, 52, 57.
Eulalia, 6, 13, 27, 28, 32, 36.
Excommunicate Absolved by Foolish Servant
of Mary, 15.
Fire at Mont-St.-Michel, 26, 35, 54, 75, 129,
ll. 610-615, 192-193.
Five Joys, 36, 64.
Five Psalms, 29, 34, 36, 41, 42, 45, 47, 63.
Foot Cut Off, 6, 13, 18, 75, 135-136, //. 736741, 200-201; Grenoble, 14, 200.
Fulbert of Chartres. See Milk.
Garlands for the Virgin, 30.
German Nobleman Healed, 7, 13.
Gethsemane, 6, 13, 14, 18, 23, 35.
Girl Named Mary, 40, 41, 46, 57.
Girl of Lausanne, 33, 36, 40.
Hundred Aves a Day, 29, 48, 50.
Hand Restored to Priest, 51.
Indices
Hieronymous, 16.
Hildefonsus, 4, 75, 128, II. 592-597, 190-191.
Hours Sung Daily, 6, 9, 13, 32, 74, 118, //.
418-423, 180-181.
Incest, 15, 16, 20, 25, 39, 46, 58, 61, 62, 64, 74,
116-117, //. 382-399, 176-177.
Jewish Boy, 157-159, 174, 189; Covered With
Her Cloak, 5, 25, 35, 53, 61, 62, 74, 95-96,
II. 76-99, 157, 158; Lady Dressed in Purple,
'57->58; Jew of Bourges, 5, 6, 13, 18, 61,
159; Jew versus Christian Debate, 17-18,
159; Jewish Boy Baptized, 158.
Jew Lends to Christian, 173-175, 177; Jew
Tests Christian, 174; Said to be Greek,
174-175; Sails to Alexandria, 175; Testimonium, 6, 9, 10, 13, 35, 46, 49, 74, 115-116,
//. 370-381, 173, 175.
Jew of London, 40, 46.
Jewess in Childbirth, 25, 33, 39, 46, 62, 64, 75,
127,11. 586-591, 189-190.
Judas in Hell, 25, 32, 35, 38, 39, 62, 63, 74,
120-121, //. 460-471, 183, 192.
Julian the Apostate, 5, 70, 74, 118-119, //.
430-441, 181-182, 205.
King of France, 36.
Landmark Removed, 75, 133, II. 688-693,
197-198.
Lanfranc, 33, 35, 36.
Leuricus, 5, 7, 13, 17, 18, 36.
Liberated by the Prayers of Brothers, 36.
Liberated From Captivity, 33, 36.
Libia, 6, 13, 14, 18, 35, 74, 114, //. 358-363,
172.
Light in a Mary Church, 25, 32, 35.
Light on Masthead, 6, 13, 46, 166, 188, 189.
Little Devil in Church, 8, 42, 47, 75, 129-130,
II. 616-633, 193-194.
Love by Black Art. See Bridegroom.
Maid of Arras, 10, 12, 15, 75, 124, //. 519-537,
188.
Mal-des-Ardents at Paris, 67, 75, 121-122, II.
484-501, 184.
Man and Woman Freed, 28, 58.
Mare, 10, 19, 23, 25, 26, 32, 35, 38, 61, 62, 63,
75, 122, II. 502-507, 184.
Mary Image Insulted, 6, 13, 18, 35, 42, 47, 52,
74,115,//. 364-369, 172-173, 207.
Mary Relics (Gregory of Tours, ch. 10), 25,
26, 32.
Mary Relics (ibid., ch. 18), 32, 35.
Mead, 7, 13, 17-18, 61, 74, 108, //. 244-249,
167.
Milk, 10, 155-156; Fulbert of Chartres,33, 36,
155; Monk Laid Out as Dead, 6, 13, 18, 25,
39. '55> 156; Tongue and Lips Restored,
223
14, 16, 26, 27, 35, 46, 49, 74, 91-9), II. 31-45,
155-156,196, Twenty-three Plants in Flower, 156.
Missus Gabriel, 50.
Monk Dies Suddenly in Burgundy, 14, 18,
2
5. 39Mother of Mercy (Meimnimus, PseudoAnselm), 14, 17, 18, 23, 171; Sicut iterum,
6, 13, 15, 17-18, 47, 74, 114, //. 352-357.
171-172.
Mouth of Hell, 14, 75, 128, //. 598-603, 191192.
Murieldis, 4, 15, 18.
Musa, 6, 13, 17-18, 26, 32, 35, 38, 63.
Nativity, 19, 32, 35, 37, 42, 47, 74, 113-114,
U- 337-35'. i7°-'7iNiece of a Wicked Man, 33, 36.
Nose Restored, 75, 132, //. 664-669, 196-197.
Nun Who Could Not Unlock Convent
Door, 29, 48, 50.
O intenierata: Buried Outside the Churchyard, 19, 36; Devil as Servant, 19, 46, 49,
53; Son of a Priest, 36; St. John Rescues
Boy's Soul From Devils, 22.
Origin of Antiphony, O Maria virgo, 19, 24.
Orleans, 10, 19, 35, 46, 62, 74, 120, //. 454-459,
183.
Painter of Flanders, 33, 36, 40, 41, 45, 46, 53,
58, 64, 75, 139-140, //. 826-843, 204-205.
Parma, 9, 10, 75, 143, //. 904-909, 207-208.
Peter the Venerable, 33, 35, 36.
Persuaded to Stay Forty Years, 50.
Pilgrim of St. James, 5, 75, 135, //. 724-735,
199-200.
Pilgrim in the Sea, 6, 13, 35, 46, 52, 69, 74,
107, //. 232-243, 166-167, 189.
Poor Man Strikes Stone, 15, 17, 33, 35, 39,
41, 46.
Poor Man With Three Marriageable Daughters, 21.
Priest of One Mass, 42, 46, 74, 119-120, //.
442-453, 182.
Purification, 8, 19, 26, 32, 35, 75, 123, II. 508513, 184-185.
Ring on Finger. See Bridegroom.
Rich Man and Poor Widow, 15, 23, 25, 39,
46, 49, 58.
Sacristan Worthy to Kiss Hands and Feet of
Mary, 15, 35.
Saracen and Mary Image, 19, 23, 35, 42, 47,
74, 106, //. 214-219, 161.
Saracens Unable to Injure Mary Image, 40,
46.
Sardenay, 19, 23, 161.
Saturday, 5, 7, 13, 35, 75, 142, //. 886-903, 207.
224
Indices
Sight Restored, 19, 35, 75, 123, //. 514-519.
185-186.
Soissons, 75, 131, //. 652-663, 195-196. See
Farsitus above.
Son Restored, 6, 13, 35, 74, 96-97, //. 100-117,
159, 189.
Soul Flies to Heaven With St. Bernard's, 50.
Souls of Cistercians Released, 50.
Stained Corporal, 35.
Stepmother and Stepson, 15.
St. Blasius, 7.
St. Dunstan, 6, 13, 35, 47.
St. Luke's Portrait of Mary, 20, 24.
Student Forbidden to Swim Drowns, 21.
Tempted by the Devil, 71.
Theophilus, 5, 17-18, 26, 75, 107, 152, //. 1096-
Transported to a Remote Region. See Bridegroom.
Two Boys Enter Clairvaux, 45, 48.
Two Brothers at Rome,. 5, 75, 133, //. 676687, 197.
Unwilling to Deny Mary, 33, 36, 45, 46, 49,
58.
Unchaste Monk Warned by Widow, 19, 23,
26.
Uncompleted Confession, 7, 13, 18, 25, 35, 39.
Virgin Bares Her Breast, 50.
Vision of St. Hugh of Cluny, 37, 42, 43, 47.
Vision of Monk of Clairvaux, 50.
1107, 176, 193, 202, 205, 208-209.
Thread in Lip, 19, 36, 46. See Radbod II of
Noyon.
Three Knights, 6, 13, 17-18, 32, 36.
Toledo, 5, 6, 13, 18, 35, 46, 74, 107, //. 226231, 166.
Wife and Mistress, 15, 18, 26, 46.
Will For Deed, 15, 75, 140-141, //. 850-861,
205-206.
Woman Revived For Confession, 42, 47, 74,
108, //. 250-258, 167-168.